A
Mark
Twain
PREFACE
THE ungentle laws and customs touched upon in this tale are
historical, and the episodes which are used to illustrate them are also
historical. It is not pretended that these laws and customs existed in England
in the sixth century; no, it is only pretended that inasmuch as they existed in
the English and other civilizations of far later times, it is safe to consider
that it is no libel upon the sixth century to suppose them to have been in
practice in that day also. One is quite justified in inferring that whatever
one of these laws or customs was lacking in that remote time, its place was
competently filled by a worse one.
The question as to whether there is such a thing as divine
right of kings is not settled in this book. It was found too difficult. That
the executive head of a nation should be a person of lofty character and
extraordinary ability, was manifest and indisputable; that none but the Deity
could select that head unerringly, was also manifest and indisputable; that the
Deity ought to make that selection, then, was likewise manifest and
indisputable; consequently, that He does make it, as claimed, was an
unavoidable deduction. I mean, until the author of this book encountered the
Pompadour, and Lady Castlemaine, and some other executive heads of that kind;
these were found so difficult to work into the scheme, that it was judged
better to take the other tack in this book (which must be issued this fall),
and then go into training and settle the question in another book. It is, of
course, a thing which ought to be settled, and I am not going to have anything
particular to do next winter anyway.
Mark Twain.
A WORD OF EXPLANATION
IT was in Warwick Castle that I came across the curious
stranger whom I am going to talk about. He attracted me by three things: his
candid simplicity, his marvelous familiarity with ancient armor, and the
restfulness of his company—for he did all the talking. We fell together, as
modest people will, in the tail of the herd that was being shown through, and
he at once began to say things which interested me. As he talked along, softly,
pleasantly, flowingly, he seemed to drift away imperceptibly out of this world
and time, and into some remote era and old forgotten country; and so he
gradually wove such a spell about me that I seemed to move among the specters
and shadows and dust and mold of a gray antiquity, holding speech with a relic
of it! Exactly as I would speak of my nearest personal friends or enemies, or
my most familiar neighbors, he spoke of Sir Bedivere, Sir Bors de Ganis, Sir
Launcelot of the Lake, Sir Galahad, and all the other great names of the Table
Round—and how old, old, unspeakably old and faded and dry and musty and ancient
he came to look as he went on! Presently he turned to me and said, just as one
might speak of the weather, or any other common matter—
“You know about transmigration of souls; do you know about
transposition of epochs—and bodies?”
I said I had not heard of it. He was so little
interested—just as when people speak of the weather—that he did not notice
whether I made him any answer or not. There was half a moment of silence,
immediately interrupted by the droning voice of the salaried cicerone:
“Ancient hauberk, date of the sixth century, time of King
Arthur and the Round Table; said to have belonged to the knight Sir Sagramor le
Desirous; observe the round hole through the chain-mail in the left breast;
can't be accounted for; supposed to have been done with a bullet since
invention of firearms—perhaps maliciously by Cromwell's soldiers.”
My acquaintance smiled—not a modern smile, but one that must
have gone out of general use many, many centuries ago—and muttered apparently
to himself:
“Wit ye well, I SAW IT DONE.” Then, after a pause, added: “I
did it myself.”
By the time I had recovered from the electric surprise of
this remark, he was gone.
All that evening I sat by my fire at the Warwick Arms,
steeped in a dream of the olden time, while the rain beat upon the windows, and
the wind roared about the eaves and corners. From time to time I dipped into
old Sir Thomas Malory's enchanting book, and fed at its rich feast of prodigies
and adventures, breathed in the fragrance of its obsolete names, and dreamed
again. Midnight being come at length, I read another tale, for a nightcap—this
which here follows, to wit:
HOW SIR LAUNCELOT SLEW TWO GIANTS,
AND MADE A CASTLE FREE
Anon withal came there upon him two great giants, well
armed, all save the heads, with two horrible clubs in their hands. Sir
Launcelot put his shield afore him, and put the stroke away of the one giant,
and with his sword he clave his head asunder. When his fellow saw that, he ran
away as he were wood [* demented], for fear of the horrible strokes, and Sir
Launcelot after him with all his might, and smote him on the shoulder, and
clave him to the middle. Then Sir Launcelot went into the hall, and there came
afore him three score ladies and damsels, and all kneeled unto him, and thanked
God and him of their deliverance. For, sir, said they, the most part of us have
been here this seven year their prisoners, and we have worked all manner of
silk works for our meat, and we are all great gentle-women born, and blessed be
the time, knight, that ever thou wert born;for thou hast done the most worship
that ever did knight in the world, that will we bear record, and we all pray
you to tell us your name, that we may tell our friends who delivered us out of
prison. Fair damsels, he said, my name is Sir Launcelot du Lake. And so he
departed from them and betaught them unto God. And then he mounted upon his
horse, and rode into many strange and wild countries, and through many waters
and valleys, and evil was he lodged. And at the last by fortune him happened
against a night to come to a fair courtilage, and therein he found an old
gentle-woman that lodged him with a good-will, and there he had good cheer for
him and his horse. And when time was, his host brought him into a fair garret
over the gate to his bed. There Sir Launcelot unarmed him, and set his harness
by him, and went to bed, and anon he fell on sleep. So, soon after there came
one on horseback, and knocked at the gate in great haste. And when Sir
Launcelot heard this he rose up, and looked out at the window, and saw by the
moonlight three knights come riding after that one man, and all three lashed on
him at once with swords, and that one knight turned on them knightly again and
defended him. Truly, said Sir Launcelot, yonder one knight shall I help, for it
were shame for me to see three knights on one, and if he be slain I am partner
of his death. And therewith he took his harness and went out at a window by a
sheet down to the four knights, and then Sir Launcelot said on high, Turn you
knights unto me, and leave your fighting with that knight. And then they all
three left Sir Kay, and turned unto Sir Launcelot, and there began great
battle, for they alight all three, and strake many strokes at Sir Launcelot,
and assailed him on every side. Then Sir Kay dressed him for to have holpen Sir
Launcelot. Nay, sir, said he, I will none of your help, therefore as ye will
have my help let me alone with them. Sir Kay for the pleasure of the knight
suffered him for to do his will, and so stood aside. And then anon within six
strokes Sir Launcelot had stricken them to the earth.
And then they all three cried, Sir Knight, we yield us unto
you as man of might matchless. As to that, said Sir Launcelot, I will not take
your yielding unto me, but so that ye yield you unto Sir Kay the seneschal, on
that covenant I will save your lives and else not. Fair knight, said they, that
were we loath to do; for as for Sir Kay we chased him hither, and had overcome
him had ye not been; therefore, to yield us unto him it were no reason. Well,
as to that, said Sir Launcelot, advise you well, for ye may choose whether ye
will die or live, for an ye be yielden, it shall be unto Sir Kay. Fair knight,
then they said, in saving our lives we will do as thou commandest us. Then
shall ye, said Sir Launcelot, on Whitsunday next coming go unto the court of
King Arthur, and there shall ye yield you unto Queen Guenever, and put you all
three in her grace and mercy, and say that Sir Kay sent you thither to be her
prisoners. On the morn Sir Launcelot arose early, and left Sir Kay sleeping;
and Sir Launcelot took Sir Kay's armor and his shield and armed him, and so he
went to the stable and took his horse, and took his leave of his host, and so
he departed. Then soon after arose Sir Kay and missed Sir Launcelot; and then
he espied that he had his armor and his horse. Now by my faith I know well that
he will grieve some of the court of King Arthur; for on him knights will be
bold, and deem that it is I, and that will beguile them; and because of his
armor and shield I am sure I shall ride in peace. And then soon after departed
Sir Kay, and thanked his host.
As I laid the book down there was a knock at the door, and
my stranger came in. I gave him a pipe and a chair, and made him welcome. I
also comforted him with a hot Scotch whisky; gave him another one; then still
another—hoping always for his story. After a fourth persuader, he drifted into
it himself, in a quite simple and natural way:
THE STRANGER'S HISTORY
I am an American. I was born and reared in Hartford, in the
State of Connecticut—anyway, just over the river, in the country. So I am a
Yankee of the Yankees—and practical; yes, and nearly barren of sentiment, I
suppose—or poetry, in other words. My father was a blacksmith, my uncle was a
horse doctor, and I was both, along at first. Then I went over to the great
arms factory and learned my real trade; learned all there was to it; learned to
make everything: guns, revolvers, cannon, boilers, engines, all sorts of
labor-saving machinery. Why, I could make anything a body wanted—anything in
the world, it didn't make any difference what; and if there wasn't any quick
new-fangled way to make a thing, I could invent one—and do it as easy as
rolling off a log. I became head superintendent; had a couple of thousand men
under me.
Well, a man like that is a man that is full of fight—that
goes without saying. With a couple of thousand rough men under one, one has
plenty of that sort of amusement. I had, anyway. At last I met my match, and I
got my dose. It was during a misunderstanding conducted with crowbars with a
fellow we used to call Hercules. He laid me out with a crusher alongside the
head that made everything crack, and seemed to spring every joint in my skull and
made it overlap its neighbor. Then the world went out in darkness, and I didn't
feel anything more, and didn't know anything at all—at least for a while.
When I came to again, I was sitting under an oak tree, on
the grass, with a whole beautiful and broad country landscape all to
myself—nearly. Not entirely; for there was a fellow on a horse, looking down at
me—a fellow fresh out of a picture-book. He was in old-time iron armor from
head to heel, with a helmet on his head the shape of a nail-keg with slits in
it; and he had a shield, and a sword, and a prodigious spear; and his horse had
armor on, too, and a steel horn projecting from his forehead, and gorgeous red
and green silk trappings that hung down all around him like a bedquilt, nearly
to the ground.
“Fair sir, will ye just?” said this fellow.
“Will I which?”
“Will ye try a passage of arms for land or lady or for—”
“What are you giving me?” I said. “Get along back to your
circus, or I'll report you.”
Now what does this man do but fall back a couple of hundred
yards and then come rushing at me as hard as he could tear, with his nail-keg
bent down nearly to his horse's neck and his long spear pointed straight ahead.
I saw he meant business, so I was up the tree when he arrived.
He allowed that I was his property, the captive of his
spear. There was argument on his side—and the bulk of the advantage—so I judged
it best to humor him. We fixed up an agreement whereby I was to go with him and
he was not to hurt me. I came down, and we started away, I walking by the side
of his horse. We marched comfortably along, through glades and over brooks
which I could not remember to have seen before—which puzzled me and made me
wonder—and yet we did not come to any circus or sign of a circus. So I gave up
the idea of a circus, and concluded he was from an asylum. But we never came to
an asylum—so I was up a stump, as you may say. I asked him how far we were from
Hartford. He said he had never heard of the place; which I took to be a lie,
but allowed it to go at that. At the end of an hour we saw a far-away town
sleeping in a valley by a winding river; and beyond it on a hill, a vast gray
fortress, with towers and turrets, the first I had ever seen out of a picture.
“Bridgeport?” said I, pointing.
“Camelot,” said he.
My stranger had been showing signs of sleepiness. He caught
himself nodding, now, and smiled one of those pathetic, obsolete smiles of his,
and said:
“I find I can't go on; but come with me, I've got it all
written out, and you can read it if you like.”
In his chamber, he said: “First, I kept a journal; then by
and by, after years, I took the journal and turned it into a book. How long ago
that was!”
He handed me his manuscript, and pointed out the place where
I should begin:
“Begin here—I've already told you what goes before.” He was
steeped in drowsiness by this time. As I went out at his door I heard him
murmur sleepily: “Give you good den, fair sir.”
I sat down by my fire and examined my treasure. The first
part of it—the great bulk of it—was parchment, and yellow with age. I scanned a
leaf particularly and saw that it was a palimpsest. Under the old dim writing
of the Yankee historian appeared traces of a penmanship which was older and
dimmer still—Latin words and sentences: fragments from old monkish legends,
evidently. I turned to the place indicated by my stranger and began to read—as
follows:
THE TALE OF THE LOST LAND.
Chapter I.
CAMELOT
“CAMELOT—Camelot,” said I to myself. “I don't seem to
remember hearing of it before. Name of the asylum, likely.”
It was a soft, reposeful summer landscape, as lovely as a
dream, and as lonesome as Sunday. The air was full of the smell of flowers, and
the buzzing of insects, and the twittering of birds, and there were no people,
no wagons, there was no stir of life, nothing going on. The road was mainly a
winding path with hoof-prints in it, and now and then a faint trace of wheels
on either side in the grass—wheels that apparently had a tire as broad as one's
hand.
Presently a fair slip of a girl, about ten years old, with a
cataract of golden hair streaming down over her shoulders, came along. Around
her head she wore a hoop of flame-red poppies. It was as sweet an outfit as
ever I saw, what there was of it. She walked indolently along, with a mind at
rest, its peace reflected in her innocent face. The circus man paid no
attention to her; didn't even seem to see her. And she—she was no more startled
at his fantastic make-up than if she was used to his like every day of her
life. She was going by as indifferently as she might have gone by a couple of
cows; but when she happened to notice me, THEN there was a change! Up went her
hands, and she was turned to stone; her mouth dropped open, her eyes stared
wide and timorously, she was the picture of astonished curiosity touched with
fear. And there she stood gazing, in a sort of stupefied fascination, till we
turned a corner of the wood and were lost to her view. That she should be
startled at me instead of at the other man, was too many for me; I couldn't
make head or tail of it . And that she should seem to consider me a spectacle,
and totally overlook her own merits in that respect, was another puzzling
thing, and a display of magnanimity, too, that was surprising in one so young. There
was food for thought here. I moved along as one in a dream.
As we approached the town, signs of life began to appear. At
intervals we passed a wretched cabin, with a thatched roof, and about it small
fields and garden patches in an indifferent state of cultivation. There were
people, too; brawny men, with long, coarse, uncombed hair that hung down over
their faces and made them look like animals. They and the women, as a rule,
wore a coarse tow-linen robe that came well below the knee, and a rude sort of
sandal, and many wore an iron collar. The small boys and girls were always
naked; but nobody seemed to know it. All of these people stared at me, talked
about me, ran into the huts and fetched out their families to gape at me; but
nobody ever noticed that other fellow, except to make him humble salutation and
get no response for their pains.
In the town were some substantial windowless houses of stone
scattered among a wilderness of thatched cabins; the streets were mere crooked
alleys, and unpaved; troops of dogs and nude children played in the sun and
made life and noise; hogs roamed and rooted contentedly about, and one of them
lay in a reeking wallow in the middle of the main thoroughfare and suckled her
family. Presently there was a distant blare of military music; it came nearer,
still nearer, and soon a noble cavalcade wound into view, glorious with plumed
helmets and flashing mail and flaunting banners and rich doublets and
horse-cloths and gilded spearheads; and through the muck and swine, and naked
brats, and joyous dogs, and shabby huts, it took its gallant way, and in its
wake we followed. Followed through one winding alley and then another,—and
climbing, always climbing—till at last we gained the breezy height where the
huge castle stood. There was an exchange of bugle blasts; then a parley from
the walls, where men-at-arms, in hauberk and morion, marched back and forth
with halberd at shoulder under flapping banners with the rude figure of a
dragon displayed upon them; and then the great gates were flung open, the
drawbridge was lowered, and the head of the cavalcade swept forward under the
frowning arches; and we, following, soon found ourselves in a great paved
court, with towers and turrets stretching up into the blue air on all the four
sides; and all about us the dismount was going on, and much greeting and
ceremony, and running to and fro, and a gay display of moving and intermingling
colors, and an altogether pleasant stir and noise and confusion.
Chapter II.
KING ARTHUR'S COURT
THE moment I got a chance I slipped aside privately and
touched an ancient common looking man on the shoulder and said, in an
insinuating, confidential way:
“Friend, do me a kindness. Do you belong to the asylum, or
are you just on a visit or something like that?”
He looked me over stupidly, and said:
“Marry, fair sir, me seemeth—”
“That will do,” I said; “I reckon you are a patient.”
I moved away, cogitating, and at the same time keeping an
eye out for any chance passenger in his right mind that might come along and
give me some light. I judged I had found one, presently; so I drew him aside
and said in his ear:
“If I could see the head keeper a minute—only just a
minute—”
“Prithee do not let me.”
“Let you WHAT?”
“HINDER me, then, if the word please thee better. Then he
went on to say he was an under-cook and could not stop to gossip, though he
would like it another time; for it would comfort his very liver to know where I
got my clothes. As he started away he pointed and said yonder was one who was
idle enough for my purpose, and was seeking me besides, no doubt. This was an
airy slim boy in shrimp-colored tights that made him look like a forked carrot,
the rest of his gear was blue silk and dainty laces and ruffles; and he had
long yellow curls, and wore a plumed pink satin cap tilted complacently over
his ear. By his look, he was good-natured; by his gait, he was satisfied with
himself. He was pretty enough to frame. He arrived, looked me over with a
smiling and impudent curiosity; said he had come for me, and informed me that
he was a page.
“Go 'long,” I said; “you ain't more than a paragraph.”
It was pretty severe, but I was nettled. However, it never
phazed him; he didn't appear to know he was hurt. He began to talk and laugh,
in happy, thoughtless, boyish fashion, as we walked along, and made himself old
friends with me at once; asked me all sorts of questions about myself and about
my clothes, but never waited for an answer—always chattered straight ahead, as
if he didn't know he had asked a question and wasn't expecting any reply, until
at last he happened to mention that he was born in the beginning of the year
513.
It made the cold chills creep over me! I stopped and said, a
little faintly:
“Maybe I didn't hear you just right. Say it again—and say it
slow. What year was it?”
“513.”
“513! You don't look it! Come, my boy, I am a stranger and
friendless; be honest and honorable with me. Are you in your right mind?”
He said he was.
“Are these other people in their right minds?”
He said they were.
“And this isn't an asylum? I mean, it isn't a place where
they cure crazy people?”
He said it wasn't.
“Well, then,” I said, “either I am a lunatic, or something
just as awful has happened. Now tell me, honest and true, where am I?”
“IN KING ARTHUR'S COURT.”
I waited a minute, to let that idea shudder its way home,
and then said:
“And according to your notions, what year is it now?”
“528—nineteenth of June.”
I felt a mournful sinking at the heart, and muttered: “I
shall never see my friends again—never, never again. They will not be born for
more than thirteen hundred years yet.”
I seemed to believe the boy, I didn't know why. SOMETHING in
me seemed to believe him—my consciousness, as you may say; but my reason
didn't. My reason straightway began to clamor; that was natural. I didn't know
how to go about satisfying it, because I knew that the testimony of men
wouldn't serve—my reason would say they were lunatics, and throw out their
evidence. But all of a sudden I stumbled on the very thing, just by luck. I
knew that the only total eclipse of the sun in the first half of the sixth
century occurred on the 21st of June, A. D. 528, O.S., and began at 3 minutes
after 12 noon. I also knew that no total eclipse of the sun was due in what to
ME was the present year—i.e., 1879. So, if I could keep my anxiety and
curiosity from eating the heart out of me for forty-eight hours, I should then
find out for certain whether this boy was telling me the truth or not.
Wherefore, being a practical Connecticut man, I now shoved
this whole problem clear out of my mind till its appointed day and hour should
come, in order that I might turn all my attention to the circumstances of the present
moment, and be alert and ready to make the most out of them that could be made.
One thing at a time, is my motto—and just play that thing for all it is worth,
even if it's only two pair and a jack. I made up my mind to two things: if it
was still the nineteenth century and I was among lunatics and couldn't get
away, I would presently boss that asylum or know the reason why; and if, on the
other hand, it was really the sixth century, all right, I didn't want any
softer thing: I would boss the whole country inside of three months; for I
judged I would have the start of the best-educated man in the kingdom by a
matter of thirteen hundred years and upward. I'm not a man to waste time after
my mind's made up and there's work on hand; so I said to the page:
“Now, Clarence, my boy—if that might happen to be your
name—I'll get you to post me up a little if you don't mind. What is the name of
that apparition that brought me here?”
“My master and thine? That is the good knight and great lord
Sir Kay the Seneschal, foster brother to our liege the king.”
“Very good; go on, tell me everything.”
He made a long story of it; but the part that had immediate
interest for me was this: He said I was Sir Kay's prisoner, and that in the due
course of custom I would be flung into a dungeon and left there on scant
commons until my friends ransomed me—unless I chanced to rot, first. I saw that
the last chance had the best show, but I didn't waste any bother about that;
time was too precious. The page said, further, that dinner was about ended in
the great hall by this time, and that as soon as the sociability and the heavy
drinking should begin, Sir Kay would have me in and exhibit me before King
Arthur and his illustrious knights seated at the Table Round, and would brag
about his exploit in capturing me, and would probably exaggerate the facts a
little, but it wouldn't be good form for me to correct him, and not over safe,
either; and when I was done being exhibited, then ho for the dungeon; but he,
Clarence, would find a way to come and see me every now and then, and cheer me
up, and help me get word to my friends.
Get word to my friends! I thanked him; I couldn't do less;
and about this time a lackey came to say I was wanted; so Clarence led me in
and took me off to one side and sat down by me.
Well, it was a curious kind of spectacle, and interesting. It
was an immense place, and rather naked—yes, and full of loud contrasts. It was
very, very lofty; so lofty that the banners depending from the arched beams and
girders away up there floated in a sort of twilight; there was a stone-railed
gallery at each end, high up, with musicians in the one, and women, clothed in
stunning colors, in the other. The floor was of big stone flags laid in black
and white squares, rather battered by age and use, and needing repair. As to
ornament, there wasn't any, strictly speaking; though on the walls hung some
huge tapestries which were probably taxed as works of art; battle-pieces, they
were, with horses shaped like those which children cut out of paper or create
in gingerbread; with men on them in scale armor whose scales are represented by
round holes—so that the man's coat looks as if it had been done with a
biscuit-punch. There was a fireplace big enough to camp in; and its projecting
sides and hood, of carved and pillared stonework, had the look of a cathedral
door. Along the walls stood men-at-arms, in breastplate and morion, with
halberds for their only weapon—rigid as statues; and that is what they looked
like.
In the middle of this groined and vaulted public square was
an oaken table which they called the Table Round. It was as large as a circus
ring; and around it sat a great company of men dressed in such various and
splendid colors that it hurt one's eyes to look at them. They wore their plumed
hats, right along, except that whenever one addressed himself directly to the
king, he lifted his hat a trifle just as he was beginning his remark.
Mainly they were drinking—from entire ox horns; but a few
were still munching bread or gnawing beef bones. There was about an average of
two dogs to one man; and these sat in expectant attitudes till a spent bone was
flung to them, and then they went for it by brigades and divisions, with a
rush, and there ensued a fight which filled the prospect with a tumultuous
chaos of plunging heads and bodies and flashing tails, and the storm of
howlings and barkings deafened all speech for the time; but that was no matter,
for the dog-fight was always a bigger interest anyway; the men rose, sometimes,
to observe it the better and bet on it, and the ladies and the musicians
stretched themselves out over their balusters with the same object; and all
broke into delighted ejaculations from time to time. In the end, the winning
dog stretched himself out comfortably with his bone between his paws, and
proceeded to growl over it, and gnaw it, and grease the floor with it, just as
fifty others were already doing; and the rest of the court resumed their
previous industries and entertainments.
As a rule, the speech and behavior of these people were
gracious and courtly; and I noticed that they were good and serious listeners
when anybody was telling anything—I mean in a dog-fightless interval. And
plainly, too, they were a childlike and innocent lot; telling lies of the
stateliest pattern with a most gentle and winning naivety, and ready and
willing to listen to anybody else's lie, and believe it, too. It was hard to
associate them with anything cruel or dreadful; and yet they dealt in tales of
blood and suffering with a guileless relish that made me almost forget to
shudder.
I was not the only prisoner present. There were twenty or
more. Poor devils, many of them were maimed, hacked, carved, in a frightful
way; and their hair, their faces, their clothing, were caked with black and
stiffened drenchings of blood. They were suffering sharp physical pain, of
course; and weariness, and hunger and thirst, no doubt; and at least none had
given them the comfort of a wash, or even the poor charity of a lotion for
their wounds; yet you never heard them utter a moan or a groan, or saw them
show any sign of restlessness, or any disposition to complain. The thought was
forced upon me: “The rascals—THEY have served other people so in their day; it
being their own turn, now, they were not expecting any better treatment than
this; so their philosophical bearing is not an outcome of mental training,
intellectual fortitude, reasoning; it is mere animal training; they are white
Indians.”
Chapter III.
KNIGHTS OF THE TABLE ROUND
MAINLY the Round Table talk was monologues—narrative
accounts of the adventures in which these prisoners were captured and their
friends and backers killed and stripped of their steeds and armor. As a general
thing—as far as I could make out—these murderous adventures were not forays
undertaken to avenge injuries, nor to settle old disputes or sudden fallings
out; no, as a rule they were simply duels between strangers—duels between
people who had never even been introduced to each other, and between whom
existed no cause of offense whatever. Many a time I had seen a couple of boys,
strangers, meet by chance, and say simultaneously, “I can lick you,” and go at
it on the spot; but I had always imagined until now that that sort of thing
belonged to children only, and was a sign and mark of childhood; but here were
these big boobies sticking to it and taking pride in it clear up into full age
and beyond. Yet there was something very engaging about these great
simple-hearted creatures, something attractive and lovable. There did not seem
to be brains enough in the entire nursery, so to speak, to bait a fish-hook
with; but you didn't seem to mind that, after a little, because you soon saw
that brains were not needed in a society like that, and indeed would have
marred it, hindered it, spoiled its symmetry—perhaps rendered its existence
impossible.
There was a fine manliness observable in almost every face;
and in some a certain loftiness and sweetness that rebuked your belittling
criticisms and stilled them. A most noble benignity and purity reposed in the
countenance of him they called Sir Galahad, and likewise in the king's also;
and there was majesty and greatness in the giant frame and high bearing of Sir
Launcelot of the Lake.
There was presently an incident which centered the general
interest upon this Sir Launcelot. At a sign from a sort of master of
ceremonies, six or eight of the prisoners rose and came forward in a body and
knelt on the floor and lifted up their hands toward the ladies' gallery and
begged the grace of a word with the queen. The most conspicuously situated lady
in that massed flower-bed of feminine show and finery inclined her head by way
of assent, and then the spokesman of the prisoners delivered himself and his
fellows into her hands for free pardon, ransom, captivity, or death, as she in
her good pleasure might elect; and this, as he said, he was doing by command of
Sir Kay the Seneschal, whose prisoners they were, he having vanquished them by
his single might and prowess in sturdy conflict in the field.
Surprise and astonishment flashed from face to face all over
the house; the queen's gratified smile faded out at the name of Sir Kay, and
she looked disappointed; and the page whispered in my ear with an accent and
manner expressive of extravagant derision—
“Sir KAY,
forsooth! Oh, call me pet names, dearest, call me a marine! In twice a thousand
years shall the unholy invention of man labor at odds to beget the fellow to
this majestic lie!”
Every eye was
fastened with severe inquiry upon Sir Kay. But he was equal to the occasion. He
got up and played his hand like a major—and took every trick. He said he would
state the case exactly according to the facts; he would tell the simple
straightforward tale, without comment of his own; “and then,” said he, “if ye
find glory and honor due, ye will give it unto him who is the mightiest man of
his hands that ever bare shield or strake with sword in the ranks of Christian
battle—even him that sitteth there!” and he pointed to Sir Launcelot. Ah, he
fetched them; it was a rattling good stroke. Then he went on and told how Sir
Launcelot, seeking adventures, some brief time gone by, killed seven giants at
one sweep of his sword, and set a hundred and forty-two captive maidens free;
and then went further, still seeking adventures, and found him (Sir Kay)
fighting a desperate fight against nine foreign knights, and straightway took
the battle solely into his own hands, and conquered the nine; and that night
Sir Launcelot rose quietly, and dressed him in Sir Kay's armor and took Sir Kay's
horse and gat him away into distant lands, and vanquished sixteen knights in
one pitched battle and thirty-four in another; and all these and the former
nine he made to swear that about Whitsuntide they would ride to Arthur's court
and yield them to Queen Guenever's hands as captives of Sir Kay the Seneschal,
spoil of his knightly prowess; and now here were these half dozen, and the rest
would be along as soon as they might be healed of their desperate wounds.
Well, it was
touching to see the queen blush and smile, and look embarrassed and happy, and
fling furtive glances at Sir Launcelot that would have got him shot in
Arkansas, to a dead certainty.
Everybody praised
the valor and magnanimity of Sir Launcelot; and as for me, I was perfectly
amazed, that one man, all by himself, should have been able to beat down and
capture such battalions of practiced fighters. I said as much to Clarence; but
this mocking featherhead only said:
“An Sir Kay had
had time to get another skin of sour wine into him, ye had seen the accompt
doubled.”
I looked at the
boy in sorrow; and as I looked I saw the cloud of a deep despondency settle
upon his countenance. I followed the direction of his eye, and saw that a very
old and white-bearded man, clothed in a flowing black gown, had risen and was
standing at the table upon unsteady legs, and feebly swaying his ancient head
and surveying the company with his watery and wandering eye. The same suffering
look that was in the page's face was observable in all the faces around—the
look of dumb creatures who know that they must endure and make no moan.
“Marry, we shall
have it a again,” sighed the boy; “that same old weary tale that he hath told a
thousand times in the same words, and that he WILL tell till he dieth, every
time he hath gotten his barrel full and feeleth his exaggeration-mill
a-working. Would God I had died or I saw this day!”
“Who is it?”
“Merlin, the
mighty liar and magician, perdition singe him for the weariness he worketh with
his one tale! But that men fear him for that he hath the storms and the
lightnings and all the devils that be in hell at his beck and call, they would
have dug his entrails out these many years ago to get at that tale and squelch
it. He telleth it always in the third person, making believe he is too modest
to glorify himself—maledictions light upon him, misfortune be his dole! Good
friend, prithee call me for evensong.”
The boy nestled
himself upon my shoulder and pretended to go to sleep. The old man began his
tale; and presently the lad was asleep in reality; so also were the dogs, and
the court, the lackeys, and the files of men-at-arms. The droning voice droned
on; a soft snoring arose on all sides and supported it like a deep and subdued
accompaniment of wind instruments. Some heads were bowed upon folded arms, some
lay back with open mouths that issued unconscious music; the flies buzzed and
bit, unmolested, the rats swarmed softly out from a hundred holes, and pattered
about, and made themselves at home everywhere; and one of them sat up like a
squirrel on the king's head and held a bit of cheese in its hands and nibbled
it, and dribbled the crumbs in the king's face with naive and impudent
irreverence. It was a tranquil scene, and restful to the weary eye and the
jaded spirit.
This was the old
man's tale. He said:
“Right so the
king and Merlin departed, and went until an hermit that was a good man and a
great leech. So the hermit searched all his wounds and gave him good salves; so
the king was there three days, and then were his wounds well amended that he
might ride and go, and so departed. And as they rode, Arthur said, I have no
sword. No force *, said Merlin, hereby is a [* Footnote from M.T.: No matter.]
sword that shall be yours and I may. So they rode till they came to a lake, the
which was a fair water and broad, and in the midst of the lake Arthur was ware
of an arm clothed in white samite, that held a fair sword in that hand. Lo,
said Merlin, yonder is that sword that I spake of. With that they saw a damsel
going upon the lake. What damsel is that? said Arthur. That is the Lady of the
lake, said Merlin; and within that lake is a rock, and therein is as fair a
place as any on earth, and richly beseen, and this damsel will come to you
anon, and then speak ye fair to her that she will give you that sword. Anon withal
came the damsel unto Arthur and saluted him, and he her again. Damsel, said
Arthur, what sword is that, that yonder the arm holdeth above the water? I
would it were mine, for I have no sword. Sir Arthur King, said the damsel, that
sword is mine, and if ye will give me a gift when I ask it you, ye shall have
it. By my faith, said Arthur, I will give you what gift ye will ask. Well, said
the damsel, go ye into yonder barge and row yourself to the sword, and take it
and the scabbard with you, and I will ask my gift when I see my time. So Sir
Arthur and Merlin alight, and tied their horses to two trees, and so they went
into the ship, and when they came to the sword that the hand held, Sir Arthur
took it up by the handles, and took it with him. And the arm and the hand went
under the water; and so they came unto the land and rode forth. And then Sir
Arthur saw a rich pavilion. What signifieth yonder pavilion? It is the knight's
pavilion, said Merlin, that ye fought with last, Sir Pellinore, but he is out,
he is not there; he hath ado with a knight of yours, that hight Egglame, and
they have fought together, but at the last Egglame fled, and else he had been
dead, and he hath chased him even to Carlion, and we shall meet with him anon
in the highway. That is well said, said Arthur, now have I a sword, now will I
wage battle with him, and be avenged on him. Sir, ye shall not so, said Merlin,
for the knight is weary of fighting and chasing, so that ye shall have no
worship to have ado with him; also, he will not lightly be matched of one
knight living; and therefore it is my counsel, let him pass, for he shall do
you good service in short time, and his sons, after his days. Also ye shall see
that day in short space ye shall be right glad to give him your sister to wed.
When I see him, I will do as ye advise me, said Arthur. Then Sir Arthur looked
on the sword, and liked it passing well. Whether liketh you better, said
Merlin, the sword or the scabbard? Me liketh better the sword, said Arthur. Ye
are more unwise, said Merlin, for the scabbard is worth ten of the sword, for
while ye have the scabbard upon you ye shall never lose no blood, be ye never
so sore wounded; therefore, keep well the scabbard always with you. So they
rode into Carlion, and by the way they met with Sir Pellinore; but Merlin had
done such a craft that Pellinore saw not Arthur, and he passed by without any
words. I marvel, said Arthur, that the knight would not speak. Sir, said
Merlin, he saw you not; for and he had seen you ye had not lightly departed. So
they came unto Carlion, whereof his knights were passing glad. And when they
heard of his adventures they marveled that he would jeopard his person so
alone. But all men of worship said it was merry to be under such a chieftain
that would put his person in adventure as other poor knights did.”
Chapter IV.
SIR DINADAN THE
HUMORIST
IT seemed to me
that this quaint lie was most simply and beautifully told; but then I had heard
it only once, and that makes a difference; it was pleasant to the others when
it was fresh, no doubt.
Sir Dinadan the
Humorist was the first to awake, and he soon roused the rest with a practical
joke of a sufficiently poor quality. He tied some metal mugs to a dog's tail
and turned him loose, and he tore around and around the place in a frenzy of
fright, with all the other dogs bellowing after him and battering and crashing
against everything that came in their way and making altogether a chaos of
confusion and a most deafening din and turmoil; at which every man and woman of
the multitude laughed till the tears flowed, and some fell out of their chairs
and wallowed on the floor in ecstasy. It was just like so many children. Sir
Dinadan was so proud of his exploit that he could not keep from telling over
and over again, to weariness, how the immortal idea happened to occur to him;
and as is the way with humorists of his breed, he was still laughing at it
after everybody else had got through. He was so set up that he concluded to
make a speech—of course a humorous speech. I think I never heard so many old
played-out jokes strung together in my life. He was worse than the minstrels,
worse than the clown in the circus. It seemed peculiarly sad to sit here,
thirteen hundred years before I was born, and listen again to poor, flat, worm-eaten
jokes that had given me the dry gripes when I was a boy thirteen hundred years
afterwards. It about convinced me that there isn't any such thing as a new joke
possible. Everybody laughed at these antiquities—but then they always do; I had
noticed that, centuries later. However, of course the scoffer didn't laugh—I
mean the boy. No, he scoffed; there wasn't anything he wouldn't scoff at. He
said the most of Sir Dinadan's jokes were rotten and the rest were petrified. I
said “petrified” was good; as I believed, myself, that the only right way to
classify the majestic ages of some of those jokes was by geologic periods. But
that neat idea hit the boy in a blank place, for geology hadn't been invented
yet. However, I made a note of the remark, and calculated to educate the
commonwealth up to it if I pulled through. It is no use to throw a good thing
away merely because the market isn't ripe yet.
Now Sir Kay arose
and began to fire up on his history-mill with me for fuel. It was time for me
to feel serious, and I did. Sir Kay told how he had encountered me in a far
land of barbarians, who all wore the same ridiculous garb that I did—a garb
that was a work of enchantment, and intended to make the wearer secure from
hurt by human hands. However he had nullified the force of the enchantment by
prayer, and had killed my thirteen knights in a three hours' battle, and taken
me prisoner, sparing my life in order that so strange a curiosity as I was
might be exhibited to the wonder and admiration of the king and the court. He
spoke of me all the time, in the blandest way, as “this prodigious giant,” and
“this horrible sky-towering monster,” and “this tusked and taloned
man-devouring ogre”, and everybody took in all this bosh in the naivest way,
and never smiled or seemed to notice that there was any discrepancy between
these watered statistics and me. He said that in trying to escape from him I
sprang into the top of a tree two hundred cubits high at a single bound, but he
dislodged me with a stone the size of a cow, which “all-to brast” the most of
my bones, and then swore me to appear at Arthur's court for sentence. He ended
by condemning me to die at noon on the 21st; and was so little concerned about
it that he stopped to yawn before he named the date.
I was in a dismal
state by this time; indeed, I was hardly enough in my right mind to keep the
run of a dispute that sprung up as to how I had better be killed, the
possibility of the killing being doubted by some, because of the enchantment in
my clothes. And yet it was nothing but an ordinary suit of fifteen-dollar
slopshops. Still, I was sane enough to notice this detail, to wit: many of the
terms used in the most matter-offact way by this great assemblage of the first
ladies and gentlemen in the land would have made a Comanche blush. Indelicacy
is too mild a term to convey the idea. However, I had read “Tom Jones,” and
“Roderick Random,” and other books of that kind, and knew that the highest and
first ladies and gentlemen in England had remained little or no cleaner in
their talk, and in the morals and conduct which such talk implies, clear up to
a hundred years ago; in fact clear into our own nineteenth century—in which
century, broadly speaking, the earliest samples of the real lady and real
gentleman discoverable in English history—or in European history, for that
matter—may be said to have made their appearance. Suppose Sir Walter, instead
of putting the conversations into the mouths of his characters, had allowed the
characters to speak for themselves? We should have had talk from Rebecca and
Ivanhoe and the soft lady Rowena which would embarrass a tramp in our day.
However, to the unconsciously indelicate all things are delicate. King Arthur's
people were not aware that they were indecent and I had presence of mind enough
not to mention it.
They were so
troubled about my enchanted clothes that they were mightily relieved, at last,
when old Merlin swept the difficulty away for them with a common-sense hint. He
asked them why they were so dull—why didn't it occur to them to strip me. In
half a minute I was as naked as a pair of tongs! And dear, dear, to think of
it: I was the only embarrassed person there. Everybody discussed me; and did it
as unconcernedly as if I had been a cabbage. Queen Guenever was as naively interested
as the rest, and said she had never seen anybody with legs just like mine
before. It was the only compliment I got—if it was a compliment.
Finally I was
carried off in one direction, and my perilous clothes in another. I was shoved
into a dark and narrow cell in a dungeon, with some scant remnants for dinner,
some moldy straw for a bed, and no end of rats for company.
Chapter V.
AN INSPIRATION
I WAS so tired
that even my fears were not able to keep me awake long.
When I next came
to myself, I seemed to have been asleep a very long time. My first thought was,
“Well, what an astonishing dream I've had! I reckon I've waked only just in
time to keep from being hanged or drowned or burned or something... I'll nap
again till the whistle blows, and then I'll go down to the arms factory and
have it out with Hercules.”
But just then I
heard the harsh music of rusty chains and bolts, a light flashed in my eyes,
and that butterfly, Clarence, stood before me! I gasped with surprise; my
breath almost got away from me.
“What!” I said,
“you here yet? Go along with the rest of the dream! scatter!”
But he only
laughed, in his light-hearted way, and fell to making fun of my sorry plight.
“All right,” I
said resignedly, “let the dream go on; I'm in no hurry.”
“Prithee what
dream?”
“What dream? Why,
the dream that I am in Arthur's court—a person who never existed; and that I am
talking to you, who are nothing but a work of the imagination.”
“Oh, la, indeed!
and is it a dream that you're to be burned to-morrow? Ho-ho—answer me that!”
The shock that
went through me was distressing. I now began to reason that my situation was in
the last degree serious, dream or no dream; for I knew by past experience of
the lifelike intensity of dreams, that to be burned to death, even in a dream,
would be very far from being a jest, and was a thing to be avoided, by any
means, fair or foul, that I could contrive. So I said beseechingly:
“Ah, Clarence,
good boy, only friend I've got,—for you ARE my friend, aren't you?—don't fail
me; help me to devise some way of escaping from this place!”
“Now do but hear
thyself! Escape? Why, man, the corridors are in guard and keep of men-at-arms.”
“No doubt, no
doubt. But how many, Clarence? Not many, I hope?”
“Full a score.
One may not hope to escape.” After a pause—hesitatingly: “and there be other
reasons—and weightier.”
“Other ones? What
are they?”
“Well, they
say—oh, but I daren't, indeed daren't!”
“Why, poor lad,
what is the matter? Why do you blench? Why do you tremble so?”
“Oh, in sooth, there
is need! I do want to tell you, but—”
“Come, come, be
brave, be a man—speak out, there's a good lad!”
He hesitated,
pulled one way by desire, the other way by fear; then he stole to the door and
peeped out, listening; and finally crept close to me and put his mouth to my
ear and told me his fearful news in a whisper, and with all the cowering
apprehension of one who was venturing upon awful ground and speaking of things
whose very mention might be freighted with death.
“Merlin, in his
malice, has woven a spell about this dungeon, and there bides not the man in
these kingdoms that would be desperate enough to essay to cross its lines with
you! Now God pity me, I have told it! Ah, be kind to me, be merciful to a poor
boy who means thee well; for an thou betray me I am lost!”
I laughed the
only really refreshing laugh I had had for some time; and shouted:
“Merlin has
wrought a spell! MERLIN, forsooth! That cheap old humbug, that maundering old
ass? Bosh, pure bosh, the silliest bosh in the world! Why, it does seem to me
that of all the childish, idiotic, chuckle-headed, chicken-livered
superstitions that ev—oh, damn Merlin!”
But Clarence had
slumped to his knees before I had half finished, and he was like to go out of
his mind with fright.
“Oh, beware!
These are awful words! Any moment these walls may crumble upon us if you say
such things. Oh call them back before it is too late!”
Now this strange
exhibition gave me a good idea and set me to thinking. If everybody about here
was so honestly and sincerely afraid of Merlin's pretended magic as Clarence
was, certainly a superior man like me ought to be shrewd enough to contrive
some way to take advantage of such a state of things. I went on thinking, and
worked out a plan. Then I said:
“Get up. Pull
yourself together; look me in the eye. Do you know why I laughed?”
“No—but for our
blessed Lady's sake, do it no more.”
“Well, I'll tell
you why I laughed. Because I'm a magician myself.”
“Thou!” The boy
recoiled a step, and caught his breath, for the thing hit him rather sudden;
but the aspect which he took on was very, very respectful. I took quick note of
that; it indicated that a humbug didn't need to have a reputation in this
asylum; people stood ready to take him at his word, without that. I resumed.
“I've know Merlin
seven hundred years, and he—”
“Seven hun—”
“Don't interrupt
me. He has died and come alive again thirteen times, and traveled under a new
name every time: Smith, Jones, Robinson, Jackson, Peters, Haskins, Merlin—a new
alias every time he turns up. I knew him in Egypt three hundred years ago; I
knew him in India five hundred years ago—he is always blethering around in my
way, everywhere I go; he makes me tired. He don't amount to shucks, as a
magician; knows some of the old common tricks, but has never got beyond the
rudiments, and never will. He is well enough for the provinces—one-night stands
and that sort of thing, you know—but dear me, HE oughtn't to set up for an
expert—anyway not where there's a real artist. Now look here, Clarence, I am
going to stand your friend, right along, and in return you must be mine. I want
you to do me a favor. I want you to get word to the king that I am a magician
myself—and the Supreme Grand High-yu-Muckamuck and head of the tribe, at that;
and I want him to be made to understand that I am just quietly arranging a
little calamity here that will make the fur fly in these realms if Sir Kay's
project is carried out and any harm comes to me. Will you get that to the king
for me?”
The poor boy was
in such a state that he could hardly answer me. It was pitiful to see a
creature so terrified, so unnerved, so demoralized. But he promised everything;
and on my side he made me promise over and over again that I would remain his
friend, and never turn against him or cast any enchantments upon him. Then he
worked his way out, staying himself with his hand along the wall, like a sick
person.
Presently this
thought occurred to me: how heedless I have been! When the boy gets calm, he
will wonder why a great magician like me should have begged a boy like him to
help me get out of this place; he will put this and that together, and will see
that I am a humbug.
I worried over
that heedless blunder for an hour, and called myself a great many hard names,
meantime. But finally it occurred to me all of a sudden that these animals
didn't reason; that THEY never put this and that together; that all their talk
showed that they didn't know a discrepancy when they saw it. I was at rest,
then.
But as soon as
one is at rest, in this world, off he goes on something else to worry about. It
occurred to me that I had made another blunder: I had sent the boy off to alarm
his betters with a threat—I intending to invent a calamity at my leisure; now
the people who are the readiest and eagerest and willingest to swallow miracles
are the very ones who are hungriest to see you perform them; suppose I should
be called on for a sample? Suppose I should be asked to name my calamity? Yes,
I had made a blunder; I ought to have invented my calamity first. “What shall I
do? what can I say, to gain a little time?” I was in trouble again; in the
deepest kind of trouble:... “There's a footstep!—they're coming. If I had only
just a moment to think... Good, I've got it. I'm all right.”
You see, it was
the eclipse. It came into my mind in the nick of time, how Columbus, or Cortez,
or one of those people, played an eclipse as a saving trump once, on some
savages, and I saw my chance. I could play it myself, now, and it wouldn't be
any plagiarism, either, because I should get it in nearly a thousand years
ahead of those parties.
Clarence came in,
subdued, distressed, and said:
“I hasted the
message to our liege the king, and straightway he had me to his presence. He
was frighted even to the marrow, and was minded to give order for your instant
enlargement, and that you be clothed in fine raiment and lodged as befitted one
so great; but then came Merlin and spoiled all; for he persuaded the king that
you are mad, and know not whereof you speak; and said your threat is but
foolishness and idle vaporing. They disputed long, but in the end, Merlin,
scoffing, said, 'Wherefore hath he not NAMED his brave calamity? Verily it is
because he cannot.' This thrust did in a most sudden sort close the king's
mouth, and he could offer naught to turn the argument; and so, reluctant, and
full loth to do you the discourtesy, he yet prayeth you to consider his
perplexed case, as noting how the matter stands, and name the calamity—if so be
you have determined the nature of it and the time of its coming. Oh, prithee
delay not; to delay at such a time were to double and treble the perils that
already compass thee about. Oh, be thou wise—name the calamity!”
I allowed silence
to accumulate while I got my impressiveness together, and then said:
“How long have I
been shut up in this hole?”
“Ye were shut up
when yesterday was well spent It is 9 of the morning now.”
“No! Then I have
slept well, sure enough. Nine in the morning now! And yet it is the very
complexion of midnight, to a shade. This is the 20th, then?”
“The 20th—yes.”
“And I am to be
burned alive to-morrow.” The boy shuddered.
“At what hour?”
“At high noon.”
“Now then, I will
tell you what to say.” I paused, and stood over that cowering lad a whole
minute in awful silence; then, in a voice deep, measured, charged with doom, I
began, and rose by dramatically graded stages to my colossal climax, which I
delivered in as sublime and noble a way as ever I did such a thing in my life:
“Go back and tell the king that at that hour I will smother the whole world in
the dead blackness of midnight; I will blot out the sun, and he shall never
shine again; the fruits of the earth shall rot for lack of light and warmth,
and the peoples of the earth shall famish and die, to the last man!”
I had to carry
the boy out myself, he sunk into such a collapse. I handed him over to the
soldiers, and went back.
Chapter VI.
THE ECLIPSE
IN the stillness
and the darkness, realization soon began to supplement knowledge. The mere
knowledge of a fact is pale; but when you come to REALIZE your fact, it takes
on color. It is all the difference between hearing of a man being stabbed to
the heart, and seeing it done. In the stillness and the darkness, the knowledge
that I was in deadly danger took to itself deeper and deeper meaning all the
time; a something which was realization crept inch by inch through my veins and
turned me cold.
But it is a
blessed provision of nature that at times like these, as soon as a man's
mercury has got down to a certain point there comes a revulsion, and he
rallies. Hope springs up, and cheerfulness along with it, and then he is in
good shape to do something for himself, if anything can be done. When my rally
came, it came with a bound. I said to myself that my eclipse would be sure to
save me, and make me the greatest man in the kingdom besides; and straightway
my mercury went up to the top of the tube, and my solicitudes all vanished. I
was as happy a man as there was in the world. I was even impatient for tomorrow
to come, I so wanted to gather in that great triumph and be the center of all
the nation's wonder and reverence. Besides, in a business way it would be the
making of me; I knew that.
Meantime there
was one thing which had got pushed into the background of my mind. That was the
halfconviction that when the nature of my proposed calamity should be reported
to those superstitious people, it would have such an effect that they would
want to compromise. So, by and by when I heard footsteps coming, that thought
was recalled to me, and I said to myself, “As sure as anything, it's the
compromise. Well, if it is good, all right, I will accept; but if it isn't, I
mean to stand my ground and play my hand for all it is worth.”
The door opened,
and some men-at-arms appeared. The leader said:
“The stake is
ready. Come!”
The stake! The
strength went out of me, and I almost fell down. It is hard to get one's breath
at such a time, such lumps come into one's throat, and such gaspings; but as
soon as I could speak, I said:
“But this is a
mistake—the execution is tomorrow.”
“Order changed;
been set forward a day. Haste thee!”
I was lost. There
was no help for me. I was dazed, stupefied; I had no command over myself, I
only wandered purposely about, like one out of his mind; so the soldiers took
hold of me, and pulled me along with them, out of the cell and along the maze
of underground corridors, and finally into the fierce glare of daylight and the
upper world. As we stepped into the vast enclosed court of the castle I got a
shock; for the first thing I saw was the stake, standing in the center, and
near it the piled fagots and a monk. On all four sides of the court the seated
multitudes rose rank above rank, forming sloping terraces that were rich with
color. The king and the queen sat in their thrones, the most conspicuous
figures there, of course.
To note all this,
occupied but a second. The next second Clarence had slipped from some place of
concealment and was pouring news into my ear, his eyes beaming with triumph and
gladness. He said:
“'Tis through ME
the change was wrought! And main hard have I worked to do it, too. But when I
revealed to them the calamity in store, and saw how mighty was the terror it
did engender, then saw I also that this was the time to strike! Wherefore I
diligently pretended, unto this and that and the other one, that your power
against the sun could not reach its full until the morrow; and so if any would
save the sun and the world, you must be slain to-day, while your enchantments
are but in the weaving and lack potency. Odsbodikins, it was but a dull lie, a
most indifferent invention, but you should have seen them seize it and swallow
it, in the frenzy of their fright, as it were salvation sent from heaven; and
all the while was I laughing in my sleeve the one moment, to see them so
cheaply deceived, and glorifying God the next, that He was content to let the
meanest of His creatures be His instrument to the saving of thy life. Ah how
happy has the matter sped! You will not need to do the sun a REAL hurt—ah,
forget not that, on your soul forget it not! Only make a little darkness—only
the littlest little darkness, mind, and cease with that. It will be sufficient.
They will see that I spoke falsely,—being ignorant, as they will fancy—and with
the falling of the first shadow of that darkness you shall see them go mad with
fear; and they will set you free and make you great! Go to thy triumph, now!
But remember—ah, good friend, I implore thee remember my supplication, and do
the blessed sun no hurt. For MY sake, thy true friend.”
I choked out some
words through my grief and misery; as much as to say I would spare the sun; for
which the lad's eyes paid me back with such deep and loving gratitude that I
had not the heart to tell him his good-hearted foolishness had ruined me and
sent me to my death.
As the soldiers
assisted me across the court the stillness was so profound that if I had been
blindfold I should have supposed I was in a solitude instead of walled in by
four thousand people. There was not a movement perceptible in those masses of
humanity; they were as rigid as stone images, and as pale; and dread sat upon
every countenance. This hush continued while I was being chained to the stake;
it still continued while the fagots were carefully and tediously piled about my
ankles, my knees, my thighs, my body. Then there was a pause, and a deeper
hush, if possible, and a man knelt down at my feet with a blazing torch; the
multitude strained forward, gazing, and parting slightly from their seats
without knowing it; the monk raised his hands above my head, and his eyes
toward the blue sky, and began some words in Latin; in this attitude he droned
on and on, a little while, and then stopped. I waited two or three moments;
then looked up; he was standing there petrified. With a common impulse the
multitude rose slowly up and stared into the sky. I followed their eyes, as
sure as guns, there was my eclipse beginning! The life went boiling through my
veins; I was a new man! The rim of black spread slowly into the sun's disk, my
heart beat higher and higher, and still the assemblage and the priest stared
into the sky, motionless. I knew that this gaze would be turned upon me, next.
When it was, l was ready. I was in one of the most grand attitudes I ever
struck, with my arm stretched up pointing to the sun. It was a noble effect.
You could SEE the shudder sweep the mass like a wave. Two shouts rang out, one
close upon the heels of the other:
“Apply the
torch!”
“I forbid it!”
The one was from
Merlin, the other from the king. Merlin started from his place—to apply the
torch himself, I judged. I said:
“Stay where you
are. If any man moves—even the king—before I give him leave, I will blast him
with thunder, I will consume him with lightnings!”
The multitude
sank meekly into their seats, and I was just expecting they would. Merlin
hesitated a moment or two, and I was on pins and needles during that little
while. Then he sat down, and I took a good breath; for I knew I was master of
the situation now. The king said:
“Be merciful,
fair sir, and essay no further in this perilous matter, lest disaster follow.
It was reported to us that your powers could not attain unto their full
strength until the morrow; but—”
“Your Majesty
thinks the report may have been a lie? It WAS a lie.”
That made an
immense effect; up went appealing hands everywhere, and the king was assailed
with a storm of supplications that I might be bought off at any price, and the
calamity stayed. The king was eager to comply. He said:
“Name any terms,
reverend sir, even to the halving of my kingdom; but banish this calamity,
spare the sun!”
My fortune was
made. I would have taken him up in a minute, but I couldn't stop an eclipse;
the thing was out of the question. So I asked time to consider. The king said:
“How long—ah, how
long, good sir? Be merciful; look, it groweth darker, moment by moment. Prithee
how long?”
“Not long. Half
an hour—maybe an hour.”
There were a
thousand pathetic protests, but I couldn't shorten up any, for I couldn't
remember how long a total eclipse lasts. I was in a puzzled condition, anyway,
and wanted to think. Something was wrong about that eclipse, and the fact was
very unsettling. If this wasn't the one I was after, how was I to tell whether
this was the sixth century, or nothing but a dream? Dear me, if I could only
prove it was the latter! Here was a glad new hope. If the boy was right about
the date, and this was surely the 20th, it WASN'T the sixth century. I reached
for the monk's sleeve, in considerable excitement, and asked him what day of
the month it was.
Hang him, he said
it was the TWENTY-FIRST! It made me turn cold to hear him. I begged him not to
make any mistake about it; but he was sure; he knew it was the 21st. So, that
feather-headed boy had botched things again! The time of the day was right for
the eclipse; I had seen that for myself, in the beginning, by the dial that was
near by. Yes, I was in King Arthur's court, and I might as well make the most
out of it I could.
The darkness was
steadily growing, the people becoming more and more distressed. I now said:
“I have
reflected, Sir King. For a lesson, I will let this darkness proceed, and spread
night in the world; but whether I blot out the sun for good, or restore it,
shall rest with you. These are the terms, to wit: You shall remain king over
all your dominions, and receive all the glories and honors that belong to the
kingship; but you shall appoint me your perpetual minister and executive, and
give me for my services one per cent. of such actual increase of revenue over
and above its present amount as I may succeed in creating for the state. If I
can't live on that, I sha'n't ask anybody to give me a lift. Is it
satisfactory?”
There was a
prodigious roar of applause, and out of the midst of it the king's voice rose,
saying:
“Away with his
bonds, and set him free! and do him homage, high and low, rich and poor, for he
is become the king's right hand, is clothed with power and authority, and his
seat is upon the highest step of the throne! Now sweep away this creeping
night, and bring the light and cheer again, that all the world may bless thee.”
But I said:
“That a common
man should be shamed before the world, is nothing; but it were dishonor to the
KING if any that saw his minister naked should not also see him delivered from
his shame. If I might ask that my clothes be brought again—”
“They are not
meet,” the king broke in. “Fetch raiment of another sort; clothe him like a
prince!”
My idea worked. I
wanted to keep things as they were till the eclipse was total, otherwise they
would be trying again to get me to dismiss the darkness, and of course I
couldn't do it. Sending for the clothes gained some delay, but not enough. So I
had to make another excuse. I said it would be but natural if the king should
change his mind and repent to some extent of what he had done under excitement;
therefore I would let the darkness grow a while, and if at the end of a
reasonable time the king had kept his mind the same, the darkness should be
dismissed. Neither the king nor anybody else was satisfied with that
arrangement, but I had to stick to my point.
It grew darker
and darker and blacker and blacker, while I struggled with those awkward
sixth-century clothes. It got to be pitch dark, at last, and the multitude
groaned with horror to feel the cold uncanny night breezes fan through the
place and see the stars come out and twinkle in the sky. At last the eclipse
was total, and I was very glad of it, but everybody else was in misery; which
was quite natural. I said:
“The king, by his
silence, still stands to the terms.” Then I lifted up my hands—stood just so a
moment—then I said, with the most awful solemnity: “Let the enchantment
dissolve and pass harmless away!”
There was no
response, for a moment, in that deep darkness and that graveyard hush. But when
the silver rim of the sun pushed itself out, a moment or two later, the
assemblage broke loose with a vast shout and came pouring down like a deluge to
smother me with blessings and gratitude; and Clarence was not the last of the
wash, to be sure.
Chapter VII.
MERLIN'S TOWER
INASMUCH as I was
now the second personage in the Kingdom, as far as political power and authorty
were concerned, much was made of me. My raiment was of silks and velvets and
cloth of gold, and by consequence was very showy, also uncomfortable. But habit
would soon reconcile me to my clothes; I was aware of that. I was given the
choicest suite of apartments in the castle, after the king's. They were aglow
with loud-colored silken hangings, but the stone floors had nothing but rushes
on them for a carpet, and they were misfit rushes at that, being not all of one
breed. As for conveniences, properly speaking, there weren't any. I mean LITTLE
conveniences; it is the little conveniences that make the real comfort of life.
The big oaken chairs, graced with rude carvings, were well enough, but that was
the stopping place. There was no soap, no matches, no looking-glass—except a
metal one, about as powerful as a pail of water. And not a chromo. I had been
used to chromos for years, and I saw now that without my suspecting it a
passion for art had got worked into the fabric of my being, and was become a
part of me. It made me homesick to look around over this proud and gaudy but
heartless barrenness and remember that in our house in East Hartford, all
unpretending as it was, you couldn't go into a room but you would find an
insurance-chromo, or at least a three-color God-Bless-Our-Home over the door;
and in the parlor we had nine. But here, even in my grand room of state, there
wasn't anything in the nature of a picture except a thing the size of a
bedquilt, which was either woven or knitted (it had darned places in it), and
nothing in it was the right color or the right shape; and as for proportions,
even Raphael himself couldn't have botched them more formidably, after all his
practice on those nightmares they call his “celebrated Hampton Court cartoons.”
Raphael was a bird. We had several of his chromos; one was his “Miraculous
Draught of Fishes,” where he puts in a miracle of his own—puts three men into a
canoe which wouldn't have held a dog without upsetting. I always admired to
study R.'s art, it was so fresh and unconventional.
There wasn't even
a bell or a speaking-tube in the castle. I had a great many servants, and those
that were on duty lolled in the anteroom; and when I wanted one of them I had
to go and call for him. There was no gas, there were no candles; a bronze dish
half full of boarding-house butter with a blazing rag floating in it was the
thing that produced what was regarded as light. A lot of these hung along the
walls and modified the dark, just toned it down enough to make it dismal. If
you went out at night, your servants carried torches. There were no books,
pens, paper or ink, and no glass in the openings they believed to be windows.
It is a little thing—glass is—until it is absent, then it becomes a big thing.
But perhaps the worst of all was, that there wasn't any sugar, coffee, tea, or
tobacco. I saw that I was just another Robinson Crusoe cast away on an
uninhabited island, with no society but some more or less tame animals, and if
I wanted to make life bearable I must do as he did—invent, contrive, create,
reorganize things; set brain and hand to work, and keep them busy. Well, that
was in my line.
One thing
troubled me along at first—the immense interest which people took in me.
Apparently the whole nation wanted a look at me. It soon transpired that the
eclipse had scared the British world almost to death; that while it lasted the
whole country, from one end to the other, was in a pitiable state of panic, and
the churches, hermitages, and monkeries overflowed with praying and weeping
poor creatures who thought the end of the world was come. Then had followed the
news that the producer of this awful event was a stranger, a mighty magician at
Arthur's court; that he could have blown out the sun like a candle, and was
just going to do it when his mercy was purchased, and he then dissolved his
enchantments, and was now recognized and honored as the man who had by his
unaided might saved the globe from destruction and its peoples from extinction.
Now if you consider that everybody believed that, and not only believed it, but
never even dreamed of doubting it, you will easily understand that there was
not a person in all Britain that would not have walked fifty miles to get a
sight of me. Of course I was all the talk—all other subjects were dropped; even
the king became suddenly a person of minor interest and notoriety. Within
twentyfour hours the delegations began to arrive, and from that time onward for
a fortnight they kept coming. The village was crowded, and all the countryside.
I had to go out a dozen times a day and show myself to these reverent and
awe-stricken multitudes. It came to be a great burden, as to time and trouble,
but of course it was at the same time compensatingly agreeable to be so
celebrated and such a center of homage. It turned Brer Merlin green with envy
and spite, which was a great satisfaction to me. But there was one thing I
couldn't understand—nobody had asked for an autograph. I spoke to Clarence
about it. By George! I had to explain to him what it was. Then he said nobody
in the country could read or write but a few dozen priests. Land! think of
that.
There was another
thing that troubled me a little. Those multitudes presently began to agitate
for another miracle. That was natural. To be able to carry back to their far
homes the boast that they had seen the man who could command the sun, riding in
the heavens, and be obeyed, would make them great in the eyes of their neighbors,
and envied by them all; but to be able to also say they had seen him work a
miracle themselves—why, people would come a distance to see THEM. The pressure
got to be pretty strong. There was going to be an eclipse of the moon, and I
knew the date and hour, but it was too far away. Two years. I would have given
a good deal for license to hurry it up and use it now when there was a big
market for it. It seemed a great pity to have it wasted so, and come lagging
along at a time when a body wouldn't have any use for it, as like as not. If it
had been booked for only a month away, I could have sold it short; but, as
matters stood, I couldn't seem to cipher out any way to make it do me any good,
so I gave up trying. Next, Clarence found that old Merlin was making himself
busy on the sly among those people. He was spreading a report that I was a
humbug, and that the reason I didn't accommodate the people with a miracle was
because I couldn't. I saw that I must do something. I presently thought out a
plan.
By my authority
as executive I threw Merlin into prison—the same cell I had occupied myself.
Then I gave public notice by herald and trumpet that I should be busy with
affairs of state for a fortnight, but about the end of that time I would take a
moment's leisure and blow up Merlin's stone tower by fires from heaven; in the
meantime, whoso listened to evil reports about me, let him beware. Furthermore,
I would perform but this one miracle at this time, and no more; if it failed to
satisfy and any murmured, I would turn the murmurers into horses, and make them
useful. Quiet ensued.
I took Clarence
into my confidence, to a certain degree, and we went to work privately. I told
him that this was a sort of miracle that required a trifle of preparation, and
that it would be sudden death to ever talk about these preparations to anybody.
That made his mouth safe enough. Clandestinely we made a few bushels of
first-rate blasting powder, and I superintended my armorers while they
constructed a lightningrod and some wires. This old stone tower was very
massive—and rather ruinous, too, for it was Roman, and four hundred years old.
Yes, and handsome, after a rude fashion, and clothed with ivy from base to
summit, as with a shirt of scale mail. It stood on a lonely eminence, in good
view from the castle, and about half a mile away.
Working by night,
we stowed the powder in the tower—dug stones out, on the inside, and buried the
powder in the walls themselves, which were fifteen feet thick at the base. We
put in a peck at a time, in a dozen places. We could have blown up the Tower of
London with these charges. When the thirteenth night was come we put up our
lightning-rod, bedded it in one of the batches of powder, and ran wires from it
to the other batches. Everybody had shunned that locality from the day of my
proclamation, but on the morning of the fourteenth I thought best to warn the
people, through the heralds, to keep clear away—a quarter of a mile away. Then
added, by command, that at some time during the twenty-four hours I would
consummate the miracle, but would first give a brief notice; by flags on the
castle towers if in the daytime, by torch-baskets in the same places if at
night.
Thunder-showers
had been tolerably frequent of late, and I was not much afraid of a failure;
still, I shouldn't have cared for a delay of a day or two; I should have
explained that I was busy with affairs of state yet, and the people must wait.
Of course, we had
a blazing sunny day—almost the first one without a cloud for three weeks;
things always happen so. I kept secluded, and watched the weather. Clarence
dropped in from time to time and said the public excitement was growing and
growing all the time, and the whole country filling up with human masses as far
as one could see from the battlements. At last the wind sprang up and a cloud
appeared—in the right quarter, too, and just at nightfall. For a little while I
watched that distant cloud spread and blacken, then I judged it was time for me
to appear. I ordered the torch-baskets to be lit, and Merlin liberated and sent
to me. A quarter of an hour later I ascended the parapet and there found the
king and the court assembled and gazing off in the darkness toward Merlin's
Tower. Already the darkness was so heavy that one could not see far; these
people and the old turrets, being partly in deep shadow and partly in the red
glow from the great torch-baskets overhead, made a good deal of a picture.
Merlin arrived in
a gloomy mood. I said:
“You wanted to
burn me alive when I had not done you any harm, and latterly you have been
trying to injure my professional reputation. Therefore I am going to call down
fire and blow up your tower, but it is only fair to give you a chance; now if
you think you can break my enchantments and ward off the fires, step to the
bat, it's your innings.”
“I can, fair sir,
and I will. Doubt it not.”
He drew an
imaginary circle on the stones of the roof, and burnt a pinch of powder in it,
which sent up a small cloud of aromatic smoke, whereat everybody fell back and
began to cross themselves and get uncomfortable. Then he began to mutter and
make passes in the air with his hands. He worked himself up slowly and
gradually into a sort of frenzy, and got to thrashing around with his arms like
the sails of a windmill. By this time the storm had about reached us; the gusts
of wind were flaring the torches and making the shadows swash about, the first
heavy drops of rain were falling, the world abroad was black as pitch, the
lightning began to wink fitfully. Of course, my rod would be loading itself
now. In fact, things were imminent. So I said:
“You have had
time enough. I have given you every advantage, and not interfered. It is plain
your magic is weak. It is only fair that I begin now.”
I made about
three passes in the air, and then there was an awful crash and that old tower
leaped into the sky in chunks, along with a vast volcanic fountain of fire that
turned night to noonday, and showed a thousand acres of human beings groveling
on the ground in a general collapse of consternation. Well, it rained mortar
and masonry the rest of the week. This was the report; but probably the facts
would have modified it.
It was an
effective miracle. The great bothersome temporary population vanished. There
were a good many thousand tracks in the mud the next morning, but they were all
outward bound. If I had advertised another miracle I couldn't have raised an
audience with a sheriff.
Merlin's stock
was flat. The king wanted to stop his wages; he even wanted to banish him, but
I interfered. I said he would be useful to work the weather, and attend to
small matters like that, and I would give him a lift now and then when his poor
little parlormagic soured on him. There wasn't a rag of his tower left, but I
had the government rebuild it for him, and advised him to take boarders; but he
was too hightoned for that. And as for being grateful, he never even said thank
you. He was a rather hard lot, take him how you might; but then you couldn't
fairly expect a man to be sweet that had been set back so.
Chapter VIII.
THE BOSS
TO be vested with
enormous authority is a fine thing; but to have the on-looking world consent to
it is a finer. The tower episode solidified my power, and made it impregnable.
If any were perchance disposed to be jealous and critical before that, they
experienced a change of heart, now. There was not any one in the kingdom who
would have considered it good judgment to meddle with my matters.
I was fast
getting adjusted to my situation and circumstances. For a time, I used to wake
up, mornings, and smile at my “dream,” and listen for the Colt's factory
whistle; but that sort of thing played itself out, gradually, and at last I was
fully able to realize that I was actually living in the sixth century, and in
Arthur's court, not a lunatic asylum. After that, I was just as much at home in
that century as I could have been in any other; and as for preference, I
wouldn't have traded it for the twentieth. Look at the opportunities here for a
man of knowledge, brains, pluck, and enterprise to sail in and grow up with the
country. The grandest field that ever was; and all my own; not a competitor;
not a man who wasn't a baby to me in acquirements and capacities; whereas, what
would I amount to in the twentieth century? I should be foreman of a factory,
that is about all; and could drag a seine down street any day and catch a
hundred better men than myself.
What a jump I had
made! I couldn't keep from thinking about it, and contemplating it, just as one
does who has struck oil. There was nothing back of me that could approach it,
unless it might be Joseph's case; and Joseph's only approached it, it didn't equal
it, quite. For it stands to reason that as Joseph's splendid financial
ingenuities advantaged nobody but the king, the general public must have
regarded him with a good deal of disfavor, whereas I had done my entire public
a kindness in sparing the sun, and was popular by reason of it.
I was no shadow
of a king; I was the substance; the king himself was the shadow. My power was
colossal; and it was not a mere name, as such things have generally been, it
was the genuine article. I stood here, at the very spring and source of the
second great period of the world's history; and could see the trickling stream
of that history gather and deepen and broaden, and roll its mighty tides down
the far centuries; and I could note the upspringing of adventurers like myself
in the shelter of its long array of thrones: De Montforts, Gavestons,
Mortimers, Villierses; the war-making, campaign-directing wantons of France,
and Charles the Second's scepter-wielding drabs; but nowhere in the procession
was my fullsized fellow visible. I was a Unique; and glad to know that that
fact could not be dislodged or challenged for thirteen centuries and a half,
for sure. Yes, in power I was equal to the king. At the same time there was
another power that was a trifle stronger than both of us put together. That was
the Church. I do not wish to disguise that fact. I couldn't, if I wanted to.
But never mind about that, now; it will show up, in its proper place, later on.
It didn't cause me any trouble in the beginning—at least any of consequence.
Well, it was a
curious country, and full of interest. And the people! They were the quaintest
and simplest and trustingest race; why, they were nothing but rabbits. It was
pitiful for a person born in a wholesome free atmosphere to listen to their humble
and hearty outpourings of loyalty toward their king and Church and nobility; as
if they had any more occasion to love and honor king and Church and noble than
a slave has to love and honor the lash, or a dog has to love and honor the
stranger that kicks him! Why, dear me,ANY kind of royalty, howsoever modified,
ANY kind of aristocracy, howsoever pruned, is rightly an insult; but if you are
born and brought up under that sort of arrangement you probably never find it
out for yourself, and don't believe it when somebody else tells you. It is
enough to make a body ashamed of his race to think of the sort of froth that
has always occupied its thrones without shadow of right or reason, and the
seventh-rate people that have always figured as its aristocracies—a company of
monarchs and nobles who, as a rule, would have achieved only poverty and
obscurity if left, like their betters, to their own exertions.
The most of King
Arthur's British nation were slaves, pure and simple, and bore that name, and
wore the iron collar on their necks; and the rest were slaves in fact, but
without the name; they imagined themselves men and freemen, and called
themselves so. The truth was, the nation as a body was in the world for one
object, and one only: to grovel before king and Church and noble; to slave for
them, sweat blood for them, starve that they might be fed, work that they might
play, drink misery to the dregs that they might be happy, go naked that they
might wear silks and jewels, pay taxes that they might be spared from paying
them, be familiar all their lives with the degrading language and postures of
adulation that they might walk in pride and think themselves the gods of this
world. And for all this, the thanks they got were cuffs and contempt; and so
poor-spirited were they that they took even this sort of attention as an honor.
Inherited ideas
are a curious thing, and interesting to observe and examine. I had mine, the
king and his people had theirs. In both cases they flowed in ruts worn deep by
time and habit, and the man who should have proposed to divert them by reason
and argument would have had a long contract on his hands. For instance, those
people had inherited the idea that all men without title and a long pedigree,
whether they had great natural gifts and acquirements or hadn't, were creatures
of no more consideration than so many animals, bugs, insects; whereas I had
inherited the idea that human daws who can consent to masquerade in the
peacock-shams of inherited dignities and unearned titles, are of no good but to
be laughed at. The way I was looked upon was odd, but it was natural. You know
how the keeper and the public regard the elephant in the menagerie: well, that
is the idea. They are full of admiration of his vast bulk and his prodigious
strength; they speak with pride of the fact that he can do a hundred marvels
which are far and away beyond their own powers; and they speak with the same
pride of the fact that in his wrath he is able to drive a thousand men before
him. But does that make him one of THEM? No; the raggedest tramp in the pit
would smile at the idea. He couldn't comprehend it; couldn't take it in;
couldn't in any remote way conceive of it. Well, to the king, the nobles, and
all the nation, down to the very slaves and tramps, I was just that kind of an
elephant, and nothing more. I was admired, also feared; but it was as an animal
is admired and feared. The animal is not reverenced, neither was I; I was not
even respected. I had no pedigree, no inherited title; so in the king's and nobles'
eyes I was mere dirt; the people regarded me with wonder and awe, but there was
no reverence mixed with it; through the force of inherited ideas they were not
able to conceive of anything being entitled to that except pedigree and
lordship. There you see the hand of that awful power, the Roman Catholic
Church. In two or three little centuries it had converted a nation of men to a
nation of worms. Before the day of the Church's supremacy in the world, men
were men, and held their heads up, and had a man's pride and spirit and
independence; and what of greatness and position a person got, he got mainly by
achievement, not by birth. But then the Church came to the front, with an axe
to grind; and she was wise, subtle, and knew more than one way to skin a cat—or
a nation; she invented “divine right of kings,” and propped it all around,
brick by brick, with the Beatitudes—wrenching them from their good purpose to
make them fortify an evil one; she preached (to the commoner) humility,
obedience to superiors, the beauty of self-sacrifice; she preached (to the
commoner) meekness under insult; preached (still to the commoner, always to the
commoner) patience, meanness of spirit, non-resistance under oppression; and
she introduced heritable ranks and aristocracies, and taught all the Christian
populations of the earth to bow down to them and worship them. Even down to my
birth-century that poison was still in the blood of Christendom, and the best
of English commoners was still content to see his inferiors impudently
continuing to hold a number of positions, such as lordships and the throne, to
which the grotesque laws of his country did not allow him to aspire; in fact,
he was not merely contented with this strange condition of things, he was even
able to persuade himself that he was proud of it. It seems to show that there
isn't anything you can't stand, if you are only born and bred to it. Of course
that taint, that reverence for rank and title, had been in our American blood,
too—I know that; but when I left America it had disappeared—at least to all
intents and purposes. The remnant of it was restricted to the dudes and
dudesses. When a disease has worked its way down to that level, it may fairly
be said to be out of the system.
But to return to
my anomalous position in King Arthur's kingdom. Here I was, a giant among
pigmies, a man among children, a master intelligence among intellectual moles:
by all rational measurement the one and only actually great man in that whole
British world; and yet there and then, just as in the remote England of my
birth-time, the sheep-witted earl who could claim long descent from a king's
leman, acquired at second-hand from the slums of London, was a better man than
I was. Such a personage was fawned upon in Arthur's realm and reverently looked
up to by everybody, even though his dispositions were as mean as his
intelligence, and his morals as base as his lineage. There were times when HE
could sit down in the king's presence, but I couldn't. I could have got a title
easily enough, and that would have raised me a large step in everybody's eyes;
even in the king's, the giver of it. But I didn't ask for it; and I declined it
when it was offered. I couldn't have enjoyed such a thing with my notions; and
it wouldn't have been fair, anyway, because as far back as I could go, our
tribe had always been short of the bar sinister. I couldn't have felt really
and satisfactorily fine and proud and set-up over any title except one that
should come from the nation itself, the only legitimate source; and such an one
I hoped to win; and in the course of years of honest and honorable endeavor, I
did win it and did wear it with a high and clean pride. This title fell
casually from the lips of a blacksmith, one day, in a village, was caught up as
a happy thought and tossed from mouth to mouth with a laugh and an affirmative
vote; in ten days it had swept the kingdom, and was become as familiar as the
king's name. I was never known by any other designation afterward, whether in
the nation's talk or in grave debate upon matters of state at the council-board
of the sovereign. This title, translated into modern speech, would be THE BOSS.
Elected by the nation. That suited me. And it was a pretty high title. There
were very few THE'S, and I was one of them. If you spoke of the duke, or the
earl, or the bishop, how could anybody tell which one you meant? But if you
spoke of The King or The Queen or The Boss, it was different.
Well, I liked the
king, and as king I respected him—respected the office; at least respected it
as much as I was capable of respecting any unearned supremacy; but as MEN I
looked down upon him and his nobles—privately. And he and they liked me, and
respected my office; but as an animal, without birth or sham title, they looked
down upon me—and were not particularly private about it, either. I didn't
charge for my opinion about them, and they didn't charge for their opinion
about me: the account was square, the books balanced, everybody was satisfied.
Chapter IX.
THE TOURNAMENT
THEY were always
having grand tournaments there at Camelot; and very stirring and picturesque
and ridiculous human bull-fights they were, too, but just a little wearisome to
the practical mind. However, I was generally on hand—for two reasons: a man
must not hold himself aloof from the things which his friends and his community
have at heart if he would be liked—especially as a statesman; and both as
business man and statesman I wanted to study the tournament and see if I
couldn't invent an improvement on it. That reminds me to remark, in passing,
that the very first official thing I did, in my administration—and it was on
the very first day of it, too—was to start a patent office; for I knew that a
country without a patent office and good patent laws was just a crab, and
couldn't travel any way but sideways or backways.
Things ran along,
a tournament nearly every week; and now and then the boys used to want me to
take a hand—I mean Sir Launcelot and the rest—but I said I would by and by; no
hurry yet, and too much government machinery to oil up and set to rights and
start a-going.
We had one
tournament which was continued from day to day during more than a week, and as
many as five hundred knights took part in it, from first to last. They were
weeks gathering. They came on horseback from everywhere; from the very ends of
the country, and even from beyond the sea; and many brought ladies, and all
brought squires and troops of servants. It was a most gaudy and gorgeous crowd,
as to costumery, and very characteristic of the country and the time, in the
way of high animal spirits, innocent indecencies of language, and happy-hearted
indifference to morals. It was fight or look on, all day and every day; and
sing, gamble, dance, carouse half the night every night. They had a most noble
good time. You never saw such people. Those banks of beautiful ladies, shining
in their barbaric splendors, would see a knight sprawl from his horse in the
lists with a lanceshaft the thickness of your ankle clean through him and the
blood spouting, and instead of fainting they would clap their hands and crowd
each other for a better view; only sometimes one would dive into her
handkerchief, and look ostentatiously broken-hearted, and then you could lay
two to one that there was a scandal there somewhere and she was afraid the
public hadn't found it out.
The noise at
night would have been annoying to me ordinarily, but I didn't mind it in the
present circumstances, because it kept me from hearing the quacks detaching
legs and arms from the day's cripples. They ruined an uncommon good old
cross-cut saw for me, and broke the saw-buck, too, but I let it pass. And as
for my axe—well, I made up my mind that the next time I lent an axe to a
surgeon I would pick my century.
I not only
watched this tournament from day to day, but detailed an intelligent priest
from my Department of Public Morals and Agriculture, and ordered him to report
it; for it was my purpose by and by, when I should have gotten the people along
far enough, to start a newspaper. The first thing you want in a new country, is
a patent office; then work up your school system; and after that, out with your
paper. A newspaper has its faults, and plenty of them, but no matter, it's hark
from the tomb for a dead nation, and don't you forget it. You can't resurrect a
dead nation without it; there isn't any way. So I wanted to sample things, and
be finding out what sort of reportermaterial I might be able to rake together
out of the sixth century when I should come to need it.
Well, the priest
did very well, considering. He got in all the details, and that is a good thing
in a local item: you see, he had kept books for the undertakerdepartment of his
church when he was younger, and there, you know, the money's in the details;
the more details, the more swag: bearers, mutes, candles, prayers—everything
counts; and if the bereaved don't buy prayers enough you mark up your candles
with a forked pencil, and your bill shows up all right. And he had a good knack
at getting in the complimentary thing here and there about a knight that was
likely to advertise—no, I mean a knight that had influence; and he also had a
neat gift of exaggeration, for in his time he had kept door for a pious hermit
who lived in a sty and worked miracles.
Of course this
novice's report lacked whoop and crash and lurid description, and therefore
wanted the true ring; but its antique wording was quaint and sweet and simple,
and full of the fragrances and flavors of the time, and these little merits
made up in a measure for its more important lacks. Here is an extract from it:
Then Sir Brian de
les Isles and Grummore Grummorsum, knights of the castle, encountered with Sir
Aglovale and Sir Tor, and Sir Tor smote down Sir Grummore Grummorsum to the
earth. Then came Sir Carados of the dolorous tower, and Sir Turquine, knights
of the castle, and there encountered with them Sir Percivale de Galis and Sir
Lamorak de Galis, that were two brethren, and there encountered Sir Percivale
with Sir Carados, and either brake their spears unto their hands, and then Sir
Turquine with Sir Lamorak, and either of them smote down other, horse and all,
to the earth, and either parties rescued other and horsed them again. And Sir
Arnold, and Sir Gauter, knights of the castle, encountered with Sir Brandiles
and Sir Kay, and these four knights encountered mightily, and brake their
spears to their hands. Then came Sir Pertolope from the castle, and there
encountered with him Sir Lionel, and there Sir Pertolope the green knight smote
down Sir Lionel, brother to Sir Launcelot. All this was marked by noble
heralds, who bare him best, and their names. Then Sir Bleobaris brake his spear
upon Sir Gareth, but of that stroke Sir Bleobaris fell to the earth. When Sir
Galihodin saw that, he bad Sir Gareth keep him, and Sir Gareth smote him to the
earth. Then Sir Galihud gat a spear to avenge his brother, and in the same wise
Sir Gareth served him, and Sir Dinadan and his brother La Cote Male Taile, and
Sir Sagramore le Disirous, and Sir Dodinas le Savage; all these he bare down with
one spear. When King Aswisance of Ireland saw Sir Gareth fare so he marvelled
what he might be, that one time seemed green, and another time, at his again
coming, he seemed blue. And thus at every course that he rode to and fro he
changed his color, so that there might neither king nor knight have ready
cognizance of him. Then Sir Agwisance the King of Ireland encountered with Sir
Gareth, and there Sir Gareth smote him from his horse, saddle and all. And then
came King Carados of Scotland, and Sir Gareth smote him down horse and man. And
in the same wise he served King Uriens of the land of Gore. And then there came
in Six Bagdemagus, and Sir Gareth smote him down horse and man to the earth.
And Bagdemagus's son Meliganus brake a spear upon Sir Gareth mightily and
knightly. And then Sir Galahault the noble prince cried on high, Knight with
the many colors, well hast thou justed; now make thee ready that I may just
with thee. Sir Gareth heard him, and he gat a great spear, and so they
encountered together, and there the prince brake his spear; but Sir Gareth
smote him upon the left side of the helm, that he reeled here and there, and he
had fallen down had not his men recovered him. Truly, said King Arthur, that
knight with the many colors is a good knight. Wherefore the king called unto
him Sir Launcelot, and prayed him to encounter with that knight. Sir, said
Launcelot, I may as well find in my heart for to forbear him at this time, for
he hath had travail enough this day, and when a good knight doth so well upon
some day, it is no good knight's part to let him of his worship, and, namely,
when he seeth a knight hath done so great labour; for peradventure, said Sir
Launcelot, his quarrel is here this day, and peradventure he is best beloved
with this lady of all that be here, for I see well he paineth himself and
enforceth him to do great deeds, and therefore, said Sir Launcelot, as for me,
this day he shall have the honour; though it lay in my power to put him from
it, I would not.
There was an
unpleasant little episode that day, which for reasons of state I struck out of
my priest's report. You will have noticed that Garry was doing some great
fighting in the engagement. When I say Garry I mean Sir Gareth. Garry was my
private pet name for him; it suggests that I had a deep affection for him, and
that was the case. But it was a private pet name only, and never spoken aloud
to any one, much less to him; being a noble, he would not have endured a
familiarity like that from me. Well, to proceed: I sat in the private box set
apart for me as the king's minister. While Sir Dinadan was waiting for his turn
to enter the lists, he came in there and sat down and began to talk; for he was
always making up to me, because I was a stranger and he liked to have a fresh
market for his jokes, the most of them having reached that stage of wear where
the teller has to do the laughing himself while the other person looks sick. I
had always responded to his efforts as well as I could, and felt a very deep
and real kindness for him, too, for the reason that if by malice of fate he
knew the one particular anecdote which I had heard oftenest and had most hated
and most loathed all my life, he had at least spared it me. It was one which I
had heard attributed to every humorous person who had ever stood on American
soil, from Columbus down to Artemus Ward. It was about a humorous lecturer who
flooded an ignorant audience with the killingest jokes for an hour and never
got a laugh; and then when he was leaving, some gray simpletons wrung him
gratefully by the hand and said it had been the funniest thing they had ever
heard, and “it was all they could do to keep from laughin' right out in
meetin'.” That anecdote never saw the day that it was worth the telling; and
yet I had sat under the telling of it hundreds and thousands and millions and
billions of times, and cried and cursed all the way through. Then who can hope
to know what my feelings were, to hear this armorplated ass start in on it
again, in the murky twilight of tradition, before the dawn of history, while
even Lactantius might be referred to as “the late Lactantius,” and the Crusades
wouldn't be born for five hundred years yet? Just as he finished, the call-boy
came; so, haw-hawing like a demon, he went rattling and clanking out like a
crate of loose castings, and I knew nothing more. It was some minutes before I
came to, and then I opened my eyes just in time to see Sir Gareth fetch him an
awful welt, and I unconsciously out with the prayer, “I hope to gracious he's
killed!” But by ill-luck, before I had got half through with the words, Sir
Gareth crashed into Sir Sagramor le Desirous and sent him thundering over his
horse's crupper, and Sir Sagramor caught my remark and thought I meant it for
HIM.
Well, whenever
one of those people got a thing into his head, there was no getting it out
again. I knew that, so I saved my breath, and offered no explanations. As soon
as Sir Sagramor got well, he notified me that there was a little account to
settle between us, and he named a day three or four years in the future; place
of settlement, the lists where the offense had been given. I said I would be
ready when he got back. You see, he was going for the Holy Grail. The boys all
took a flier at the Holy Grail now and then. It was a several years' cruise.
They always put in the long absence snooping around, in the most conscientious
way, though none of them had any idea where the Holy Grail really was, and I
don't think any of them actually expected to find it, or would have known what
to do with it if he HAD run across it. You see, it was just the Northwest
Passage of that day, as you may say; that was all. Every year expeditions went
out holy grailing, and next year relief expeditions went out to hunt for THEM.
There was worlds of reputation in it, but no money. Why, they actually wanted
ME to put in! Well, I should smile.
Chapter X.
BEGINNINGS OF
CIVILIZATION
THE Round Table
soon heard of the challenge, and of course it was a good deal discussed, for
such things interested the boys. The king thought I ought now to set forth in
quest of adventures, so that I might gain renown and be the more worthy to meet
Sir Sagramor when the several years should have rolled away. I excused myself
for the present; I said it would take me three or four years yet to get things
well fixed up and going smoothly; then I should be ready; all the chances were
that at the end of that time Sir Sagramor would still be out grailing, so no
valuable time would be lost by the postponement; I should then have been in
office six or seven years, and I believed my system and machinery would be so
well developed that I could take a holiday without its working any harm.
I was pretty well
satisfied with what I had already accomplished. In various quiet nooks and
corners I had the beginnings of all sorts of industries under way—nuclei of
future vast factories, the iron and steel missionaries of my future
civilization. In these were gathered together the brightest young minds I could
find, and I kept agents out raking the country for more, all the time. I was
training a crowd of ignorant folk into experts—experts in every sort of
handiwork and scientific calling. These nurseries of mine went smoothly and
privately along undisturbed in their obscure country retreats, for nobody was allowed
to come into their precincts without a special permit—for I was afraid of the
Church.
I had started a
teacher-factory and a lot of Sundayschools the first thing; as a result, I now
had an admirable system of graded schools in full blast in those places, and
also a complete variety of Protestant congregations all in a prosperous and
growing condition. Everybody could be any kind of a Christian he wanted to;
there was perfect freedom in that matter. But I confined public religious
teaching to the churches and the Sunday-schools, permitting nothing of it in my
other educational buildings. I could have given my own sect the preference and
made everybody a Presbyterian without any trouble, but that would have been to
affront a law of human nature: spiritual wants and instincts are as various in
the human family as are physical appetites, complexions, and features, and a
man is only at his best, morally, when he is equipped with the religious
garment whose color and shape and size most nicely accommodate themselves to
the spiritual complexion, angularities, and stature of the individual who wears
it; and, besides, I was afraid of a united Church; it makes a mighty power, the
mightiest conceivable, and then when it by and by gets into selfish hands, as
it is always bound to do, it means death to human liberty and paralysis to
human thought.
All mines were
royal property, and there were a good many of them. They had formerly been
worked as savages always work mines—holes grubbed in the earth and the mineral
brought up in sacks of hide by hand, at the rate of a ton a day; but I had
begun to put the mining on a scientific basis as early as I could.
Yes, I had made
pretty handsome progress when Sir Sagramor's challenge struck me.
Four years rolled
by—and then! Well, you would never imagine it in the world. Unlimited power is
the ideal thing when it is in safe hands. The despotism of heaven is the one
absolutely perfect government. An earthly despotism would be the absolutely
perfect earthly government, if the conditions were the same, namely, the despot
the perfectest individual of the human race, and his lease of life perpetual.
But as a perishable perfect man must die, and leave his despotism in the hands
of an imperfect successor, an earthly despotism is not merely a bad form of
government, it is the worst form that is possible.
My works showed
what a despot could do with the resources of a kingdom at his command.
Unsuspected by this dark land, I had the civilization of the nineteenth century
booming under its very nose! It was fenced away from the public view, but there
it was, a gigantic and unassailable fact—and to be heard from, yet, if I lived
and had luck. There it was, as sure a fact and as substantial a fact as any
serene volcano, standing innocent with its smokeless summit in the blue sky and
giving no sign of the rising hell in its bowels. My schools and churches were
children four years before; they were grown-up now; my shops of that day were
vast factories now; where I had a dozen trained men then, I had a thousand now;
where I had one brilliant expert then, I had fifty now. I stood with my hand on
the cock, so to speak, ready to turn it on and flood the midnight world with
light at any moment. But I was not going to do the thing in that sudden way. It
was not my policy. The people could not have stood it; and, moreover, I should
have had the Established Roman Catholic Church on my back in a minute.
No, I had been
going cautiously all the while. I had had confidential agents trickling through
the country some time, whose office was to undermine knighthood by
imperceptible degrees, and to gnaw a little at this and that and the other
superstition, and so prepare the way gradually for a better order of things. I
was turning on my light one-candle-power at a time, and meant to continue to do
so.
I had scattered
some branch schools secretly about the kingdom, and they were doing very well.
I meant to work this racket more and more, as time wore on, if nothing occurred
to frighten me. One of my deepest secrets was my West Point—my military
academy. I kept that most jealously out of sight; and I did the same with my
naval academy which I had established at a remote seaport. Both were prospering
to my satisfaction.
Clarence was
twenty-two now, and was my head executive, my right hand. He was a darling; he
was equal to anything; there wasn't anything he couldn't turn his hand to. Of
late I had been training him for journalism, for the time seemed about right
for a start in the newspaper line; nothing big, but just a small weekly for
experimental circulation in my civilizationnurseries. He took to it like a duck;
there was an editor concealed in him, sure. Already he had doubled himself in
one way; he talked sixth century and wrote nineteenth. His journalistic style
was climbing, steadily; it was already up to the back settlement Alabama mark,
and couldn't be told from the editorial output of that region either by matter
or flavor.
We had another
large departure on hand, too. This was a telegraph and a telephone; our first
venture in this line. These wires were for private service only, as yet, and
must be kept private until a riper day should come. We had a gang of men on the
road, working mainly by night. They were stringing ground wires; we were afraid
to put up poles, for they would attract too much inquiry. Ground wires were
good enough, in both instances, for my wires were protected by an insulation of
my own invention which was perfect. My men had orders to strike across country,
avoiding roads, and establishing connection with any considerable towns whose
lights betrayed their presence, and leaving experts in charge. Nobody could
tell you how to find any place in the kingdom, for nobody ever went
intentionally to any place, but only struck it by accident in his wanderings,
and then generally left it without thinking to inquire what its name was. At
one time and another we had sent out topographical expeditions to survey and
map the kingdom, but the priests had always interfered and raised trouble. So
we had given the thing up, for the present; it would be poor wisdom to
antagonize the Church.
As for the general
condition of the country, it was as it had been when I arrived in it, to all
intents and purposes. I had made changes, but they were necessarily slight, and
they were not noticeable. Thus far, I had not even meddled with taxation,
outside of the taxes which provided the royal revenues. I had systematized
those, and put the service on an effective and righteous basis. As a result,
these revenues were already quadrupled, and yet the burden was so much more
equably distributed than before, that all the kingdom felt a sense of relief,
and the praises of my administration were hearty and general.
Personally, I
struck an interruption, now, but I did not mind it, it could not have happened
at a better time. Earlier it could have annoyed me, but now everything was in
good hands and swimming right along. The king had reminded me several times, of
late, that the postponement I had asked for, four years before, had about run
out now. It was a hint that I ought to be starting out to seek adventures and
get up a reputation of a size to make me worthy of the honor of breaking a
lance with Sir Sagramor, who was still out grailing, but was being hunted for
by various relief expeditions, and might be found any year, now. So you see I
was expecting this interruption; it did not take me by surprise.
Chapter XI.
THE YANKEE IN
SEARCH OF ADVENTURES.
THERE never was
such a country for wandering liars; and they were of both sexes. Hardly a month
went by without one of these tramps arriving; and generally loaded with a tale
about some princess or other wanting help to get her out of some far-away
castle where she was held in captivity by a lawless scoundrel, usually a giant.
Now you would think that the first thing the king would do after listening to
such a novelette from an entire stranger, would be to ask for credentials—yes,
and a pointer or two as to locality of castle, best route to it, and so on. But
nobody ever thought of so simple and common-sense a thing at that. No,
everybody swallowed these people's lies whole, and never asked a question of
any sort or about anything. Well, one day when I was not around, one of these
people came along—it was a she one, this time—and told a tale of the usual
pattern. Her mistress was a captive in a vast and gloomy castle, along with
forty-four other young and beautiful girls, pretty much all of them princesses;
they had been languishing in that cruel captivity for twenty-six years; the
masters of the castle were three stupendous brothers, each with four arms and
one eye—the eye in the center of the forehead, and as big as a fruit. Sort of
fruit not mentioned; their usual slovenliness in statistics.
Would you believe
it? The king and the whole Round Table were in raptures over this preposterous
opportunity for adventure. Every knight of the Table jumped for the chance, and
begged for it; but to their vexation and chagrin the king conferred it upon me,
who had not asked for it at all.
By an effort, I
contained my joy when Clarence brought me the news. But he—he could not contain
his. His mouth gushed delight and gratitude in a steady discharge—delight in my
good fortune, gratitude to the king for this splendid mark of his favor for me.
He could keep neither his legs nor his body still, but pirouetted about the
place in an airy ecstasy of happiness.
On my side, I
could have cursed the kindness that conferred upon me this benefaction, but I
kept my vexation under the surface for policy's sake, and did what I could to
let on to be glad. Indeed, I SAID I was glad. And in a way it was true; I was
as glad as a person is when he is scalped.
Well, one must
make the best of things, and not waste time with useless fretting, but get down
to business and see what can be done. In all lies there is wheat among the
chaff; I must get at the wheat in this case: so I sent for the girl and she
came. She was a comely enough creature, and soft and modest, but, if signs went
for anything, she didn't know as much as a lady's watch. I said:
“My dear, have
you been questioned as to particulars?”
She said she
hadn't.
“Well, I didn't
expect you had, but I thought I would ask, to make sure; it's the way I've been
raised. Now you mustn't take it unkindly if I remind you that as we don't know
you, we must go a little slow. You may be all right, of course, and we'll hope
that you are; but to take it for granted isn't business. YOU understand that.
I'm obliged to ask you a few questions; just answer up fair and square, and
don't be afraid. Where do you live, when you are at home?”
“In the land of
Moder, fair sir.”
“Land of Moder. I
don't remember hearing of it before. Parents living?”
“As to that, I
know not if they be yet on live, sith it is many years that I have lain shut up
in the castle.”
“Your name,
please?”
“I hight the
Demoiselle Alisande la Carteloise, an it please you.”
“Do you know
anybody here who can identify you?”
“That were not
likely, fair lord, I being come hither now for the first time.”
“Have you brought
any letters—any documents—any proofs that you are trustworthy and truthful?”
“Of a surety, no;
and wherefore should I? Have I not a tongue, and cannot I say all that myself?”
“But YOUR saying
it, you know, and somebody else's saying it, is different.”
“Different? How
might that be? I fear me I do not understand.”
“Don't
UNDERSTAND? Land of—why, you see—you see—why, great Scott, can't you understand
a little thing like that? Can't you understand the difference between your—WHY
do you look so innocent and idiotic!”
“I? In truth I
know not, but an it were the will of God.”
“Yes, yes, I
reckon that's about the size of it. Don't mind my seeming excited; I'm not. Let
us change the subject. Now as to this castle, with fortyfive princesses in it,
and three ogres at the head of it, tell me—where is this harem?”
“Harem?”
“The CASTLE, you
understand; where is the castle?”
“Oh, as to that,
it is great, and strong, and well beseen, and lieth in a far country. Yes, it
is many leagues.”
“HOW many?”
“Ah, fair sir, it
were woundily hard to tell, they are so many, and do so lap the one upon the
other, and being made all in the same image and tincted with the same color,
one may not know the one league from its fellow, nor how to count them except
they be taken apart, and ye wit well it were God's work to do that, being not
within man's capacity; for ye will note—”
“Hold on, hold
on, never mind about the distance; WHEREABOUTS does the castle lie? What's the
direction from here?”
“Ah, please you
sir, it hath no direction from here; by reason that the road lieth not
straight, but turneth evermore; wherefore the direction of its place abideth
not, but is some time under the one sky and anon under another, whereso if ye
be minded that it is in the east, and wend thitherward, ye shall observe that
the way of the road doth yet again turn upon itself by the space of half a
circle, and this marvel happing again and yet again and still again, it will
grieve you that you had thought by vanities of the mind to thwart and bring to
naught the will of Him that giveth not a castle a direction from a place except
it pleaseth Him, and if it please Him not, will the rather that even all
castles and all directions thereunto vanish out of the earth, leaving the
places wherein they tarried desolate and vacant, so warning His creatures that
where He will He will, and where He will not He—”
“Oh, that's all
right, that's all right, give us a rest; never mind about the direction, HANG
the direction—I beg pardon, I beg a thousand pardons, I am not well to-day; pay
no attention when I soliloquize, it is an old habit, an old, bad habit, and
hard to get rid of when one's digestion is all disordered with eating food that
was raised forever and ever before he was born; good land! a man can't keep his
functions regular on spring chickens thirteen hundred years old. But come—never
mind about that; let's—have you got such a thing as a map of that region about
you? Now a good map—”
“Is it
peradventure that manner of thing which of late the unbelievers have brought
from over the great seas, which, being boiled in oil, and an onion and salt
added thereto, doth—”
“What, a map? What
are you talking about? Don't you know what a map is? There, there, never mind,
don't explain, I hate explanations; they fog a thing up so that you can't tell
anything about it. Run along, dear; good-day; show her the way, Clarence.”
Oh, well, it was
reasonably plain, now, why these donkeys didn't prospect these liars for
details. It may be that this girl had a fact in her somewhere, but I don't
believe you could have sluiced it out with a hydraulic; nor got it with the
earlier forms of blasting, even; it was a case for dynamite. Why, she was a
perfect ass; and yet the king and his knights had listened to her as if she had
been a leaf out of the gospel. It kind of sizes up the whole party. And think
of the simple ways of this court: this wandering wench hadn't any more trouble
to get access to the king in his palace than she would have had to get into the
poorhouse in my day and country. In fact, he was glad to see her, glad to hear
her tale; with that adventure of hers to offer, she was as welcome as a corpse
is to a coroner.
Just as I was
ending-up these reflections, Clarence came back. I remarked upon the barren
result of my efforts with the girl; hadn't got hold of a single point that
could help me to find the castle. The youth looked a little surprised, or
puzzled, or something, and intimated that he had been wondering to himself what
I had wanted to ask the girl all those questions for.
“Why, great
guns,” I said, “don't I want to find the castle? And how else would I go about
it?”
“La, sweet your
worship, one may lightly answer that, I ween. She will go with thee. They
always do. She will ride with thee.”
“Ride with me?
Nonsense!”
“But of a truth
she will. She will ride with thee. Thou shalt see.”
“What? She browse
around the hills and scour the woods with me—alone—and I as good as engaged to
be married? Why, it's scandalous. Think how it would look.”
My, the dear face
that rose before me! The boy was eager to know all about this tender matter. I
swore him to secresy and then whispered her name—“Puss Flanagan.” He looked
disappointed, and said he didn't remember the countess. How natural it was for
the little courtier to give her a rank. He asked me where she lived.
“In East Har—” I
came to myself and stopped, a little confused; then I said, “Never mind, now;
I'll tell you some time.”
And might he see
her? Would I let him see her some day?
It was but a
little thing to promise—thirteen hundred years or so—and he so eager; so I said
Yes. But I sighed; I couldn't help it. And yet there was no sense in sighing,
for she wasn't born yet. But that is the way we are made: we don't reason,
where we feel; we just feel.
My expedition was
all the talk that day and that night, and the boys were very good to me, and
made much of me, and seemed to have forgotten their vexation and
disappointment, and come to be as anxious for me to hive those ogres and set those
ripe old virgins loose as if it were themselves that had the contract. Well,
they WERE good children—but just children, that is all. And they gave me no end
of points about how to scout for giants, and how to scoop them in; and they
told me all sorts of charms against enchantments, and gave me salves and other
rubbish to put on my wounds. But it never occurred to one of them to reflect
that if I was such a wonderful necromancer as I was pretending to be, I ought
not to need salves or instructions, or charms against enchantments, and, least
of all, arms and armor, on a foray of any kind—even against fire-spouting
dragons, and devils hot from perdition, let alone such poor adversaries as
these I was after, these commonplace ogres of the back settlements.
I was to have an
early breakfast, and start at dawn, for that was the usual way; but I had the
demon's own time with my armor, and this delayed me a little. It is troublesome
to get into, and there is so much detail. First you wrap a layer or two of blanket
around your body, for a sort of cushion and to keep off the cold iron; then you
put on your sleeves and shirt of chain mail—these are made of small steel links
woven together, and they form a fabric so flexible that if you toss your shirt
onto the floor, it slumps into a pile like a peck of wet fish-net; it is very
heavy and is nearly the uncomfortablest material in the world for a night
shirt, yet plenty used it for that—tax collectors, and reformers, and one-horse
kings with a defective title, and those sorts of people; then you put on your
shoes—flat-boats roofed over with interleaving bands of steel—and screw your
clumsy spurs into the heels. Next you buckle your greaves on your legs, and
your cuisses on your thighs; then come your backplate and your breastplate, and
you begin to feel crowded; then you hitch onto the breastplate the
half-petticoat of broad overlapping bands of steel which hangs down in front
but is scolloped out behind so you can sit down, and isn't any real improvement
on an inverted coal scuttle, either for looks or for wear, or to wipe your
hands on; next you belt on your sword; then you put your stove-pipe joints onto
your arms, your iron gauntlets onto your hands, your iron rat-trap onto your
head, with a rag of steel web hitched onto it to hang over the back of your
neck—and there you are, snug as a candle in a candle-mould. This is no time to
dance. Well, a man that is packed away like that is a nut that isn't worth the
cracking, there is so little of the meat, when you get down to it, by
comparison with the shell.
The boys helped
me, or I never could have got in. Just as we finished, Sir Bedivere happened
in, and I saw that as like as not I hadn't chosen the most convenient outfit
for a long trip. How stately he looked; and tall and broad and grand. He had on
his head a conical steel casque that only came down to his ears, and for visor
had only a narrow steel bar that extended down to his upper lip and protected
his nose; and all the rest of him, from neck to heel, was flexible chain mail,
trousers and all. But pretty much all of him was hidden under his outside
garment, which of course was of chain mail, as I said, and hung straight from
his shoulders to his ankles; and from his middle to the bottom, both before and
behind, was divided, so that he could ride and let the skirts hang down on each
side. He was going grailing, and it was just the outfit for it, too. I would
have given a good deal for that ulster, but it was too late now to be fooling
around. The sun was just up, the king and the court were all on hand to see me
off and wish me luck; so it wouldn't be etiquette for me to tarry. You don't
get on your horse yourself; no, if you tried it you would get disappointed.
They carry you out, just as they carry a sun-struck man to the drug store, and
put you on, and help get you to rights, and fix your feet in the stirrups; and
all the while you do feel so strange and stuffy and like somebody else—like
somebody that has been married on a sudden, or struck by lightning, or something
like that, and hasn't quite fetched around yet, and is sort of numb, and can't
just get his bearings. Then they stood up the mast they called a spear, in its
socket by my left foot, and I gripped it with my hand; lastly they hung my
shield around my neck, and I was all complete and ready to up anchor and get to
sea. Everybody was as good to me as they could be, and a maid of honor gave me
the stirrup-cup her own self. There was nothing more to do now, but for that
damsel to get up behind me on a pillion, which she did, and put an arm or so
around me to hold on.
And so we
started, and everybody gave us a goodbye and waved their handkerchiefs or
helmets. And everybody we met, going down the hill and through the village was
respectful to us, except some shabby little boys on the outskirts. They said:
“Oh, what a guy!”
And hove clods at us.
In my experience
boys are the same in all ages. They don't respect anything, they don't care for
anything or anybody. They say “Go up, baldhead” to the prophet going his unoffending
way in the gray of antiquity; they sass me in the holy gloom of the Middle
Ages; and I had seen them act the same way in Buchanan's administration; I
remember, because I was there and helped. The prophet had his bears and settled
with his boys; and I wanted to get down and settle with mine, but it wouldn't
answer, because I couldn't have got up again. I hate a country without a
derrick.
Chapter XII.
SLOW TORTURE
STRAIGHT off, we
were in the country. It was most lovely and pleasant in those sylvan solitudes
in the early cool morning in the first freshness of autumn. From hilltops we
saw fair green valleys lying spread out below, with streams winding through
them, and island groves of trees here and there, and huge lonely oaks scattered
about and casting black blots of shade; and beyond the valleys we saw the
ranges of hills, blue with haze, stretching away in billowy perspective to the
horizon, with at wide intervals a dim fleck of white or gray on a wave-summit,
which we knew was a castle. We crossed broad natural lawns sparkling with dew,
and we moved like spirits, the cushioned turf giving out no sound of footfall;
we dreamed along through glades in a mist of green light that got its tint from
the sun-drenched roof of leaves overhead, and by our feet the clearest and
coldest of runlets went frisking and gossiping over its reefs and making a sort
of whispering music, comfortable to hear; and at times we left the world behind
and entered into the solemn great deeps and rich gloom of the forest, where furtive
wild things whisked and scurried by and were gone before you could even get
your eye on the place where the noise was; and where only the earliest birds
were turning out and getting to business with a song here and a quarrel yonder
and a mysterious faroff hammering and drumming for worms on a tree trunk away
somewhere in the impenetrable remotenesses of the woods. And by and by out we
would swing again into the glare.
About the third
or fourth or fifth time that we swung out into the glare—it was along there
somewhere, a couple of hours or so after sun-up—it wasn't as pleasant as it had
been. It was beginning to get hot. This was quite noticeable. We had a very
long pull, after that, without any shade. Now it is curious how progressively
little frets grow and multiply after they once get a start. Things which I
didn't mind at all, at first, I began to mind now—and more and more, too, all
the time. The first ten or fifteen times I wanted my handkerchief I didn't seem
to care; I got along, and said never mind, it isn't any matter, and dropped it
out of my mind. But now it was different; I wanted it all the time; it was nag,
nag, nag, right along, and no rest; I couldn't get it out of my mind; and so at
last I lost my temper and said hang a man that would make a suit of armor
without any pockets in it. You see I had my handkerchief in my helmet; and some
other things; but it was that kind of a helmet that you can't take off by
yourself. That hadn't occurred to me when I put it there; and in fact I didn't
know it. I supposed it would be particularly convenient there. And so now, the
thought of its being there, so handy and close by, and yet not get-at-able,
made it all the worse and the harder to bear. Yes, the thing that you can't get
is the thing that you want, mainly; every one has noticed that. Well, it took
my mind off from everything else; took it clear off, and centered it in my
helmet; and mile after mile, there it stayed, imagining the handkerchief,
picturing the handkerchief; and it was bitter and aggravating to have the salt
sweat keep trickling down into my eyes, and I couldn't get at it. It seems like
a little thing, on paper, but it was not a little thing at all; it was the most
real kind of misery. I would not say it if it was not so. I made up my mind
that I would carry along a reticule next time, let it look how it might, and
people say what they would. Of course these iron dudes of the Round Table would
think it was scandalous, and maybe raise Sheol about it, but as for me, give me
comfort first, and style afterwards. So we jogged along, and now and then we
struck a stretch of dust, and it would tumble up in clouds and get into my nose
and make me sneeze and cry; and of course I said things I oughtn't to have
said, I don't deny that. I am not better than others.
We couldn't seem
to meet anybody in this lonesome Britain, not even an ogre; and, in the mood I
was in then, it was well for the ogre; that is, an ogre with a handkerchief.
Most knights would have thought of nothing but getting his armor; but so I got
his bandanna, he could keep his hardware, for all of me.
Meantime, it was
getting hotter and hotter in there. You see, the sun was beating down and
warming up the iron more and more all the time. Well, when you are hot, that
way, every little thing irritates you. When I trotted, I rattled like a crate
of dishes, and that annoyed me; and moreover I couldn't seem to stand that
shield slatting and banging, now about my breast, now around my back; and if I
dropped into a walk my joints creaked and screeched in that wearisome way that
a wheelbarrow does, and as we didn't create any breeze at that gait, I was like
to get fried in that stove; and besides, the quieter you went the heavier the
iron settled down on you and the more and more tons you seemed to weigh every
minute. And you had to be always changing hands, and passing your spear over to
the other foot, it got so irksome for one hand to hold it long at a time.
Well, you know,
when you perspire that way, in rivers, there comes a time when you—when
you—well, when you itch. You are inside, your hands are outside; so there you
are; nothing but iron between. It is not a light thing, let it sound as it may.
First it is one place; then another; then some more; and it goes on spreading
and spreading, and at last the territory is all occupied, and nobody can
imagine what you feel like, nor how unpleasant it is. And when it had got to
the worst, and it seemed to me that I could not stand anything more, a fly got
in through the bars and settled on my nose, and the bars were stuck and
wouldn't work, and I couldn't get the visor up; and I could only shake my head,
which was baking hot by this time, and the fly—well, you know how a fly acts
when he has got a certainty—he only minded the shaking enough to change from
nose to lip, and lip to ear, and buzz and buzz all around in there, and keep on
lighting and biting, in a way that a person, already so distressed as I was,
simply could not stand. So I gave in, and got Alisande to unship the helmet and
relieve me of it. Then she emptied the conveniences out of it and fetched it
full of water, and I drank and then stood up, and she poured the rest down
inside the armor. One cannot think how refreshing it was. She continued to
fetch and pour until I was well soaked and thoroughly comfortable.
It was good to
have a rest—and peace. But nothing is quite perfect in this life, at any time.
I had made a pipe a while back, and also some pretty fair tobacco; not the real
thing, but what some of the Indians use: the inside bark of the willow, dried.
These comforts had been in the helmet, and now I had them again, but no
matches.
Gradually, as the
time wore along, one annoying fact was borne in upon my understanding—that we
were weather-bound. An armed novice cannot mount his horse without help and
plenty of it. Sandy was not enough; not enough for me, anyway. We had to wait
until somebody should come along. Waiting, in silence, would have been
agreeable enough, for I was full of matter for reflection, and wanted to give
it a chance to work. I wanted to try and think out how it was that rational or
even half-rational men could ever have learned to wear armor, considering its
inconveniences; and how they had managed to keep up such a fashion for
generations when it was plain that what I had suffered to-day they had had to
suffer all the days of their lives. I wanted to think that out; and moreover I
wanted to think out some way to reform this evil and persuade the people to let
the foolish fashion die out; but thinking was out of the question in the
circumstances. You couldn't think, where Sandy was.
She was a quite
biddable creature and good-hearted, but she had a flow of talk that was as
steady as a mill, and made your head sore like the drays and wagons in a city.
If she had had a cork she would have been a comfort. But you can't cork that
kind; they would die. Her clack was going all day, and you would think
something would surely happen to her works, by and by; but no, they never got
out of order; and she never had to slack up for words. She could grind, and
pump, and churn, and buzz by the week, and never stop to oil up or blow out.
And yet the result was just nothing but wind. She never had any ideas, any more
than a fog has. She was a perfect blatherskite; I mean for jaw, jaw, jaw, talk,
talk, talk, jabber, jabber, jabber; but just as good as she could be. I hadn't
minded her mill that morning, on account of having that hornets' nest of other
troubles; but more than once in the afternoon I had to say:
“Take a rest,
child; the way you are using up all the domestic air, the kingdom will have to
go to importing it by to-morrow, and it's a low enough treasury without that.”
Chapter XIII.
FREEMEN
YES, it is
strange how little a while at a time a person can be contented. Only a little
while back, when I was riding and suffering, what a heaven this peace, this
rest, this sweet serenity in this secluded shady nook by this purling stream
would have seemed, where I could keep perfectly comfortable all the time by
pouring a dipper of water into my armor now and then; yet already I was getting
dissatisfied; partly because I could not light my pipe—for, although I had long
ago started a match factory, I had forgotten to bring matches with me—and
partly because we had nothing to eat. Here was another illustration of the
childlike improvidence of this age and people. A man in armor always trusted to
chance for his food on a journey, and would have been scandalized at the idea
of hanging a basket of sandwiches on his spear. There was probably not a knight
of all the Round Table combination who would not rather have died than been
caught carrying such a thing as that on his flagstaff. And yet there could not
be anything more sensible. It had been my intention to smuggle a couple of
sandwiches into my helmet, but I was interrupted in the act, and had to make an
excuse and lay them aside, and a dog got them.
Night approached,
and with it a storm. The darkness came on fast. We must camp, of course. I
found a good shelter for the demoiselle under a rock, and went off and found
another for myself. But I was obliged to remain in my armor, because I could
not get it off by myself and yet could not allow Alisande to help, because it
would have seemed so like undressing before folk. It would not have amounted to
that in reality, because I had clothes on underneath; but the prejudices of
one's breeding are not gotten rid of just at a jump, and I knew that when it
came to stripping off that bob-tailed iron petticoat I should be embarrassed.
With the storm
came a change of weather; and the stronger the wind blew, and the wilder the
rain lashed around, the colder and colder it got. Pretty soon, various kinds of
bugs and ants and worms and things began to flock in out of the wet and crawl
down inside my armor to get warm; and while some of them behaved well enough,
and snuggled up amongst my clothes and got quiet, the majority were of a
restless, uncomfortable sort, and never stayed still, but went on prowling and
hunting for they did not know what; especially the ants, which went tickling
along in wearisome procession from one end of me to the other by the hour, and
are a kind of creatures which I never wish to sleep with again. It would be my
advice to persons situated in this way, to not roll or thrash around, because
this excites the interest of all the different sorts of animals and makes every
last one of them want to turn out and see what is going on, and this makes
things worse than they were before, and of course makes you objurgate harder,
too, if you can. Still, if one did not roll and thrash around he would die; so
perhaps it is as well to do one way as the other; there is no real choice. Even
after I was frozen solid I could still distinguish that tickling, just as a
corpse does when he is taking electric treatment. I said I would never wear
armor after this trip.
All those trying
hours whilst I was frozen and yet was in a living fire, as you may say, on
account of that swarm of crawlers, that same unanswerable question kept
circling and circling through my tired head: How do people stand this miserable
armor? How have they managed to stand it all these generations? How can they
sleep at night for dreading the tortures of next day?
When the morning
came at last, I was in a bad enough plight: seedy, drowsy, fagged, from want of
sleep; weary from thrashing around, famished from long fasting; pining for a
bath, and to get rid of the animals; and crippled with rheumatism. And how had
it fared with the nobly born, the titled aristocrat, the Demoiselle Alisande la
Carteloise? Why, she was as fresh as a squirrel; she had slept like the dead;
and as for a bath, probably neither she nor any other noble in the land had
ever had one, and so she was not missing it. Measured by modern standards, they
were merely modified savages, those people. This noble lady showed no
impatience to get to breakfast—and that smacks of the savage, too. On their
journeys those Britons were used to long fasts, and knew how to bear them; and
also how to freight up against probable fasts before starting, after the style
of the Indian and the anaconda. As like as not, Sandy was loaded for a
three-day stretch.
We were off
before sunrise, Sandy riding and I limping along behind. In half an hour we
came upon a group of ragged poor creatures who had assembled to mend the thing
which was regarded as a road. They were as humble as animals to me; and when I
proposed to breakfast with them, they were so flattered, so overwhelmed by this
extraordinary condescension of mine that at first they were not able to believe
that I was in earnest. My lady put up her scornful lip and withdrew to one
side; she said in their hearing that she would as soon think of eating with the
other cattle—a remark which embarrassed these poor devils merely because it
referred to them, and not because it insulted or offended them, for it didn't.
And yet they were not slaves, not chattels. By a sarcasm of law and phrase they
were freemen. Seven-tenths of the free population of the country were of just
their class and degree: small “independent” farmers, artisans, etc.; which is
to say, they were the nation, the actual Nation; they were about all of it that
was useful, or worth saving, or really respect-worthy, and to subtract them
would have been to subtract the Nation and leave behind some dregs, some
refuse, in the shape of a king, nobility and gentry, idle, unproductive,
acquainted mainly with the arts of wasting and destroying, and of no sort of
use or value in any rationally constructed world. And yet, by ingenious
contrivance, this gilded minority, instead of being in the tail of the procession
where it belonged, was marching head up and banners flying, at the other end of
it; had elected itself to be the Nation, and these innumerable clams had
permitted it so long that they had come at last to accept it as a truth; and
not only that, but to believe it right and as it should be. The priests had
told their fathers and themselves that this ironical state of things was
ordained of God; and so, not reflecting upon how unlike God it would be to
amuse himself with sarcasms, and especially such poor transparent ones as this,
they had dropped the matter there and become respectfully quiet.
The talk of these
meek people had a strange enough sound in a formerly American ear. They were
freemen, but they could not leave the estates of their lord or their bishop
without his permission; they could not prepare their own bread, but must have
their corn ground and their bread baked at his mill and his bakery, and pay
roundly for the same; they could not sell a piece of their own property without
paying him a handsome percentage of the proceeds, nor buy a piece of somebody
else's without remembering him in cash for the privilege; they had to harvest
his grain for him gratis, and be ready to come at a moment's notice, leaving
their own crop to destruction by the threatened storm; they had to let him
plant fruit trees in their fields, and then keep their indignation to
themselves when his heedless fruit-gatherers trampled the grain around the
trees; they had to smother their anger when his hunting parties galloped through
their fields laying waste the result of their patient toil; they were not
allowed to keep doves themselves, and when the swarms from my lord's dovecote
settled on their crops they must not lose their temper and kill a bird, for
awful would the penalty be; when the harvest was at last gathered, then came
the procession of robbers to levy their blackmail upon it: first the Church
carted off its fat tenth, then the king's commissioner took his twentieth, then
my lord's people made a mighty inroad upon the remainder; after which, the
skinned freeman had liberty to bestow the remnant in his barn, in case it was
worth the trouble; there were taxes, and taxes, and taxes, and more taxes, and
taxes again, and yet other taxes—upon this free and independent pauper, but
none upon his lord the baron or the bishop, none upon the wasteful nobility or
the all-devouring Church; if the baron would sleep unvexed, the freeman must
sit up all night after his day's work and whip the ponds to keep the frogs
quiet; if the freeman's daughter—but no, that last infamy of monarchical
government is unprintable; and finally, if the freeman, grown desperate with
his tortures, found his life unendurable under such conditions, and sacrificed
it and fled to death for mercy and refuge, the gentle Church condemned him to
eternal fire, the gentle law buried him at midnight at the cross-roads with a
stake through his back, and his master the baron or the bishop confiscated all
his property and turned his widow and his orphans out of doors.
And here were
these freemen assembled in the early morning to work on their lord the bishop's
road three days each—gratis; every head of a family, and every son of a family,
three days each, gratis, and a day or so added for their servants. Why, it was
like reading about France and the French, before the ever memorable and blessed
Revolution, which swept a thousand years of such villany away in one swift
tidal-wave of blood—one: a settlement of that hoary debt in the proportion of
half a drop of blood for each hogshead of it that had been pressed by slow
tortures out of that people in the weary stretch of ten centuries of wrong and
shame and misery the like of which was not to be mated but in hell. There were
two “Reigns of Terror,” if we would but remember it and consider it; the one
wrought murder in hot passion, the other in heartless cold blood; the one
lasted mere months, the other had lasted a thousand years; the one inflicted
death upon ten thousand persons, the other upon a hundred millions; but our shudders
are all for the “horrors” of the minor Terror, the momentary Terror, so to
speak; whereas, what is the horror of swift death by the axe, compared with
lifelong death from hunger, cold, insult, cruelty, and heart-break? What is
swift death by lightning compared with death by slow fire at the stake? A city
cemetery could contain the coffins filled by that brief Terror which we have
all been so diligently taught to shiver at and mourn over; but all France could
hardly contain the coffins filled by that older and real Terror—that
unspeakably bitter and awful Terror which none of us has been taught to see in
its vastness or pity as it deserves.
These poor
ostensible freemen who were sharing their breakfast and their talk with me,
were as full of humble reverence for their king and Church and nobility as
their worst enemy could desire. There was something pitifully ludicrous about
it. I asked them if they supposed a nation of people ever existed, who, with a
free vote in every man's hand, would elect that a single family and its
descendants should reign over it forever, whether gifted or boobies, to the
exclusion of all other families—including the voter's; and would also elect
that a certain hundred families should be raised to dizzy summits of rank, and
clothed on with offensive transmissible glories and privileges to the exclusion
of the rest of the nation's families—INCLUDING HIS OWN.
They all looked
unhit, and said they didn't know; that they had never thought about it before,
and it hadn't ever occurred to them that a nation could be so situated that
every man COULD have a say in the government. I said I had seen one—and that it
would last until it had an Established Church. Again they were all unhit—at
first. But presently one man looked up and asked me to state that proposition
again; and state it slowly, so it could soak into his understanding. I did it;
and after a little he had the idea, and he brought his fist down and said HE
didn't believe a nation where every man had a vote would voluntarily get down
in the mud and dirt in any such way; and that to steal from a nation its will
and preference must be a crime and the first of all crimes. I said to myself:
“This one's a
man. If I were backed by enough of his sort, I would make a strike for the
welfare of this country, and try to prove myself its loyalest citizen by making
a wholesome change in its system of government.”
You see my kind
of loyalty was loyalty to one's country, not to its institutions or its
office-holders. The country is the real thing, the substantial thing, the
eternal thing; it is the thing to watch over, and care for, and be loyal to;
institutions are extraneous, they are its mere clothing, and clothing can wear
out, become ragged, cease to be comfortable, cease to protect the body from
winter, disease, and death. To be loyal to rags, to shout for rags, to worship
rags, to die for rags—that is a loyalty of unreason, it is pure animal; it
belongs to monarchy, was invented by monarchy; let monarchy keep it. I was from
Connecticut, whose Constitution declares “that all political power is inherent
in the people, and all free governments are founded on their authority and
instituted for their benefit; and that they have AT ALL TIMES an undeniable and
indefeasible right to ALTER THEIR FORM OF GOVERNMENT in such a manner as they
may think expedient.”
Under that
gospel, the citizen who thinks he sees that the commonwealth's political
clothes are worn out, and yet holds his peace and does not agitate for a new
suit, is disloyal; he is a traitor. That he may be the only one who thinks he
sees this decay, does not excuse him; it is his duty to agitate anyway, and it
is the duty of the others to vote him down if they do not see the matter as he
does.
And now here I
was, in a country where a right to say how the country should be governed was
restricted to six persons in each thousand of its population. For the nine
hundred and ninety-four to express dissatisfaction with the regnant system and
propose to change it, would have made the whole six shudder as one man, it
would have been so disloyal, so dishonorable, such putrid black treason. So to
speak, I was become a stockholder in a corporation where nine hundred and
ninety-four of the members furnished all the money and did all the work, and
the other six elected themselves a permanent board of direction and took all
the dividends. It seemed to me that what the nine hundred and ninety-four dupes
needed was a new deal. The thing that would have best suited the circus side of
my nature would have been to resign the Boss-ship and get up an insurrection
and turn it into a revolution; but I knew that the Jack Cade or the Wat Tyler
who tries such a thing without first educating his materials up to revolution
grade is almost absolutely certain to get left. I had never been accustomed to
getting left, even if I do say it myself. Wherefore, the “deal” which had been
for some time working into shape in my mind was of a quite different pattern
from the Cade-Tyler sort.
So I did not talk
blood and insurrection to that man there who sat munching black bread with that
abused and mistaught herd of human sheep, but took him aside and talked matter
of another sort to him. After I had finished, I got him to lend me a little ink
from his veins; and with this and a sliver I wrote on a piece of bark—
Put him in the
Man-factory—
and gave it to
him, and said:
“Take it to the
palace at Camelot and give it into the hands of Amyas le Poulet, whom I call
Clarence, and he will understand.”
“He is a priest,
then,” said the man, and some of the enthusiasm went out of his face.
“How—a priest?
Didn't I tell you that no chattel of the Church, no bond-slave of pope or
bishop can enter my Man-Factory? Didn't I tell you that YOU couldn't enter
unless your religion, whatever it might be, was your own free property?”
“Marry, it is so,
and for that I was glad; wherefore it liked me not, and bred in me a cold
doubt, to hear of this priest being there.”
“But he isn't a
priest, I tell you.”
The man looked
far from satisfied. He said:
“He is not a priest,
and yet can read?”
“He is not a
priest and yet can read—yes, and write, too, for that matter. I taught him
myself.” The man's face cleared. “And it is the first thing that you yourself
will be taught in that Factory—”
“I? I would give
blood out of my heart to know that art. Why, I will be your slave, your—”
“No you won't,
you won't be anybody's slave. Take your family and go along. Your lord the
bishop will confiscate your small property, but no matter. Clarence will fix
you all right.”
Chapter XIV.
“DEFEND THEE,
LORD”
I PAID three
pennies for my breakfast, and a most extravagant price it was, too, seeing that
one could have breakfasted a dozen persons for that money; but I was feeling
good by this time, and I had always been a kind of spendthrift anyway; and then
these people had wanted to give me the food for nothing, scant as their
provision was, and so it was a grateful pleasure to emphasize my appreciation
and sincere thankfulness with a good big financial lift where the money would
do so much more good than it would in my helmet, where, these pennies being
made of iron and not stinted in weight, my half-dollar's worth was a good deal
of a burden to me. I spent money rather too freely in those days, it is true;
but one reason for it was that I hadn't got the proportions of things entirely
adjusted, even yet, after so long a sojourn in Britain—hadn't got along to
where I was able to absolutely realize that a penny in Arthur's land and a
couple of dollars in Connecticut were about one and the same thing: just twins,
as you may say, in purchasing power. If my start from Camelot could have been
delayed a very few days I could have paid these people in beautiful new coins
from our own mint, and that would have pleased me; and them, too, not less. I
had adopted the American values exclusively. In a week or two now, cents,
nickels, dimes, quarters, and half-dollars, and also a trifle of gold, would be
trickling in thin but steady streams all through the commercial veins of the
kingdom, and I looked to see this new blood freshen up its life.
The farmers were
bound to throw in something, to sort of offset my liberality, whether I would
or no; so I let them give me a flint and steel; and as soon as they had
comfortably bestowed Sandy and me on our horse, I lit my pipe. When the first
blast of smoke shot out through the bars of my helmet, all those people broke
for the woods, and Sandy went over backwards and struck the ground with a dull
thud. They thought I was one of those fire-belching dragons they had heard so
much about from knights and other professional liars. I had infinite trouble to
persuade those people to venture back within explaining distance. Then I told
them that this was only a bit of enchantment which would work harm to none but
my enemies. And I promised, with my hand on my heart, that if all who felt no
enmity toward me would come forward and pass before me they should see that
only those who remained behind would be struck dead. The procession moved with
a good deal of promptness. There were no casualties to report, for nobody had
curiosity enough to remain behind to see what would happen.
I lost some time,
now, for these big children, their fears gone, became so ravished with wonder
over my awe-compelling fireworks that I had to stay there and smoke a couple of
pipes out before they would let me go. Still the delay was not wholly
unproductive, for it took all that time to get Sandy thoroughly wonted to the
new thing, she being so close to it, you know. It plugged up her conversation
mill, too, for a considerable while, and that was a gain. But above all other
benefits accruing, I had learned something. I was ready for any giant or any
ogre that might come along, now.
We tarried with a
holy hermit, that night, and my opportunity came about the middle of the next
afternoon. We were crossing a vast meadow by way of short-cut, and I was musing
absently, hearing nothing, seeing nothing, when Sandy suddenly interrupted a
remark which she had begun that morning, with the cry:
“Defend thee,
lord!—peril of life is toward!”
And she slipped
down from the horse and ran a little way and stood. I looked up and saw, far
off in the shade of a tree, half a dozen armed knights and their squires; and
straightway there was bustle among them and tightening of saddle-girths for the
mount. My pipe was ready and would have been lit, if I had not been lost in
thinking about how to banish oppression from this land and restore to all its
people their stolen rights and manhood without disobliging anybody. I lit up at
once, and by the time I had got a good head of reserved steam on, here they
came. All together, too; none of those chivalrous magnanimities which one reads
so much about—one courtly rascal at a time, and the rest standing by to see
fair play. No, they came in a body, they came with a whirr and a rush, they
came like a volley from a battery; came with heads low down, plumes streaming
out behind, lances advanced at a level. It was a handsome sight, a beautiful
sight—for a man up a tree. I laid my lance in rest and waited, with my heart beating,
till the iron wave was just ready to break over me, then spouted a column of
white smoke through the bars of my helmet. You should have seen the wave go to
pieces and scatter! This was a finer sight than the other one.
But these people
stopped, two or three hundred yards away, and this troubled me. My satisfaction
collapsed, and fear came; I judged I was a lost man. But Sandy was radiant; and
was going to be eloquent—but I stopped her, and told her my magic had
miscarried, somehow or other, and she must mount, with all despatch, and we
must ride for life. No, she wouldn't. She said that my enchantment had disabled
those knights; they were not riding on, because they couldn't; wait, they would
drop out of their saddles presently, and we would get their horses and harness.
I could not deceive such trusting simplicity, so I said it was a mistake; that
when my fireworks killed at all, they killed instantly; no, the men would not
die, there was something wrong about my apparatus, I couldn't tell what; but we
must hurry and get away, for those people would attack us again, in a minute.
Sandy laughed, and said:
“Lack-a-day, sir,
they be not of that breed! Sir Launcelot will give battle to dragons, and will
abide by them, and will assail them again, and yet again, and still again,
until he do conquer and destroy them; and so likewise will Sir Pellinore and
Sir Aglovale and Sir Carados, and mayhap others, but there be none else that
will venture it, let the idle say what the idle will. And, la, as to yonder base
rufflers, think ye they have not their fill, but yet desire more?”
“Well, then, what
are they waiting for? Why don't they leave? Nobody's hindering. Good land, I'm
willing to let bygones be bygones, I'm sure.”
“Leave, is it?
Oh, give thyself easement as to that. They dream not of it, no, not they. They
wait to yield them.”
“Come—really, is
that 'sooth'—as you people say? If they want to, why don't they?”
“It would like
them much; but an ye wot how dragons are esteemed, ye would not hold them
blamable. They fear to come.”
“Well, then,
suppose I go to them instead, and—”
“Ah, wit ye well
they would not abide your coming. I will go.”
And she did. She
was a handy person to have along on a raid. I would have considered this a
doubtful errand, myself. I presently saw the knights riding away, and Sandy
coming back. That was a relief. I judged she had somehow failed to get the
first innings—I mean in the conversation; otherwise the interview wouldn't have
been so short. But it turned out that she had managed the business well; in
fact, admirably. She said that when she told those people I was The Boss, it
hit them where they lived: “smote them sore with fear and dread” was her word;
and then they were ready to put up with anything she might require. So she
swore them to appear at Arthur's court within two days and yield them, with
horse and harness, and be my knights henceforth, and subject to my command. How
much better she managed that thing than I should have done it myself! She was a
daisy.
Chapter XV.
SANDY'S TALE
AND so I'm
proprietor of some knights,” said I, as we rode off. “Who would ever have
supposed that I should live to list up assets of that sort. I shan't know what
to do with them; unless I raffle them off. How many of them are there, Sandy?”
“Seven, please
you, sir, and their squires.”
“It is a good
haul. Who are they? Where do they hang out?”
“Where do they
hang out?”
“Yes, where do
they live?”
“Ah, I understood
thee not. That will I tell eftsoons.” Then she said musingly, and softly,
turning the words daintily over her tongue: “Hang they out—hang they out—where
hang—where do they hang out; eh, right so; where do they hang out. Of a truth
the phrase hath a fair and winsome grace, and is prettily worded withal. I will
repeat it anon and anon in mine idlesse, whereby I may peradventure learn it.
Where do they hang out. Even so! already it falleth trippingly from my tongue,
and forasmuch as—”
“Don't forget the
cowboys, Sandy.”
“Cowboys?”
“Yes; the
knights, you know: You were going to tell me about them. A while back, you
remember. Figuratively speaking, game's called.”
“Game—”
“Yes, yes, yes!
Go to the bat. I mean, get to work on your statistics, and don't burn so much
kindling getting your fire started. Tell me about the knights.”
“I will well, and
lightly will begin. So they two departed and rode into a great forest. And—”
“Great Scott!”
You see, I
recognized my mistake at once. I had set her works a-going; it was my own
fault; she would be thirty days getting down to those facts. And she generally
began without a preface and finished without a result. If you interrupted her
she would either go right along without noticing, or answer with a couple of
words, and go back and say the sentence over again. So, interruptions only did
harm; and yet I had to interrupt, and interrupt pretty frequently, too, in
order to save my life; a person would die if he let her monotony drip on him
right along all day.
“Great Scott! “ I
said in my distress. She went right back and began over again:
“So they two
departed and rode into a great forest. And—”
“WHICH two?”
“Sir Gawaine and
Sir Uwaine. And so they came to an abbey of monks, and there were well lodged.
So on the morn they heard their masses in the abbey, and so they rode forth
till they came to a great forest; then was Sir Gawaine ware in a valley by a
turret, of twelve fair damsels, and two knights armed on great horses, and the
damsels went to and fro by a tree. And then was Sir Gawaine ware how there hung
a white shield on that tree, and ever as the damsels came by it they spit upon
it, and some threw mire upon the shield—”
“Now, if I hadn't
seen the like myself in this country, Sandy, I wouldn't believe it. But I've
seen it, and I can just see those creatures now, parading before that shield and
acting like that. The women here do certainly act like all possessed. Yes, and
I mean your best, too, society's very choicest brands. The humblest hello-girl
along ten thousand miles of wire could teach gentleness, patience, modesty,
manners, to the highest duchess in Arthur's land.”
“Hello-girl?”
“Yes, but don't
you ask me to explain; it's a new kind of a girl; they don't have them here;
one often speaks sharply to them when they are not the least in fault, and he
can't get over feeling sorry for it and ashamed of himself in thirteen hundred
years, it's such shabby mean conduct and so unprovoked; the fact is, no
gentleman ever does it—though I—well, I myself, if I've got to confess—”
“Peradventure
she—”
“Never mind her;
never mind her; I tell you I couldn't ever explain her so you would
understand.”
“Even so be it,
sith ye are so minded. Then Sir Gawaine and Sir Uwaine went and saluted them,
and asked them why they did that despite to the shield. Sirs, said the damsels,
we shall tell you. There is a knight in this country that owneth this white
shield, and he is a passing good man of his hands, but he hateth all ladies and
gentlewomen, and therefore we do all this despite to the shield. I will say
you, said Sir Gawaine, it beseemeth evil a good knight to despise all ladies
and gentlewomen, and peradventure though he hate you he hath some cause, and
peradventure he loveth in some other places ladies and gentlewomen, and to be
loved again, and he such a man of prowess as ye speak of—”
“Man of
prowess—yes, that is the man to please them, Sandy. Man of brains—that is a
thing they never think of. Tom Sayers—John Heenan—John L. Sullivan—pity but you
could be here. You would have your legs under the Round Table and a 'Sir' in
front of your names within the twenty-four hours; and you could bring about a
new distribution of the married princesses and duchesses of the Court in
another twenty-four. The fact is, it is just a sort of polished-up court of
Comanches, and there isn't a squaw in it who doesn't stand ready at the
dropping of a hat to desert to the buck with the biggest string of scalps at
his belt.”
“—and he be such
a man of prowess as ye speak of, said Sir Gawaine. Now, what is his name? Sir,
said they, his name is Marhaus the king's son of Ireland.”
“Son of the king
of Ireland, you mean; the other form doesn't mean anything. And look out and
hold on tight, now, we must jump this gully... There, we are all right now.
This horse belongs in the circus; he is born before his time.”
“I know him well,
said Sir Uwaine, he is a passing good knight as any is on live.”
“ON LIVE. If
you've got a fault in the world, Sandy, it is that you are a shade too archaic.
But it isn't any matter.”
“—for I saw him
once proved at a justs where many knights were gathered, and that time there
might no man withstand him. Ah, said Sir Gawaine, damsels, methinketh ye are to
blame, for it is to suppose he that hung that shield there will not be long
therefrom, and then may those knights match him on horseback, and that is more
your worship than thus; for I will abide no longer to see a knight's shield
dishonored. And therewith Sir Uwaine and Sir Gawaine departed a little from
them, and then were they ware where Sir Marhaus came riding on a great horse
straight toward them. And when the twelve damsels saw Sir Marhaus they fled
into the turret as they were wild, so that some of them fell by the way. Then
the one of the knights of the tower dressed his shield, and said on high, Sir
Marhaus defend thee. And so they ran together that the knight brake his spear
on Marhaus, and Sir Marhaus smote him so hard that he brake his neck and the
horse's back—”
“Well, that is
just the trouble about this state of things, it ruins so many horses.”
“That saw the
other knight of the turret, and dressed him toward Marhaus, and they went so
eagerly together, that the knight of the turret was soon smitten down, horse
and man, stark dead—”
“ANOTHER horse
gone; I tell you it is a custom that ought to be broken up. I don't see how
people with any feeling can applaud and support it.”
...
“So these two
knights came together with great random—”
I saw that I had
been asleep and missed a chapter, but I didn't say anything. I judged that the
Irish knight was in trouble with the visitors by this time, and this turned out
to be the case.
“—that Sir Uwaine
smote Sir Marhaus that his spear brast in pieces on the shield, and Sir Marhaus
smote him so sore that horse and man he bare to the earth, and hurt Sir Uwaine
on the left side—
“The truth is,
Alisande, these archaics are a little TOO simple; the vocabulary is too
limited, and so, by consequence, descriptions suffer in the matter of variety;
they run too much to level Saharas of fact, and not enough to picturesque
detail; this throws about them a certain air of the monotonous; in fact the
fights are all alike: a couple of people come together with great random—random
is a good word, and so is exegesis, for that matter, and so is holocaust, and
defalcation, and usufruct and a hundred others, but land! a body ought to
discriminate—they come together with great random, and a spear is brast, and
one party brake his shield and the other one goes down, horse and man, over his
horse-tail and brake his neck, and then the next candidate comes randoming in,
and brast HIS spear, and the other man brast his shield, and down HE goes,
horse and man, over his horse-tail, and brake HIS neck, and then there's
another elected, and another and another and still another, till the material
is all used up; and when you come to figure up results, you can't tell one
fight from another, nor who whipped; and as a PICTURE, of living, raging,
roaring battle, sho! why, it's pale and noiseless—just ghosts scuffling in a
fog. Dear me, what would this barren vocabulary get out of the mightiest
spectacle?—the burning of Rome in Nero's time, for instance? Why, it would
merely say, 'Town burned down; no insurance; boy brast a window, fireman brake
his neck!' Why, THAT ain't a picture!”
It was a good
deal of a lecture, I thought, but it didn't disturb Sandy, didn't turn a
feather; her steam soared steadily up again, the minute I took off the lid:
“Then Sir Marhaus
turned his horse and rode toward Gawaine with his spear. And when Sir Gawaine
saw that, he dressed his shield, and they aventred their spears, and they came
together with all the might of their horses, that either knight smote other so
hard in the midst of their shields, but Sir Gawaine's spear brake—”
“I knew it
would.”
—“but Sir
Marhaus's spear held; and therewith Sir Gawaine and his horse rushed down to
the earth—”
“Just so—and
brake his back.”
—“and lightly Sir
Gawaine rose upon his feet and pulled out his sword, and dressed him toward Sir
Marhaus on foot, and therewith either came unto other eagerly, and smote
together with their swords, that their shields flew in cantels, and they
bruised their helms and their hauberks, and wounded either other. But Sir
Gawaine, fro it passed nine of the clock, waxed by the space of three hours
ever stronger and stronger. and thrice his might was increased. All this espied
Sir Marhaus, and had great wonder how his might increased, and so they wounded
other passing sore; and then when it was come noon—”
The pelting
sing-song of it carried me forward to scenes and sounds of my boyhood days:
“N-e-e-ew Haven!
ten minutes for refreshments—knductr'll strike the gong-bell two minutes before
train leaves—passengers for the Shore line please take seats in the rear k'yar,
this k'yar don't go no furder—AHH—pls, AW-rnjz, b'NANners, S-A-N-D'ches,
p—OP-corn!”
—“and waxed past
noon and drew toward evensong. Sir Gawaine's strength feebled and waxed passing
faint, that unnethes he might dure any longer, and Sir Marhaus was then bigger
and bigger—”
“Which strained
his armor, of course; and yet little would one of these people mind a small
thing like that.”
—“and so, Sir
Knight, said Sir Marhaus, I have well felt that ye are a passing good knight,
and a marvelous man of might as ever I felt any, while it lasteth, and our
quarrels are not great, and therefore it were a pity to do you hurt, for I feel
you are passing feeble. Ah, said Sir Gawaine, gentle knight, ye say the word
that I should say. And therewith they took off their helms and either kissed
other, and there they swore together either to love other as brethren—”
But I lost the
thread there, and dozed off to slumber, thinking about what a pity it was that
men with such superb strength—strength enabling them to stand up cased in
cruelly burdensome iron and drenched with perspiration, and hack and batter and
bang each other for six hours on a stretch—should not have been born at a time
when they could put it to some useful purpose. Take a jackass, for instance: a
jackass has that kind of strength, and puts it to a useful purpose, and is
valuable to this world because he is a jackass; but a nobleman is not valuable
because he is a jackass. It is a mixture that is always ineffectual, and should
never have been attempted in the first place. And yet, once you start a
mistake, the trouble is done and you never know what is going to come of it.
When I came to
myself again and began to listen, I perceived that I had lost another chapter,
and that Alisande had wandered a long way off with her people.
“And so they rode
and came into a deep valley full of stones, and thereby they saw a fair stream
of water; above thereby was the head of the stream, a fair fountain, and three
damsels sitting thereby. In this country, said Sir Marhaus, came never knight
since it was christened, but he found strange adventures—”
“This is not good
form, Alisande. Sir Marhaus the king's son of Ireland talks like all the rest;
you ought to give him a brogue, or at least a characteristic expletive; by this
means one would recognize him as soon as he spoke, without his ever being
named. It is a common literary device with the great authors. You should make
him say, 'In this country, be jabers, came never knight since it was
christened, but he found strange adventures, be jabers.' You see how much better
that sounds.”
—“came never
knight but he found strange adventures, be jabers. Of a truth it doth indeed,
fair lord, albeit 'tis passing hard to say, though peradventure that will not
tarry but better speed with usage. And then they rode to the damsels, and
either saluted other, and the eldest had a garland of gold about her head, and
she was threescore winter of age or more—”
“The DAMSEL was?”
“Even so, dear
lord—and her hair was white under the garland—”
“Celluloid teeth,
nine dollars a set, as like as not—the loose-fit kind, that go up and down like
a portcullis when you eat, and fall out when you laugh.”
“The second
damsel was of thirty winter of age, with a circlet of gold about her head. The
third damsel was but fifteen year of age—”
Billows of thought
came rolling over my soul, and the voice faded out of my hearing!
Fifteen! Break—my
heart! oh, my lost darling! Just her age who was so gentle, and lovely, and all
the world to me, and whom I shall never see again! How the thought of her
carries me back over wide seas of memory to a vague dim time, a happy time, so
many, many centuries hence, when I used to wake in the soft summer mornings,
out of sweet dreams of her, and say “Hello, Central!” just to hear her dear
voice come melting back to me with a “Hello, Hank!” that was music of the
spheres to my enchanted ear. She got three dollars a week, but she was worth
it.
I could not
follow Alisande's further explanation of who our captured knights were, now—I
mean in case she should ever get to explaining who they were. My interest was
gone, my thoughts were far away, and sad. By fitful glimpses of the drifting
tale, caught here and there and now and then, I merely noted in a vague way
that each of these three knights took one of these three damsels up behind him
on his horse, and one rode north, another east, the other south, to seek
adventures, and meet again and lie, after year and day. Year and day—and
without baggage. It was of a piece with the general simplicity of the country.
The sun was now
setting. It was about three in the afternoon when Alisande had begun to tell me
who the cowboys were; so she had made pretty good progress with it—for her. She
would arrive some time or other, no doubt, but she was not a person who could
be hurried.
We were approaching
a castle which stood on high ground; a huge, strong, venerable structure, whose
gray towers and battlements were charmingly draped with ivy, and whose whole
majestic mass was drenched with splendors flung from the sinking sun. It was
the largest castle we had seen, and so I thought it might be the one we were
after, but Sandy said no. She did not know who owned it; she said she had
passed it without calling, when she went down to Camelot.
Chapter XVI.
MORGAN LE FAY
IF knights errant
were to be believed, not all castles were desirable places to seek hospitality
in. As a matter of fact, knights errant were NOT persons to be believed—that
is, measured by modern standards of veracity; yet, measured by the standards of
their own time, and scaled accordingly, you got the truth. It was very simple:
you discounted a statement ninetyseven per cent.; the rest was fact. Now after
making this allowance, the truth remained that if I could find out something
about a castle before ringing the doorbell—I mean hailing the warders—it was
the sensible thing to do. So I was pleased when I saw in the distance a
horseman making the bottom turn of the road that wound down from this castle.
As we approached
each other, I saw that he wore a plumed helmet, and seemed to be otherwise
clothed in steel, but bore a curious addition also—a stiff square garment like
a herald's tabard. However, I had to smile at my own forgetfulness when I got
nearer and read this sign on his tabard:
“Persimmon's
Soap—All the Prime-Donna Use It.”
That was a little
idea of my own, and had several wholesome purposes in view toward the
civilizing and uplifting of this nation. In the first place, it was a furtive,
underhand blow at this nonsense of knight errantry, though nobody suspected
that but me. I had started a number of these people out—the bravest knights I
could get—each sandwiched between bulletin-boards bearing one device or
another, and I judged that by and by when they got to be numerous enough they
would begin to look ridiculous; and then, even the steel-clad ass that HADN'T
any board would himself begin to look ridiculous because he was out of the
fashion.
Secondly, these
missionaries would gradually, and without creating suspicion or exciting alarm,
introduce a rudimentary cleanliness among the nobility, and from them it would
work down to the people, if the priests could be kept quiet. This would
undermine the Church. I mean would be a step toward that. Next, education—next,
freedom—and then she would begin to crumble. It being my conviction that any
Established Church is an established crime, an established slave-pen, I had no
scruples, but was willing to assail it in any way or with any weapon that
promised to hurt it. Why, in my own former day—in remote centuries not yet
stirring in the womb of time—there were old Englishmen who imagined that they
had been born in a free country: a “free” country with the Corporation Act and
the Test still in force in it—timbers propped against men's liberties and
dishonored consciences to shore up an Established Anachronism with.
My missionaries
were taught to spell out the gilt signs on their tabards—the showy gilding was
a neat idea, I could have got the king to wear a bulletin-board for the sake of
that barbaric splendor—they were to spell out these signs and then explain to
the lords and ladies what soap was; and if the lords and ladies were afraid of
it, get them to try it on a dog. The missionary's next move was to get the
family together and try it on himself; he was to stop at no experiment, however
desperate. that could convince the nobility that soap was harmless; if any
final doubt remained, he must catch a hermit—the woods were full of them;
saints they called themselves, and saints they were believed to be. They were
unspeakably holy, and worked miracles, and everybody stood in awe of them. If a
hermit could survive a wash, and that failed to convince a duke, give him up,
let him alone.
Whenever my
missionaries overcame a knight errant on the road they washed him, and when he
got well they swore him to go and get a bulletin-board and disseminate soap and
civilization the rest of his days. As a consequence the workers in the field
were increasing by degrees, and the reform was steadily spreading. My soap
factory felt the strain early. At first I had only two hands; but before I had
left home I was already employing fifteen, and running night and day; and the
atmospheric result was getting so pronounced that the king went sort of
fainting and gasping around and said he did not believe he could stand it much
longer, and Sir Launcelot got so that he did hardly anything but walk up and
down the roof and swear, although I told him it was worse up there than
anywhere else, but he said he wanted plenty of air; and he was always
complaining that a palace was no place for a soap factory anyway, and said if a
man was to start one in his house he would be damned if he wouldn't strangle
him. There were ladies present, too, but much these people ever cared for that;
they would swear before children, if the wind was their way when the factory
was going.
This missionary
knight's name was La Cote Male Taile, and he said that this castle was the
abode of Morgan le Fay, sister of King Arthur, and wife of King Uriens. monarch
of a realm about as big as the District of Columbia—you could stand in the
middle of it and throw bricks into the next kingdom. “Kings” and “Kingdoms”
were as thick in Britain as they had been in little Palestine in Joshua's time,
when people had to sleep with their knees pulled up because they couldn't
stretch out without a passport.
La Cote was much
depressed, for he had scored here the worst failure of his campaign. He had not
worked off a cake; yet he had tried all the tricks of the trade, even to the
washing of a hermit; but the hermit died. This was, indeed, a bad failure, for
this animal would now be dubbed a martyr, and would take his place among the
saints of the Roman calendar. Thus made he his moan, this poor Sir La Cote Male
Taile, and sorrowed passing sore. And so my heart bled for him, and I was moved
to comfort and stay him. Wherefore I said:
“Forbear to
grieve, fair knight, for this is not a defeat. We have brains, you and I; and
for such as have brains there are no defeats, but only victories. Observe how we
will turn this seeming disaster into an advertisement; an advertisement for our
soap; and the biggest one, to draw, that was ever thought of; an advertisement
that will transform that Mount Washington defeat into a Matterhorn victory. We
will put on your bulletin-board, 'PATRONIZED BY THE ELECT.' How does that
strike you?”
“Verily, it is
wonderly bethought!”
“Well, a body is
bound to admit that for just a modest little one-line ad., it's a corker.”
So the poor
colporteur's griefs vanished away. He was a brave fellow, and had done mighty
feats of arms in his time. His chief celebrity rested upon the events of an
excursion like this one of mine, which he had once made with a damsel named
Maledisant, who was as handy with her tongue as was Sandy, though in a
different way, for her tongue churned forth only railings and insult, whereas
Sandy's music was of a kindlier sort. I knew his story well, and so I knew how
to interpret the compassion that was in his face when he bade me farewell. He
supposed I was having a bitter hard time of it.
Sandy and I
discussed his story, as we rode along, and she said that La Cote's bad luck had
begun with the very beginning of that trip; for the king's fool had overthrown
him on the first day, and in such cases it was customary for the girl to desert
to the conqueror, but Maledisant didn't do it; and also persisted afterward in
sticking to him, after all his defeats. But, said I, suppose the victor should
decline to accept his spoil? She said that that wouldn't answer—he must. He
couldn't decline; it wouldn't be regular. I made a note of that. If Sandy's
music got to be too burdensome, some time, I would let a knight defeat me, on
the chance that she would desert to him.
In due time we
were challenged by the warders, from the castle walls, and after a parley
admitted. I have nothing pleasant to tell about that visit. But it was not a
disappointment, for I knew Mrs. le Fay by reputation, and was not expecting
anything pleasant. She was held in awe by the whole realm, for she had made
everybody believe she was a great sorceress. All her ways were wicked, all her
instincts devilish. She was loaded to the eyelids with cold malice. All her
history was black with crime; and among her crimes murder was common. I was
most curious to see her; as curious as I could have been to see Satan. To my
surprise she was beautiful; black thoughts had failed to make her expression
repulsive, age had failed to wrinkle her satin skin or mar its bloomy
freshness. She could have passed for old Uriens' granddaughter, she could have
been mistaken for sister to her own son.
As soon as we
were fairly within the castle gates we were ordered into her presence. King
Uriens was there, a kind-faced old man with a subdued look; and also the son,
Sir Uwaine le Blanchemains, in whom I was, of course, interested on account of
the tradition that he had once done battle with thirty knights, and also on
account of his trip with Sir Gawaine and Sir Marhaus, which Sandy had been
aging me with. But Morgan was the main attraction, the conspicuous personality
here; she was head chief of this household, that was plain. She caused us to be
seated, and then she began, with all manner of pretty graces and
graciousnesses, to ask me questions. Dear me, it was like a bird or a flute, or
something, talking. I felt persuaded that this woman must have been
misrepresented, lied about. She trilled along, and trilled along, and presently
a handsome young page, clothed like the rainbow, and as easy and undulatory of
movement as a wave, came with something on a golden salver, and, kneeling to
present it to her, overdid his graces and lost his balance, and so fell lightly
against her knee. She slipped a dirk into him in as matter-of-course a way as
another person would have harpooned a rat!
Poor child! he
slumped to the floor, twisted his silken limbs in one great straining
contortion of pain, and was dead. Out of the old king was wrung an involuntary
“O-h!” of compassion. The look he got, made him cut it suddenly short and not
put any more hyphens in it. Sir Uwaine, at a sign from his mother, went to the
anteroom and called some servants, and meanwhile madame went rippling sweetly
along with her talk.
I saw that she
was a good housekeeper, for while she talked she kept a corner of her eye on
the servants to see that they made no balks in handling the body and getting it
out; when they came with fresh clean towels, she sent back for the other kind;
and when they had finished wiping the floor and were going, she indicated a
crimson fleck the size of a tear which their duller eyes had overlooked. It was
plain to me that La Cote Male Taile had failed to see the mistress of the
house. Often, how louder and clearer than any tongue, does dumb circumstantial
evidence speak.
Morgan le Fay
rippled along as musically as ever. Marvelous woman. And what a glance she had:
when it fell in reproof upon those servants, they shrunk and quailed as timid
people do when the lightning flashes out of a cloud. I could have got the habit
myself. It was the same with that poor old Brer Uriens; he was always on the
ragged edge of apprehension; she could not even turn toward him but he winced.
In the midst of
the talk I let drop a complimentary word about King Arthur, forgetting for the
moment how this woman hated her brother. That one little compliment was enough.
She clouded up like storm; she called for her guards, and said:
“Hale me these
varlets to the dungeons.”
That struck cold
on my ears, for her dungeons had a reputation. Nothing occurred to me to say—or
do. But not so with Sandy. As the guard laid a hand upon me, she piped up with
the tranquilest confidence, and said:
“God's wounds,
dost thou covet destruction, thou maniac? It is The Boss!”
Now what a happy
idea that was!—and so simple; yet it would never have occurred to me. I was
born modest; not all over, but in spots; and this was one of the spots.
The effect upon
madame was electrical. It cleared her countenance and brought back her smiles
and all her persuasive graces and blandishments; but nevertheless she was not
able to entirely cover up with them the fact that she was in a ghastly fright.
She said:
“La, but do list
to thine handmaid! as if one gifted with powers like to mine might say the
thing which I have said unto one who has vanquished Merlin, and not be jesting.
By mine enchantments I foresaw your coming, and by them I knew you when you
entered here. I did but play this little jest with hope to surprise you into
some display of your art, as not doubting you would blast the guards with
occult fires, consuming them to ashes on the spot, a marvel much beyond mine
own ability, yet one which I have long been childishly curious to see.”
The guards were
less curious, and got out as soon as they got permission.
Chapter XVII.
A ROYAL BANQUET
MADAME, seeing me
pacific and unresentful, no doubt judged that I was deceived by her excuse; for
her fright dissolved away, and she was soon so importunate to have me give an
exhibition and kill somebody, that the thing grew to be embarrassing. However,
to my relief she was presently interrupted by the call to prayers. I will say
this much for the nobility: that, tyrannical, murderous, rapacious, and morally
rotten as they were, they were deeply and enthusiastically religious. Nothing
could divert them from the regular and faithful performance of the pieties
enjoined by the Church. More than once I had seen a noble who had gotten his
enemy at a disadvantage, stop to pray before cutting his throat; more than once
I had seen a noble, after ambushing and despatching his enemy, retire to the
nearest wayside shrine and humbly give thanks, without even waiting to rob the
body. There was to be nothing finer or sweeter in the life of even Benvenuto
Cellini, that rough-hewn saint, ten centuries later. All the nobles of Britain,
with their families, attended divine service morning and night daily, in their
private chapels, and even the worst of them had family worship five or six
times a day besides. The credit of this belonged entirely to the Church.
Although I was no friend to that Catholic Church, I was obliged to admit this.
And often, in spite of me, I found myself saying, “What would this country be
without the Church?”
After prayers we
had dinner in a great banqueting hall which was lighted by hundreds of grease-jets,
and everything was as fine and lavish and rudely splendid as might become the
royal degree of the hosts. At the head of the hall, on a dais, was the table of
the king, queen, and their son, Prince Uwaine. Stretching down the hall from
this, was the general table, on the floor. At this, above the salt, sat the
visiting nobles and the grown members of their families, of both sexes,—the
resident Court, in effect—sixty-one persons; below the salt sat minor officers
of the household, with their principal subordinates: altogether a hundred and
eighteen persons sitting, and about as many liveried servants standing behind
their chairs, or serving in one capacity or another. It was a very fine show.
In a gallery a band with cymbals, horns, harps, and other horrors, opened the
proceedings with what seemed to be the crude first-draft or original agony of
the wail known to later centuries as “In the Sweet Bye and Bye.” It was new,
and ought to have been rehearsed a little more. For some reason or other the
queen had the composer hanged, after dinner.
After this music,
the priest who stood behind the royal table said a noble long grace in
ostensible Latin. Then the battalion of waiters broke away from their posts,
and darted, rushed, flew, fetched and carried, and the mighty feeding began; no
words anywhere, but absorbing attention to business. The rows of chops opened
and shut in vast unison, and the sound of it was like to the muffled burr of
subterranean machinery.
The havoc
continued an hour and a half, and unimaginable was the destruction of
substantials. Of the chief feature of the feast—the huge wild boar that lay
stretched out so portly and imposing at the start—nothing was left but the
semblance of a hoop-skirt; and he was but the type and symbol of what had happened
to all the other dishes.
With the pastries
and so on, the heavy drinking began—and the talk. Gallon after gallon of wine
and mead disappeared, and everybody got comfortable, then happy, then
sparklingly joyous—both sexes,—and by and by pretty noisy. Men told anecdotes
that were terrific to hear, but nobody blushed; and when the nub was sprung,
the assemblage let go with a horse-laugh that shook the fortress. Ladies
answered back with historiettes that would almost have made Queen Margaret of
Navarre or even the great Elizabeth of England hide behind a handkerchief, but
nobody hid here, but only laughed—howled, you may say. In pretty much all of
these dreadful stories, ecclesiastics were the hardy heroes, but that didn't
worry the chaplain any, he had his laugh with the rest; more than that, upon
invitation he roared out a song which was of as daring a sort as any that was
sung that night.
By midnight
everybody was fagged out, and sore with laughing; and, as a rule, drunk: some
weepingly, some affectionately, some hilariously, some quarrelsomely, some dead
and under the table. Of the ladies, the worst spectacle was a lovely young
duchess, whose wedding-eve this was; and indeed she was a spectacle, sure
enough. Just as she was she could have sat in advance for the portrait of the
young daughter of the Regent d'Orleans, at the famous dinner whence she was
carried, foul-mouthed, intoxicated, and helpless, to her bed, in the lost and
lamented days of the Ancient Regime.
Suddenly, even
while the priest was lifting his hands, and all conscious heads were bowed in
reverent expectation of the coming blessing, there appeared under the arch of
the far-off door at the bottom of the hall an old and bent and white-haired
lady, leaning upon a crutch-stick; and she lifted the stick and pointed it
toward the queen and cried out:
“The wrath and
curse of God fall upon you, woman without pity, who have slain mine innocent
grandchild and made desolate this old heart that had nor chick, nor friend nor
stay nor comfort in all this world but him!”
Everybody crossed
himself in a grisly fright, for a curse was an awful thing to those people; but
the queen rose up majestic, with the death-light in her eye, and flung back
this ruthless command:
“Lay hands on
her! To the stake with her!”
The guards left
their posts to obey. It was a shame; it was a cruel thing to see. What could be
done? Sandy gave me a look; I knew she had another inspiration. I said:
“Do what you
choose.”
She was up and
facing toward the queen in a moment. She indicated me, and said:
“Madame, HE saith
this may not be. Recall the commandment, or he will dissolve the castle and it
shall vanish away like the instable fabric of a dream!”
Confound it, what
a crazy contract to pledge a person to! What if the queen—
But my consternation
subsided there, and my panic passed off; for the queen, all in a collapse, made
no show of resistance but gave a countermanding sign and sunk into her seat.
When she reached it she was sober. So were many of the others. The assemblage
rose, whiffed ceremony to the winds, and rushed for the door like a mob;
overturning chairs, smashing crockery, tugging, struggling, shouldering,
crowding—anything to get out before I should change my mind and puff the castle
into the measureless dim vacancies of space. Well, well, well, they WERE a
superstitious lot. It is all a body can do to conceive of it.
The poor queen
was so scared and humbled that she was even afraid to hang the composer without
first consulting me. I was very sorry for her—indeed, any one would have been,
for she was really suffering; so I was willing to do anything that was
reasonable, and had no desire to carry things to wanton extremities. I
therefore considered the matter thoughtfully, and ended by having the musicians
ordered into our presence to play that Sweet Bye and Bye again, which they did.
Then I saw that she was right, and gave her permission to hang the whole band.
This little relaxation of sternness had a good effect upon the queen. A
statesman gains little by the arbitrary exercise of iron-clad authority upon
all occasions that offer, for this wounds the just pride of his subordinates,
and thus tends to undermine his strength. A little concession, now and then,
where it can do no harm, is the wiser policy.
Now that the
queen was at ease in her mind once more, and measurably happy, her wine
naturally began to assert itself again, and it got a little the start of her. I
mean it set her music going—her silver bell of a tongue. Dear me, she was a
master talker. It would not become me to suggest that it was pretty late and
that I was a tired man and very sleepy. I wished I had gone off to bed when I
had the chance. Now I must stick it out; there was no other way. So she tinkled
along and along, in the otherwise profound and ghostly hush of the sleeping
castle, until by and by there came, as if from deep down under us, a far-away
sound, as of a muffled shriek—with an expression of agony about it that made my
flesh crawl. The queen stopped, and her eyes lighted with pleasure; she tilted
her graceful head as a bird does when it listens. The sound bored its way up
through the stillness again.
“What is it?” I
said.
“It is truly a
stubborn soul, and endureth long. It is many hours now.”
“Endureth what?”
“The rack.
Come—ye shall see a blithe sight. An he yield not his secret now, ye shall see
him torn asunder.”
What a silky
smooth hellion she was; and so composed and serene, when the cords all down my
legs were hurting in sympathy with that man's pain. Conducted by mailed guards
bearing flaring torches, we tramped along echoing corridors, and down stone
stairways dank and dripping, and smelling of mould and ages of imprisoned
night—a chill, uncanny journey and a long one, and not made the shorter or the
cheerier by the sorceress's talk, which was about this sufferer and his crime.
He had been accused by an anonymous informer, of having killed a stag in the
royal preserves. I said:
“Anonymous
testimony isn't just the right thing, your Highness. It were fairer to confront
the accused with the accuser.”
“I had not
thought of that, it being but of small consequence. But an I would, I could
not, for that the accuser came masked by night, and told the forester, and
straightway got him hence again, and so the forester knoweth him not.”
“Then is this
Unknown the only person who saw the stag killed?”
“Marry, NO man
SAW the killing, but this Unknown saw this hardy wretch near to the spot where
the stag lay, and came with right loyal zeal and betrayed him to the forester.”
“So the Unknown
was near the dead stag, too? Isn't it just possible that he did the killing
himself? His loyal zeal—in a mask—looks just a shade suspicious. But what is
your highness's idea for racking the prisoner? Where is the profit?”
“He will not
confess, else; and then were his soul lost. For his crime his life is forfeited
by the law—and of a surety will I see that he payeth it!—but it were peril to
my own soul to let him die unconfessed and unabsolved. Nay, I were a fool to
fling me into hell for HIS accommodation.”
“But, your
Highness, suppose he has nothing to confess?”
“As to that, we
shall see, anon. An I rack him to death and he confess not, it will
peradventure show that he had indeed naught to confess—ye will grant that that
is sooth? Then shall I not be damned for an unconfessed man that had naught to
confess—wherefore, I shall be safe.”
It was the
stubborn unreasoning of the time. It was useless to argue with her. Arguments
have no chance against petrified training; they wear it as little as the waves
wear a cliff. And her training was everybody's. The brightest intellect in the
land would not have been able to see that her position was defective.
As we entered the
rack-cell I caught a picture that will not go from me; I wish it would. A
native young giant of thirty or thereabouts lay stretched upon the frame on his
back, with his wrists and ankles tied to ropes which led over windlasses at
either end. There was no color in him; his features were contorted and set, and
sweat-drops stood upon his forehead. A priest bent over him on each side; the
executioner stood by; guards were on duty; smoking torches stood in sockets
along the walls; in a corner crouched a poor young creature, her face drawn
with anguish, a half-wild and hunted look in her eyes, and in her lap lay a
little child asleep. Just as we stepped across the threshold the executioner
gave his machine a slight turn, which wrung a cry from both the prisoner and
the woman; but I shouted, and the executioner released the strain without
waiting to see who spoke. I could not let this horror go on; it would have
killed me to see it. I asked the queen to let me clear the place and speak to
the prisoner privately; and when she was going to object I spoke in a low voice
and said I did not want to make a scene before her servants, but I must have my
way; for I was King Arthur's representative, and was speaking in his name. She
saw she had to yield. I asked her to indorse me to these people, and then leave
me. It was not pleasant for her, but she took the pill; and even went further
than I was meaning to require. I only wanted the backing of her own authority;
but she said:
“Ye will do in
all things as this lord shall command. It is The Boss.”
It was certainly
a good word to conjure with: you could see it by the squirming of these rats.
The queen's guards fell into line, and she and they marched away, with their
torch-bearers, and woke the echoes of the cavernous tunnels with the measured
beat of their retreating footfalls. I had the prisoner taken from the rack and
placed upon his bed, and medicaments applied to his hurts, and wine given him
to drink. The woman crept near and looked on, eagerly, lovingly, but
timorously,—like one who fears a repulse; indeed, she tried furtively to touch
the man's forehead, and jumped back, the picture of fright, when I turned
unconsciously toward her. It was pitiful to see.
“Lord,” I said,
“stroke him, lass, if you want to. Do anything you're a mind to; don't mind
me.”
Why, her eyes
were as grateful as an animal's, when you do it a kindness that it understands.
The baby was out of her way and she had her cheek against the man's in a
minute. and her hands fondling his hair, and her happy tears running down. The
man revived and caressed his wife with his eyes, which was all he could do. I judged
I might clear the den, now, and I did; cleared it of all but the family and
myself. Then I said:
“Now, my friend,
tell me your side of this matter; I know the other side.”
The man moved his
head in sign of refusal. But the woman looked pleased—as it seemed to
me—pleased with my suggestion. I went on—
“You know of me?”
“Yes. All do, in
Arthur's realms.”
“If my reputation
has come to you right and straight, you should not be afraid to speak.”
The woman broke
in, eagerly:
“Ah, fair my
lord, do thou persuade him! Thou canst an thou wilt. Ah, he suffereth so; and
it is for me—for ME! And how can I bear it? I would I might see him die—a
sweet, swift death; oh, my Hugo, I cannot bear this one!”
And she fell to
sobbing and grovelling about my feet, and still imploring. Imploring what? The
man's death? I could not quite get the bearings of the thing. But Hugo
interrupted her and said:
“Peace! Ye wit
not what ye ask. Shall I starve whom I love, to win a gentle death? I wend thou
knewest me better.”
“Well,” I said,
“I can't quite make this out. It is a puzzle. Now—”
“Ah, dear my
lord, an ye will but persuade him! Consider how these his tortures wound me!
Oh, and he will not speak!—whereas, the healing, the solace that lie in a
blessed swift death—”
“What ARE you maundering
about? He's going out from here a free man and whole—he's not going to die.”
The man's white
face lit up, and the woman flung herself at me in a most surprising explosion
of joy, and cried out:
“He is saved!—for
it is the king's word by the mouth of the king's servant—Arthur, the king whose
word is gold!”
“Well, then you
do believe I can be trusted, after all. Why didn't you before?”
“Who doubted? Not
I, indeed; and not she.”
“Well, why
wouldn't you tell me your story, then?”
“Ye had made no
promise; else had it been otherwise.”
“I see, I see...
And yet I believe I don't quite see, after all. You stood the torture and
refused to confess; which shows plain enough to even the dullest understanding
that you had nothing to confess—”
“I, my lord? How
so? It was I that killed the deer!”
“You DID? Oh,
dear, this is the most mixed-up business that ever—”
“Dear lord, I
begged him on my knees to confess, but—”
“You DID! It gets
thicker and thicker. What did you want him to do that for?”
“Sith it would
bring him a quick death and save him all this cruel pain.”
“Well—yes, there
is reason in that. But HE didn't want the quick death.”
“He? Why, of a
surety he DID.”
“Well, then, why
in the world DIDN'T he confess?”
“Ah, sweet sir,
and leave my wife and chick without bread and shelter?”
“Oh, heart of
gold, now I see it! The bitter law takes the convicted man's estate and beggars
his widow and his orphans. They could torture you to death, but without
conviction or confession they could not rob your wife and baby. You stood by
them like a man; and YOU—true wife and the woman that you are—you would have
bought him release from torture at cost to yourself of slow starvation and
death—well, it humbles a body to think what your sex can do when it comes to
self-sacrifice. I'll book you both for my colony; you'll like it there; it's a
Factory where I'm going to turn groping and grubbing automata into MEN.”
Chapter XVIII.
IN THE QUEEN'S
DUNGEONS
WELL, I arranged
all that; and I had the man sent to his home. I had a great desire to rack the
executioner; not because he was a good, painstaking and paingiving
official,—for surely it was not to his discredit that he performed his
functions well—but to pay him back for wantonly cuffing and otherwise distressing
that young woman. The priests told me about this, and were generously hot to
have him punished. Something of this disagreeable sort was turning up every now
and then. I mean, episodes that showed that not all priests were frauds and
self-seekers, but that many, even the great majority, of these that were down
on the ground among the common people, were sincere and right-hearted, and
devoted to the alleviation of human troubles and sufferings. Well, it was a
thing which could not be helped, so I seldom fretted about it, and never many
minutes at a time; it has never been my way to bother much about things which
you can't cure. But I did not like it, for it was just the sort of thing to
keep people reconciled to an Established Church. We MUST have a religion—it
goes without saying—but my idea is, to have it cut up into forty free sects, so
that they will police each other, as had been the case in the United States in
my time. Concentration of power in a political machine is bad; and and an
Established Church is only a political machine; it was invented for that; it is
nursed, cradled, preserved for that; it is an enemy to human liberty, and does
no good which it could not better do in a split-up and scattered condition.
That wasn't law; it wasn't gospel: it was only an opinion—my opinion, and I was
only a man, one man: so it wasn't worth any more than the pope's—or any less,
for that matter.
Well, I couldn't
rack the executioner, neither would I overlook the just complaint of the
priests. The man must be punished somehow or other, so I degraded him from his
office and made him leader of the band—the new one that was to be started. He
begged hard, and said he couldn't play—a plausible excuse, but too thin; there
wasn't a musician in the country that could.
The queen was a
good deal outraged, next morning when she found she was going to have neither
Hugo's life nor his property. But I told her she must bear this cross; that
while by law and custom she certainly was entitled to both the man's life and
his property, there were extenuating circumstances, and so in Arthur the king's
name I had pardoned him. The deer was ravaging the man's fields, and he had
killed it in sudden passion, and not for gain; and he had carried it into the
royal forest in the hope that that might make detection of the misdoer
impossible. Confound her, I couldn't make her see that sudden passion is an
extenuating circumstance in the killing of venison—or of a person—so I gave it
up and let her sulk it out I DID think I was going to make her see it by
remarking that her own sudden passion in the case of the page modified that
crime.
“Crime!” she
exclaimed. “How thou talkest! Crime, forsooth! Man, I am going to PAY for him!”
Oh, it was no use
to waste sense on her. Training—training is everything; training is all there
is TO a person. We speak of nature; it is folly; there is no such thing as
nature; what we call by that misleading name is merely heredity and training.
We have no thoughts of our own, no opinions of our own; they are transmitted to
us, trained into us. All that is original in us, and therefore fairly
creditable or discreditable to us, can be covered up and hidden by the point of
a cambric needle, all the rest being atoms contributed by, and inherited from,
a procession of ancestors that stretches back a billion years to the Adam-clam
or grasshopper or monkey from whom our race has been so tediously and
ostentatiously and unprofitably developed. And as for me, all that I think
about in this plodding sad pilgrimage, this pathetic drift between the
eternities, is to look out and humbly live a pure and high and blameless life,
and save that one microscopic atom in me that is truly ME: the rest may land in
Sheol and welcome for all I care.
No, confound her,
her intellect was good, she had brains enough, but her training made her an
ass—that is, from a many-centuries-later point of view. To kill the page was no
crime—it was her right; and upon her right she stood, serenely and unconscious
of offense. She was a result of generations of training in the unexamined and
unassailed belief that the law which permitted her to kill a subject when she
chose was a perfectly right and righteous one.
Well, we must
give even Satan his due. She deserved a compliment for one thing; and I tried
to pay it, but the words stuck in my throat. She had a right to kill the boy,
but she was in no wise obliged to pay for him. That was law for some other
people, but not for her. She knew quite well that she was doing a large and
generous thing to pay for that lad, and that I ought in common fairness to come
out with something handsome about it, but I couldn't—my mouth refused. I
couldn't help seeing, in my fancy, that poor old grandma with the broken heart,
and that fair young creature lying butchered, his little silken pomps and
vanities laced with his golden blood. How could she PAY for him! WHOM could she
pay? And so, well knowing that this woman, trained as she had been, deserved
praise, even adulation, I was yet not able to utter it, trained as I had been.
The best I could do was to fish up a compliment from outside, so to speak—and
the pity of it was, that it was true:
“Madame, your
people will adore you for this.”
Quite true, but I
meant to hang her for it some day if I lived. Some of those laws were too bad,
altogether too bad. A master might kill his slave for nothing—for mere spite,
malice, or to pass the time—just as we have seen that the crowned head could do
it with HIS slave, that is to say, anybody. A gentleman could kill a free
commoner, and pay for him—cash or garden-truck. A noble could kill a noble
without expense, as far as the law was concerned, but reprisals in kind were to
be expected. ANYbody could kill SOMEbody, except the commoner and the slave;
these had no privileges. If they killed, it was murder, and the law wouldn't
stand murder. It made short work of the experimenter—and of his family, too, if
he murdered somebody who belonged up among the ornamental ranks. If a commoner
gave a noble even so much as a Damiens-scratch which didn't kill or even hurt,
he got Damiens' dose for it just the same; they pulled him to rags and tatters
with horses, and all the world came to see the show, and crack jokes, and have
a good time; and some of the performances of the best people present were as
tough, and as properly unprintable, as any that have been printed by the
pleasant Casanova in his chapter about the dismemberment of Louis XV.'s poor
awkward enemy.
I had had enough
of this grisly place by this time, and wanted to leave, but I couldn't, because
I had something on my mind that my conscience kept prodding me about, and
wouldn't let me forget. If I had the remaking of man, he wouldn't have any
conscience. It is one of the most disagreeable things connected with a person;
and although it certainly does a great deal of good, it cannot be said to pay,
in the long run; it would be much better to have less good and more comfort.
Still, this is only my opinion, and I am only one man; others, with less
experience, may think differently. They have a right to their view. I only
stand to this: I have noticed my conscience for many years, and I know it is
more trouble and bother to me than anything else I started with. I suppose that
in the beginning I prized it, because we prize anything that is ours; and yet
how foolish it was to think so. If we look at it in another way, we see how
absurd it is: if I had an anvil in me would I prize it? Of course not. And yet
when you come to think, there is no real difference between a conscience and an
anvil—I mean for comfort. I have noticed it a thousand times. And you could
dissolve an anvil with acids, when you couldn't stand it any longer; but there
isn't any way that you can work off a conscience—at least so it will stay
worked off; not that I know of, anyway.
There was
something I wanted to do before leaving, but it was a disagreeable matter, and
I hated to go at it. Well, it bothered me all the morning. I could have
mentioned it to the old king, but what would be the use?—he was but an extinct
volcano; he had been active in his time, but his fire was out, this good while,
he was only a stately ash-pile now; gentle enough, and kindly enough for my
purpose, without doubt, but not usable. He was nothing, this so-called king:
the queen was the only power there. And she was a Vesuvius. As a favor, she
might consent to warm a flock of sparrows for you, but then she might take that
very opportunity to turn herself loose and bury a city. However, I reflected
that as often as any other way, when you are expecting the worst, you get
something that is not so bad, after all.
So I braced up
and placed my matter before her royal Highness. I said I had been having a
general jail-delivery at Camelot and among neighboring castles, and with her
permission I would like to examine her collection, her bric-a-brac—that is to
say, her prisoners. She resisted; but I was expecting that. But she finally
consented. I was expecting that, too, but not so soon. That about ended my
discomfort. She called her guards and torches, and we went down into the
dungeons. These were down under the castle's foundations, and mainly were small
cells hollowed out of the living rock. Some of these cells had no light at all.
In one of them was a woman, in foul rags, who sat on the ground, and would not
answer a question or speak a word, but only looked up at us once or twice,
through a cobweb of tangled hair, as if to see what casual thing it might be
that was disturbing with sound and light the meaningless dull dream that was
become her life; after that, she sat bowed, with her dirt-caked fingers idly
interlocked in her lap, and gave no further sign. This poor rack of bones was a
woman of middle age, apparently; but only apparently; she had been there nine
years, and was eighteen when she entered. She was a commoner, and had been sent
here on her bridal night by Sir Breuse Sance Pite, a neighboring lord whose
vassal her father was, and to which said lord she had refused what has since
been called le droit du seigneur, and, moreover, had opposed violence to
violence and spilt half a gill of his almost sacred blood. The young husband
had interfered at that point. believing the bride's life in danger, and had
flung the noble out into the midst of the humble and trembling wedding guests,
in the parlor, and left him there astonished at this strange treatment, and
implacably embittered against both bride and groom. The said lord being cramped
for dungeon-room had asked the queen to accommodate his two criminals, and here
in her bastile they had been ever since; hither, indeed, they had come before
their crime was an hour old, and had never seen each other since. Here they
were, kenneled like toads in the same rock; they had passed nine pitch dark
years within fifty feet of each other, yet neither knew whether the other was
alive or not. All the first years, their only question had been—asked with
beseechings and tears that might have moved stones, in time, perhaps, but
hearts are not stones: “Is he alive?” “Is she alive?” But they had never got an
answer; and at last that question was not asked any more—or any other.
I wanted to see
the man, after hearing all this. He was thirty-four years old, and looked
sixty. He sat upon a squared block of stone, with his head bent down, his
forearms resting on his knees, his long hair hanging like a fringe before his
face, and he was muttering to himself. He raised his chin and looked us slowly
over, in a listless dull way, blinking with the distress of the torchlight,
then dropped his head and fell to muttering again and took no further notice of
us. There were some pathetically suggestive dumb witnesses present. On his
wrists and ankles were cicatrices, old smooth scars, and fastened to the stone
on which he sat was a chain with manacles and fetters attached; but this
apparatus lay idle on the ground, and was thick with rust. Chains cease to be
needed after the spirit has gone out of a prisoner.
I could not rouse
the man; so I said we would take him to her, and see—to the bride who was the
fairest thing in the earth to him, once—roses, pearls, and dew made flesh, for
him; a wonder-work, the master-work of nature: with eyes like no other eyes,
and voice like no other voice, and a freshness, and lithe young grace, and
beauty, that belonged properly to the creatures of dreams—as he thought—and to
no other. The sight of her would set his stagnant blood leaping; the sight of
her—
But it was a
disappointment. They sat together on the ground and looked dimly wondering into
each other's faces a while, with a sort of weak animal curiosity; then forgot
each other's presence, and dropped their eyes, and you saw that they were away
again and wandering in some far land of dreams and shadows that we know nothing
about.
I had them taken
out and sent to their friends. The queen did not like it much. Not that she
felt any personal interest in the matter, but she thought it disrespectful to
Sir Breuse Sance Pite. However, I assured her that if he found he couldn't
stand it I would fix him so that he could.
I set forty-seven
prisoners loose out of those awful rat-holes, and left only one in captivity.
He was a lord, and had killed another lord, a sort of kinsman of the queen.
That other lord had ambushed him to assassinate him, but this fellow had got
the best of him and cut his throat. However, it was not for that that I left
him jailed, but for maliciously destroying the only public well in one of his
wretched villages. The queen was bound to hang him for killing her kinsman, but
I would not allow it: it was no crime to kill an assassin. But I said I was
willing to let her hang him for destroying the well; so she concluded to put up
with that, as it was better than nothing.
Dear me, for what
trifling offenses the most of those forty-seven men and women were shut up
there! Indeed, some were there for no distinct offense at all, but only to
gratify somebody's spite; and not always the queen's by any means, but a
friend's. The newest prisoner's crime was a mere remark which he had made. He
said he believed that men were about all alike, and one man as good as another,
barring clothes. He said he believed that if you were to strip the nation naked
and send a stranger through the crowd, he couldn't tell the king from a quack
doctor, nor a duke from a hotel clerk. Apparently here was a man whose brains
had not been reduced to an ineffectual mush by idiotic training. I set him
loose and sent him to the Factory.
Some of the cells
carved in the living rock were just behind the face of the precipice, and in
each of these an arrow-slit had been pierced outward to the daylight, and so
the captive had a thin ray from the blessed sun for his comfort. The case of
one of these poor fellows was particularly hard. From his dusky swallow's hole
high up in that vast wall of native rock he could peer out through the
arrow-slit and see his own home off yonder in the valley; and for twenty-two
years he had watched it, with heartache and longing, through that crack. He
could see the lights shine there at night, and in the daytime he could see
figures go in and come out—his wife and children, some of them, no doubt,
though he could not make out at that distance. In the course of years he noted
festivities there, and tried to rejoice, and wondered if they were weddings or
what they might be. And he noted funerals; and they wrung his heart. He could
make out the coffin, but he could not determine its size, and so could not tell
whether it was wife or child. He could see the procession form, with priests
and mourners, and move solemnly away, bearing the secret with them. He had left
behind him five children and a wife; and in nineteen years he had seen five
funerals issue, and none of them humble enough in pomp to denote a servant. So
he had lost five of his treasures; there must still be one remaining—one now
infinitely, unspeakably precious,—but WHICH one? wife, or child? That was the
question that tortured him, by night and by day, asleep and awake. Well, to
have an interest, of some sort, and half a ray of light, when you are in a
dungeon, is a great support to the body and preserver of the intellect. This
man was in pretty good condition yet. By the time he had finished telling me
his distressful tale, I was in the same state of mind that you would have been
in yourself, if you have got average human curiosity; that is to say, I was as
burning up as he was to find out which member of the family it was that was
left. So I took him over home myself; and an amazing kind of a surprise party
it was, too—typhoons and cyclones of frantic joy, and whole Niagaras of happy
tears; and by George! we found the aforetime young matron graying toward the imminent
verge of her half century, and the babies all men and women, and some of them
married and experimenting familywise themselves—for not a soul of the tribe was
dead! Conceive of the ingenious devilishness of that queen: she had a special
hatred for this prisoner, and she had INVENTED all those funerals herself, to
scorch his heart with; and the sublimest stroke of genius of the whole thing
was leaving the family-invoice a funeral SHORT, so as to let him wear his poor
old soul out guessing.
But for me, he
never would have got out. Morgan le Fay hated him with her whole heart, and she
never would have softened toward him. And yet his crime was committed more in
thoughtlessness than deliberate depravity. He had said she had red hair. Well,
she had; but that was no way to speak of it. When redheaded people are above a
certain social grade their hair is auburn.
Consider it:
among these forty-seven captives there were five whose names, offenses, and
dates of incarceration were no longer known! One woman and four men—all bent,
and wrinkled, and mind-extinguished patriarchs. They themselves had long ago
forgotten these details; at any rate they had mere vague theories about them,
nothing definite and nothing that they repeated twice in the same way. The
succession of priests whose office it had been to pray daily with the captives
and remind them that God had put them there, for some wise purpose or other,
and teach them that patience, humbleness, and submission to oppression was what
He loved to see in parties of a subordinate rank, had traditions about these
poor old human ruins, but nothing more. These traditions went but little way,
for they concerned the length of the incarceration only, and not the names of
the offenses. And even by the help of tradition the only thing that could be
proven was that none of the five had seen daylight for thirty-five years: how
much longer this privation has lasted was not guessable. The king and the queen
knew nothing about these poor creatures, except that they were heirlooms,
assets inherited, along with the throne, from the former firm. Nothing of their
history had been transmitted with their persons, and so the inheriting owners
had considered them of no value, and had felt no interest in them. I said to
the queen:
“Then why in the
world didn't you set them free?”
The question was
a puzzler. She didn't know WHY she hadn't, the thing had never come up in her
mind. So here she was, forecasting the veritable history of future prisoners of
the Castle d'If, without knowing it. It seemed plain to me now, that with her
training, those inherited prisoners were merely property—nothing more, nothing
less. Well, when we inherit property, it does not occur to us to throw it away,
even when we do not value it.
When I brought my
procession of human bats up into the open world and the glare of the afternoon
sun—previously blindfolding them, in charity for eyes so long untortured by
light—they were a spectacle to look at. Skeletons, scarecrows, goblins,
pathetic frights, every one; legitimatest possible children of Monarchy by the
Grace of God and the Established Church. I muttered absently:
“I WISH I could
photograph them!”
You have seen
that kind of people who will never let on that they don't know the meaning of a
new big word. The more ignorant they are, the more pitifully certain they are
to pretend you haven't shot over their heads. The queen was just one of that
sort, and was always making the stupidest blunders by reason of it. She
hesitated a moment; then her face brightened up with sudden comprehension, and
she said she would do it for me.
I thought to
myself: She? why what can she know about photography? But it was a poor time to
be thinking. When I looked around, she was moving on the procession with an
axe!
Well, she
certainly was a curious one, was Morgan le Fay. I have seen a good many kinds
of women in my time, but she laid over them all for variety. And how sharply
characteristic of her this episode was. She had no more idea than a horse of
how to photograph a procession; but being in doubt, it was just like her to try
to do it with an axe.
Chapter XIX.
KNIGHT-ERRANTRY
AS A TRADE
SANDY and I were
on the road again, next morning, bright and early. It was so good to open up
one's lungs and take in whole luscious barrels-ful of the blessed God's
untainted, dew-fashioned, woodlandscented air once more, after suffocating body
and mind for two days and nights in the moral and physical stenches of that
intolerable old buzzard-roost! mean, for me: of course the place was all right
and agreeable enough for Sandy, for she had been used to high life all her
days.
Poor girl, her
jaws had had a wearisome rest now for a while, and I was expecting to get the
consequences. I was right; but she had stood by me most helpfully in the
castle, and had mightily supported and reinforced me with gigantic
foolishnesses which were worth more for the occasion than wisdoms double their
size; so I thought she had earned a right to work her mill for a while, if she
wanted to, and I felt not a pang when she started it up:
“Now turn we unto
Sir Marhaus that rode with the damsel of thirty winter of age southward—”
“Are you going to
see if you can work up another half-stretch on the trail of the cowboys,
Sandy?”
“Even so, fair my
lord.”
“Go ahead, then.
I won't interrupt this time, if I can help it. Begin over again; start fair,
and shake out all your reefs, and I will load my pipe and give good attention.”
“Now turn we unto
Sir Marhaus that rode with the damsel of thirty winter of age southward. And so
they came into a deep forest, and by fortune they were nighted, and rode along
in a deep way, and at the last they came into a courtelage where abode the duke
of South Marches, and there they asked harbour. And on the morn the duke sent
unto Sir Marhaus, and bad him make him ready. And so Sir Marhaus arose and
armed him, and there was a mass sung afore him, and he brake his fast, and so
mounted on horseback in the court of the castle, there they should do the
battle. So there was the duke already on horseback, clean armed, and his six
sons by him, and every each had a spear in his hand, and so they encountered,
whereas the duke and his two sons brake their spears upon him, but Sir Marhaus
held up his spear and touched none of them. Then came the four sons by couples,
and two of them brake their spears, and so did the other two. And all this
while Sir Marhaus touched them not. Then Sir Marhaus ran to the duke, and smote
him with his spear that horse and man fell to the earth. And so he served his
sons. And then Sir Marhaus alight down, and bad the duke yield him or else he
would slay him. And then some of his sons recovered, and would have set upon
Sir Marhaus. Then Sir Marhaus said to the duke, Cease thy sons, or else I will
do the uttermost to you all. When the duke saw he might not escape the death,
he cried to his sons, and charged them to yield them to Sir Marhaus. And they
kneeled all down and put the pommels of their swords to the knight, and so he
received them. And then they holp up their father, and so by their common
assent promised unto Sir Marhaus never to be foes unto King Arthur, and
thereupon at Whitsuntide after, to come he and his sons, and put them in the
king's grace. *
[* Footnote: The
story is borrowed, language and all, from the Morte d'Arthur.—M.T.]
“Even so standeth
the history, fair Sir Boss. Now ye shall wit that that very duke and his six
sons are they whom but few days past you also did overcome and send to Arthur's
court!”
“Why, Sandy, you
can't mean it!”
“An I speak not
sooth, let it be the worse for me.”
“Well, well,
well,—now who would ever have thought it? One whole duke and six dukelets; why,
Sandy, it was an elegant haul. Knight-errantry is a most chuckle-headed trade,
and it is tedious hard work, too, but I begin to see that there IS money in it,
after all, if you have luck. Not that I would ever engage in it as a business,
for I wouldn't. No sound and legitimate business can be established on a basis
of speculation. A successful whirl in the knight-errantry line—now what is it
when you blow away the nonsense and come down to the cold facts? It's just a
corner in pork, that's all, and you can't make anything else out of it. You're
rich—yes,—suddenly rich—for about a day, maybe a week; then somebody corners
the market on YOU, and down goes your bucketshop; ain't that so, Sandy?”
“Whethersoever it
be that my mind miscarrieth, bewraying simple language in such sort that the
words do seem to come endlong and overthwart—”
“There's no use
in beating about the bush and trying to get around it that way, Sandy, it's SO,
just as I say. I KNOW it's so. And, moreover, when you come right down to the
bedrock, knight-errantry is WORSE than pork; for whatever happens, the pork's
left, and so somebody's benefited anyway; but when the market breaks, in a knight-errantry
whirl, and every knight in the pool passes in his checks, what have you got for
assets? Just a rubbish-pile of battered corpses and a barrel or two of busted
hardware. Can you call THOSE assets? Give me pork, every time. Am I right?”
“Ah, peradventure
my head being distraught by the manifold matters whereunto the confusions of
these but late adventured haps and fortunings whereby not I alone nor you
alone, but every each of us, meseemeth—”
“No, it's not
your head, Sandy. Your head's all right, as far as it goes, but you don't know
business; that's where the trouble is. It unfits you to argue about business,
and you're wrong to be always trying. However, that aside, it was a good haul,
anyway, and will breed a handsome crop of reputation in Arthur's court. And
speaking of the cowboys, what a curious country this is for women and men that
never get old. Now there's Morgan le Fay, as fresh and young as a Vassar
pullet, to all appearances, and here is this old duke of the South Marches
still slashing away with sword and lance at his time of life, after raising
such a family as he has raised. As I understand it, Sir Gawaine killed seven of
his sons, and still he had six left for Sir Marhaus and me to take into camp.
And then there was that damsel of sixty winter of age still excursioning around
in her frosty bloom—How old are you, Sandy?”
It was the first
time I ever struck a still place in her. The mill had shut down for repairs, or
something.
Chapter XX.
THE OGRE'S CASTLE
BETWEEN six and
nine we made ten miles, which was plenty for a horse carrying triple—man,
woman, and armor; then we stopped for a long nooning under some trees by a
limpid brook.
Right so came by
and by a knight riding; and as he drew near he made dolorous moan, and by the
words of it I perceived that he was cursing and swearing; yet nevertheless was
I glad of his coming, for that I saw he bore a bulletin-board whereon in
letters all of shining gold was writ:
“USE PETERSON S
PROPHYLACTIC TOOTH-BRUSH—ALL THE GO.”
I was glad of his
coming, for even by this token I knew him for knight of mine. It was Sir Madok
de la Montaine, a burly great fellow whose chief distinction was that he had
come within an ace of sending Sir Launcelot down over his horse-tail once. He
was never long in a stranger's presence without finding some pretext or other
to let out that great fact. But there was another fact of nearly the same size,
which he never pushed upon anybody unasked, and yet never withheld when asked:
that was, that the reason he didn't quite succeed was, that he was interrupted
and sent down over horse-tail himself. This innocent vast lubber did not see
any particular difference between the two facts. I liked him, for he was
earnest in his work, and very valuable. And he was so fine to look at, with his
broad mailed shoulders, and the grand leonine set of his plumed head, and his
big shield with its quaint device of a gauntleted hand clutching a prophylactic
tooth-brush, with motto: “Try Noyoudont.” This was a tooth-wash that I was
introducing.
He was aweary, he
said, and indeed he looked it; but he would not alight. He said he was after
the stove-polish man; and with this he broke out cursing and swearing anew. The
bulletin-boarder referred to was Sir Ossaise of Surluse, a brave knight, and of
considerable celebrity on account of his having tried conclusions in a
tournament once, with no less a Mogul that Sir Gaheris himself—although not
successfully. He was of a light and laughing disposition, and to him nothing in
this world was serious. It was for this reason that I had chosen him to work up
a stove-polish sentiment. There were no stoves yet, and so there could be
nothing serious about stove-polish. All that the agent needed to do was to
deftly and by degrees prepare the public for the great change, and have them
established in predilections toward neatness against the time when the stove
should appear upon the stage.
Sir Madok was
very bitter, and brake out anew with cursings. He said he had cursed his soul
to rags; and yet he would not get down from his horse, neither would he take
any rest, or listen to any comfort, until he should have found Sir Ossaise and
settled this account. It appeared, by what I could piece together of the
unprofane fragments of his statement, that he had chanced upon Sir Ossaise at
dawn of the morning, and been told that if he would make a short cut across the
fields and swamps and broken hills and glades, he could head off a company of
travelers who would be rare customers for prophylactics and tooth-wash. With
characteristic zeal Sir Madok had plunged away at once upon this quest, and
after three hours of awful crosslot riding had overhauled his game. And behold,
it was the five patriarchs that had been released from the dungeons the evening
before! Poor old creatures, it was all of twenty years since any one of them
had known what it was to be equipped with any remaining snag or remnant of a
tooth.
“Blank-blank-blank
him,” said Sir Madok, “an I do not stove-polish him an I may find him, leave it
to me; for never no knight that hight Ossaise or aught else may do me this
disservice and bide on live, an I may find him, the which I have thereunto
sworn a great oath this day.”
And with these
words and others, he lightly took his spear and gat him thence. In the middle
of the afternoon we came upon one of those very patriarchs ourselves, in the
edge of a poor village. He was basking in the love of relatives and friends
whom he had not seen for fifty years; and about him and caressing him were also
descendants of his own body whom he had never seen at all till now; but to him
these were all strangers, his memory was gone, his mind was stagnant. It seemed
incredible that a man could outlast half a century shut up in a dark hole like
a rat, but here were his old wife and some old comrades to testify to it. They
could remember him as he was in the freshness and strength of his young
manhood, when he kissed his child and delivered it to its mother's hands and
went away into that long oblivion. The people at the castle could not tell within
half a generation the length of time the man had been shut up there for his
unrecorded and forgotten offense; but this old wife knew; and so did her old
child, who stood there among her married sons and daughters trying to realize a
father who had been to her a name, a thought, a formless image, a tradition,
all her life, and now was suddenly concreted into actual flesh and blood and
set before her face.
It was a curious
situation; yet it is not on that account that I have made room for it here, but
on account of a thing which seemed to me still more curious. To wit, that this
dreadful matter brought from these downtrodden people no outburst of rage
against these oppressors. They had been heritors and subjects of cruelty and
outrage so long that nothing could have startled them but a kindness. Yes, here
was a curious revelation, indeed, of the depth to which this people had been
sunk in slavery. Their entire being was reduced to a monotonous dead level of
patience, resignation, dumb uncomplaining acceptance of whatever might befall
them in this life. Their very imagination was dead. When you can say that of a
man, he has struck bottom, I reckon; there is no lower deep for him.
I rather wished I
had gone some other road. This was not the sort of experience for a statesman
to encounter who was planning out a peaceful revolution in his mind. For it
could not help bringing up the unget-aroundable fact that, all gentle cant and
philosophizing to the contrary notwithstanding, no people in the world ever did
achieve their freedom by goodygoody talk and moral suasion: it being immutable
law that all revolutions that will succeed must BEGIN in blood, whatever may
answer afterward. If history teaches anything, it teaches that. What this folk
needed, then, was a Reign of Terror and a guillotine, and I was the wrong man
for them.
Two days later,
toward noon, Sandy began to show signs of excitement and feverish expectancy.
She said we were approaching the ogre's castle. I was surprised into an
uncomfortable shock. The object of our quest had gradually dropped out of my
mind; this sudden resurrection of it made it seem quite a real and startling
thing for a moment, and roused up in me a smart interest. Sandy's excitement
increased every moment; and so did mine, for that sort of thing is catching. My
heart got to thumping. You can't reason with your heart; it has its own laws,
and thumps about things which the intellect scorns. Presently, when Sandy slid
from the horse, motioned me to stop, and went creeping stealthily, with her
head bent nearly to her knees, toward a row of bushes that bordered a
declivity, the thumpings grew stronger and quicker. And they kept it up while
she was gaining her ambush and getting her glimpse over the declivity; and also
while I was creeping to her side on my knees. Her eyes were burning now, as she
pointed with her finger, and said in a panting whisper:
“The castle! The
castle! Lo, where it looms!”
What a welcome
disappointment I experienced! I said:
“Castle? It is
nothing but a pigsty; a pigsty with a wattled fence around it.”
She looked
surprised and distressed. The animation faded out of her face; and during many
moments she was lost in thought and silent. Then:
“It was not
enchanted aforetime,” she said in a musing fashion, as if to herself. “And how
strange is this marvel, and how awful—that to the one perception it is
enchanted and dight in a base and shameful aspect; yet to the perception of the
other it is not enchanted, hath suffered no change, but stands firm and stately
still, girt with its moat and waving its banners in the blue air from its
towers. And God shield us, how it pricks the heart to see again these gracious
captives, and the sorrow deepened in their sweet faces! We have tarried along,
and are to blame.”
I saw my cue. The
castle was enchanted to ME, not to her. It would be wasted time to try to argue
her out of her delusion, it couldn't be done; I must just humor it. So I said:
“This is a common
case—the enchanting of a thing to one eye and leaving it in its proper form to
another. You have heard of it before, Sandy, though you haven't happened to
experience it. But no harm is done. In fact, it is lucky the way it is. If
these ladies were hogs to everybody and to themselves, it would be necessary to
break the enchantment, and that might be impossible if one failed to find out
the particular process of the enchantment. And hazardous, too; for in
attempting a disenchantment without the true key, you are liable to err, and
turn your hogs into dogs, and the dogs into cats, the cats into rats, and so
on, and end by reducing your materials to nothing finally, or to an odorless
gas which you can't follow—which, of course, amounts to the same thing. But here,
by good luck, no one's eyes but mine are under the enchantment, and so it is of
no consequence to dissolve it. These ladies remain ladies to you, and to
themselves, and to everybody else; and at the same time they will suffer in no
way from my delusion, for when I know that an ostensible hog is a lady, that is
enough for me, I know how to treat her.”
“Thanks, oh,
sweet my lord, thou talkest like an angel. And I know that thou wilt deliver
them, for that thou art minded to great deeds and art as strong a knight of
your hands and as brave to will and to do, as any that is on live.”
“I will not leave
a princess in the sty, Sandy. Are those three yonder that to my disordered eyes
are starveling swine-herds—”
“The ogres, Are
THEY changed also? It is most wonderful. Now am I fearful; for how canst thou
strike with sure aim when five of their nine cubits of stature are to thee
invisible? Ah, go warily, fair sir; this is a mightier emprise than I wend.”
“You be easy,
Sandy. All I need to know is, how MUCH of an ogre is invisible; then I know how
to locate his vitals. Don't you be afraid, I will make short work of these
bunco-steerers. Stay where you are.”
I left Sandy
kneeling there, corpse-faced but plucky and hopeful, and rode down to the
pigsty, and struck up a trade with the swine-herds. I won their gratitude by
buying out all the hogs at the lump sum of sixteen pennies, which was rather
above latest quotations. I was just in time; for the Church, the lord of the
manor, and the rest of the tax-gatherers would have been along next day and
swept off pretty much all the stock, leaving the swine-herds very short of hogs
and Sandy out of princesses. But now the tax people could be paid in cash, and
there would be a stake left besides. One of the men had ten children; and he
said that last year when a priest came and of his ten pigs took the fattest one
for tithes, the wife burst out upon him, and offered him a child and said:
“Thou beast
without bowels of mercy, why leave me my child, yet rob me of the wherewithal
to feed it?”
How curious. The
same thing had happened in the Wales of my day, under this same old Established
Church, which was supposed by many to have changed its nature when it changed
its disguise.
I sent the three
men away, and then opened the sty gate and beckoned Sandy to come—which she
did; and not leisurely, but with the rush of a prairie fire. And when I saw her
fling herself upon those hogs, with tears of joy running down her cheeks, and
strain them to her heart, and kiss them, and caress them, and call them
reverently by grand princely names, I was ashamed of her, ashamed of the human
race.
We had to drive
those hogs home—ten miles; and no ladies were ever more fickle-minded or
contrary. They would stay in no road, no path; they broke out through the brush
on all sides, and flowed away in all directions, over rocks, and hills, and the
roughest places they could find. And they must not be struck, or roughly
accosted; Sandy could not bear to see them treated in ways unbecoming their
rank. The troublesomest old sow of the lot had to be called my Lady, and your
Highness, like the rest. It is annoying and difficult to scour around after
hogs, in armor. There was one small countess, with an iron ring in her snout
and hardly any hair on her back, that was the devil for perversity. She gave me
a race of an hour, over all sorts of country, and then we were right where we
had started from, having made not a rod of real progress. I seized her at last
by the tail, and brought her along squealing. When I overtook Sandy she was
horrified, and said it was in the last degree indelicate to drag a countess by
her train.
We got the hogs
home just at dark—most of them. The princess Nerovens de Morganore was missing,
and two of her ladies in waiting: namely, Miss Angela Bohun, and the Demoiselle
Elaine Courtemains, the former of these two being a young black sow with a
white star in her forehead, and the latter a brown one with thin legs and a
slight limp in the forward shank on the starboard side—a couple of the
tryingest blisters to drive that I ever saw. Also among the missing were
several mere baronesses—and I wanted them to stay missing; but no, all that
sausage-meat had to be found; so servants were sent out with torches to scour
the woods and hills to that end.
Of course, the
whole drove was housed in the house, and, great guns!—well, I never saw
anything like it. Nor ever heard anything like it. And never smelt anything
like it. It was like an insurrection in a gasometer.
Chapter XXI.
THE PILGRIMS
WHEN I did get to
bed at last I was unspeakably tired; the stretching out, and the relaxing of
the long-tense muscles, how luxurious, how delicious! but that was as far as I
could get—sleep was out of the question for the present. The ripping and
tearing and squealing of the nobility up and down the halls and corridors was
pandemonium come again, and kept me broad awake. Being awake, my thoughts were
busy, of course; and mainly they busied themselves with Sandy's curious
delusion. Here she was, as sane a person as the kingdom could produce; and yet,
from my point of view she was acting like a crazy woman. My land, the power of
training! of influence! of education! It can bring a body up to believe
anything. I had to put myself in Sandy's place to realize that she was not a lunatic.
Yes, and put her in mine, to demonstrate how easy it is to seem a lunatic to a
person who has not been taught as you have been taught. If I had told Sandy I
had seen a wagon, uninfluenced by enchantment, spin along fifty miles an hour;
had seen a man, unequipped with magic powers, get into a basket and soar out of
sight among the clouds; and had listened, without any necromancer's help, to
the conversation of a person who was several hundred miles away, Sandy would
not merely have supposed me to be crazy, she would have thought she knew it.
Everybody around her believed in enchantments; nobody had any doubts; to doubt
that a castle could be turned into a sty, and its occupants into hogs, would
have been the same as my doubting among Connecticut people the actuality of the
telephone and its wonders,—and in both cases would be absolute proof of a
diseased mind, an unsettled reason. Yes, Sandy was sane; that must be admitted.
If I also would be sane—to Sandy—I must keep my superstitions about unenchanted
and unmiraculous locomotives, balloons, and telephones, to myself. Also, I
believed that the world was not flat, and hadn't pillars under it to support
it, nor a canopy over it to turn off a universe of water that occupied all
space above; but as I was the only person in the kingdom afflicted with such
impious and criminal opinions, I recognized that it would be good wisdom to
keep quiet about this matter, too, if I did not wish to be suddenly shunned and
forsaken by everybody as a madman.
The next morning
Sandy assembled the swine in the dining-room and gave them their breakfast,
waiting upon them personally and manifesting in every way the deep reverence
which the natives of her island, ancient and modern, have always felt for rank,
let its outward casket and the mental and moral contents be what they may. I
could have eaten with the hogs if I had had birth approaching my lofty official
rank; but I hadn't, and so accepted the unavoidable slight and made no
complaint. Sandy and I had our breakfast at the second table. The family were
not at home. I said:
“How many are in
the family, Sandy, and where do they keep themselves?”
“Family?”
“Yes.”
“Which family,
good my lord?”
“Why, this
family; your own family.”
“Sooth to say, I
understand you not. I have no family.”
“No family? Why,
Sandy, isn't this your home?”
“Now how indeed
might that be? I have no home.”
“Well, then,
whose house is this?”
“Ah, wit you well
I would tell you an I knew myself.”
“Come—you don't
even know these people? Then who invited us here?”
“None invited us.
We but came; that is all.”
“Why, woman, this
is a most extraordinary performance. The effrontery of it is beyond admiration.
We blandly march into a man's house, and cram it full of the only really
valuable nobility the sun has yet discovered in the earth, and then it turns
out that we don't even know the man's name. How did you ever venture to take
this extravagant liberty? I supposed, of course, it was your home. What will
the man say?”
“What will he
say? Forsooth what can he say but give thanks?”
“Thanks for
what?”
Her face was
filled with a puzzled surprise:
“Verily, thou
troublest mine understanding with strange words. Do ye dream that one of his
estate is like to have the honor twice in his life to entertain company such as
we have brought to grace his house withal?”
“Well, no—when
you come to that. No, it's an even bet that this is the first time he has had a
treat like this.”
“Then let him be
thankful, and manifest the same by grateful speech and due humility; he were a
dog, else, and the heir and ancestor of dogs.”
To my mind, the
situation was uncomfortable. It might become more so. It might be a good idea
to muster the hogs and move on. So I said:
“The day is
wasting, Sandy. It is time to get the nobility together and be moving.”
“Wherefore, fair
sir and Boss?”
“We want to take
them to their home, don't we?”
“La, but list to
him! They be of all the regions of the earth! Each must hie to her own home;
wend you we might do all these journeys in one so brief life as He hath
appointed that created life, and thereto death likewise with help of Adam, who
by sin done through persuasion of his helpmeet, she being wrought upon and
bewrayed by the beguilements of the great enemy of man, that serpent hight
Satan, aforetime consecrated and set apart unto that evil work by overmastering
spite and envy begotten in his heart through fell ambitions that did blight and
mildew a nature erst so white and pure whenso it hove with the shining
multitudes its brethren-born in glade and shade of that fair heaven wherein all
such as native be to that rich estate and—”
“Great Scott!”
“My lord?”
“Well, you know
we haven't got time for this sort of thing. Don't you see, we could distribute
these people around the earth in less time than it is going to take you to
explain that we can't. We mustn't talk now, we must act. You want to be
careful; you mustn't let your mill get the start of you that way, at a time
like this. To business now—and sharp's the word. Who is to take the aristocracy
home?”
“Even their
friends. These will come for them from the far parts of the earth.”
This was
lightning from a clear sky, for unexpectedness; and the relief of it was like
pardon to a prisoner. She would remain to deliver the goods, of course.
“Well, then,
Sandy, as our enterprise is handsomely and successfully ended, I will go home
and report; and if ever another one—”
“I also am ready;
I will go with thee.”
This was
recalling the pardon.
“How? You will go
with me? Why should you?”
“Will I be
traitor to my knight, dost think? That were dishonor. I may not part from thee
until in knightly encounter in the field some overmatching champion shall
fairly win and fairly wear me. I were to blame an I thought that that might
ever hap.”
“Elected for the
long term,” I sighed to myself. “I may as well make the best of it.” So then I
spoke up and said:
“All right; let
us make a start.”
While she was
gone to cry her farewells over the pork, I gave that whole peerage away to the
servants. And I asked them to take a duster and dust around a little where the
nobilities had mainly lodged and promenaded; but they considered that that
would be hardly worth while, and would moreover be a rather grave departure
from custom, and therefore likely to make talk. A departure from custom—that
settled it; it was a nation capable of committing any crime but that. The
servants said they would follow the fashion, a fashion grown sacred through
immemorial observance; they would scatter fresh rushes in all the rooms and
halls, and then the evidence of the aristocratic visitation would be no longer
visible. It was a kind of satire on Nature: it was the scientific method, the
geologic method; it deposited the history of the family in a stratified record;
and the antiquary could dig through it and tell by the remains of each period
what changes of diet the family had introduced successively for a hundred
years.
The first thing
we struck that day was a procession of pilgrims. It was not going our way, but
we joined it, nevertheless; for it was hourly being borne in upon me now, that
if I would govern this country wisely, I must be posted in the details of its
life, and not at second hand, but by personal observation and scrutiny.
This company of
pilgrims resembled Chaucer's in this: that it had in it a sample of about all
the upper occupations and professions the country could show, and a
corresponding variety of costume. There were young men and old men, young women
and old women, lively folk and grave folk. They rode upon mules and horses, and
there was not a side-saddle in the party; for this specialty was to remain
unknown in England for nine hundred years yet.
It was a
pleasant, friendly, sociable herd; pious, happy, merry and full of unconscious
coarsenesses and innocent indecencies. What they regarded as the merry tale
went the continual round and caused no more embarrassment than it would have
caused in the best English society twelve centuries later. Practical jokes
worthy of the English wits of the first quarter of the far-off nineteenth
century were sprung here and there and yonder along the line, and compelled the
delightedest applause; and sometimes when a bright remark was made at one end
of the procession and started on its travels toward the other, you could note
its progress all the way by the sparkling spray of laughter it threw off from
its bows as it plowed along; and also by the blushes of the mules in its wake.
Sandy knew the
goal and purpose of this pilgrimage, and she posted me. She said:
“They journey to
the Valley of Holiness, for to be blessed of the godly hermits and drink of the
miraculous waters and be cleased from sin.”
“Where is this
watering place?”
“It lieth a
two-day journey hence, by the borders of the land that hight the Cuckoo
Kingdom.”
“Tell me about
it. Is it a celebrated place?”
“Oh, of a truth,
yes. There be none more so. Of old time there lived there an abbot and his
monks. Belike were none in the world more holy than these; for they gave
themselves to study of pious books, and spoke not the one to the other, or
indeed to any, and ate decayed herbs and naught thereto, and slept hard, and
prayed much, and washed never; also they wore the same garment until it fell
from their bodies through age and decay. Right so came they to be known of all
the world by reason of these holy austerities, and visited by rich and poor,
and reverenced.”
“Proceed.”
“But always there
was lack of water there. Whereas, upon a time, the holy abbot prayed, and for
answer a great stream of clear water burst forth by miracle in a desert place.
Now were the fickle monks tempted of the Fiend, and they wrought with their
abbot unceasingly by beggings and beseechings that he would construct a bath;
and when he was become aweary and might not resist more, he said have ye your
will, then, and granted that they asked. Now mark thou what 'tis to forsake the
ways of purity the which He loveth, and wanton with such as be worldly and an
offense. These monks did enter into the bath and come thence washed as white as
snow; and lo, in that moment His sign appeared, in miraculous rebuke! for His
insulted waters ceased to flow, and utterly vanished away.”
“They fared
mildly, Sandy, considering how that kind of crime is regarded in this country.”
“Belike; but it
was their first sin; and they had been of perfect life for long, and differing
in naught from the angels. Prayers, tears, torturings of the flesh, all was
vain to beguile that water to flow again. Even processions; even
burnt-offerings; even votive candles to the Virgin, did fail every each of
them; and all in the land did marvel.”
“How odd to find
that even this industry has its financial panics, and at times sees its assignats
and greenbacks languish to zero, and everything come to a standstill. Go on,
Sandy.”
“And so upon a
time, after year and day, the good abbot made humble surrender and destroyed
the bath. And behold, His anger was in that moment appeased, and the waters
gushed richly forth again, and even unto this day they have not ceased to flow
in that generous measure.”
“Then I take it
nobody has washed since.”
“He that would
essay it could have his halter free; yes, and swiftly would he need it, too.”
“The community
has prospered since?”
“Even from that
very day. The fame of the miracle went abroad into all lands. From every land
came monks to join; they came even as the fishes come, in shoals; and the
monastery added building to building, and yet others to these, and so spread
wide its arms and took them in. And nuns came, also; and more again, and yet
more; and built over against the monastery on the yon side of the vale, and
added building to building, until mighty was that nunnery. And these were
friendly unto those, and they joined their loving labors together, and together
they built a fair great foundling asylum midway of the valley between.”
“You spoke of
some hermits, Sandy.”
“These have
gathered there from the ends of the earth. A hermit thriveth best where there
be multitudes of pilgrims. Ye shall not find no hermit of no sort wanting. If
any shall mention a hermit of a kind he thinketh new and not to be found but in
some far strange land, let him but scratch among the holes and caves and swamps
that line that Valley of Holiness, and whatsoever be his breed, it skills not,
he shall find a sample of it there.”
I closed up
alongside of a burly fellow with a fat good-humored face, purposing to make
myself agreeable and pick up some further crumbs of fact; but I had hardly more
than scraped acquaintance with him when he began eagerly and awkwardly to lead
up, in the immemorial way, to that same old anecdote—the one Sir Dinadan told
me, what time I got into trouble with Sir Sagramor and was challenged of him on
account of it. I excused myself and dropped to the rear of the procession, sad
at heart, willing to go hence from this troubled life, this vale of tears, this
brief day of broken rest, of cloud and storm, of weary struggle and monotonous
defeat; and yet shrinking from the change, as remembering how long eternity is,
and how many have wended thither who know that anecdote.
Early in the
afternoon we overtook another procession of pilgrims; but in this one was no
merriment, no jokes, no laughter, no playful ways, nor any happy giddiness,
whether of youth or age. Yet both were here, both age and youth; gray old men
and women, strong men and women of middle age, young husbands, young wives,
little boys and girls, and three babies at the breast. Even the children were
smileless; there was not a face among all these half a hundred people but was
cast down, and bore that set expression of hopelessness which is bred of long
and hard trials and old acquaintance with despair. They were slaves. Chains led
from their fettered feet and their manacled hands to a sole-leather belt about
their waists; and all except the children were also linked together in a file
six feet apart, by a single chain which led from collar to collar all down the
line. They were on foot, and had tramped three hundred miles in eighteen days,
upon the cheapest odds and ends of food, and stingy rations of that. They had
slept in these chains every night, bundled together like swine. They had upon
their bodies some poor rags, but they could not be said to be clothed. Their
irons had chafed the skin from their ankles and made sores which were ulcerated
and wormy. Their naked feet were torn, and none walked without a limp.
Originally there had been a hundred of these unfortunates, but about half had
been sold on the trip. The trader in charge of them rode a horse and carried a
whip with a short handle and a long heavy lash divided into several knotted
tails at the end. With this whip he cut the shoulders of any that tottered from
weariness and pain, and straightened them up. He did not speak; the whip
conveyed his desire without that. None of these poor creatures looked up as we
rode along by; they showed no consciousness of our presence. And they made no
sound but one; that was the dull and awful clank of their chains from end to
end of the long file, as forty-three burdened feet rose and fell in unison. The
file moved in a cloud of its own making.
All these faces
were gray with a coating of dust. One has seen the like of this coating upon
furniture in unoccupied houses, and has written his idle thought in it with his
finger. I was reminded of this when I noticed the faces of some of those women,
young mothers carrying babes that were near to death and freedom, how a
something in their hearts was written in the dust upon their faces, plain to
see, and lord, how plain to read! for it was the track of tears. One of these
young mothers was but a girl, and it hurt me to the heart to read that writing,
and reflect that it was come up out of the breast of such a child, a breast
that ought not to know trouble yet, but only the gladness of the morning of
life; and no doubt—
She reeled just
then, giddy with fatigue, and down came the lash and flicked a flake of skin
from her naked shoulder. It stung me as if I had been hit instead. The master
halted the file and jumped from his horse. He stormed and swore at this girl,
and said she had made annoyance enough with her laziness, and as this was the
last chance he should have, he would settle the account now. She dropped on her
knees and put up her hands and began to beg, and cry, and implore, in a passion
of terror, but the master gave no attention. He snatched the child from her,
and then made the men-slaves who were chained before and behind her throw her
on the ground and hold her there and expose her body; and then he laid on with
his lash like a madman till her back was flayed, she shrieking and struggling
the while piteously. One of the men who was holding her turned away his face,
and for this humanity he was reviled and flogged.
All our pilgrims
looked on and commented—on the expert way in which the whip was handled. They
were too much hardened by lifelong everyday familiarity with slavery to notice
that there was anything else in the exhibition that invited comment. This was
what slavery could do, in the way of ossifying what one may call the superior
lobe of human feeling; for these pilgrims were kind-hearted people, and they
would not have allowed that man to treat a horse like that.
I wanted to stop
the whole thing and set the slaves free, but that would not do. I must not
interfere too much and get myself a name for riding over the country's laws and
the citizen's rights roughshod. If I lived and prospered I would be the death
of slavery, that I was resolved upon; but I would try to fix it so that when I
became its executioner it should be by command of the nation.
Just here was the
wayside shop of a smith; and now arrived a landed proprietor who had bought
this girl a few miles back, deliverable here where her irons could be taken
off. They were removed; then there was a squabble between the gentleman and the
dealer as to which should pay the blacksmith. The moment the girl was delivered
from her irons, she flung herself, all tears and frantic sobbings, into the arms
of the slave who had turned away his face when she was whipped. He strained her
to his breast, and smothered her face and the child's with kisses, and washed
them with the rain of his tears. I suspected. I inquired. Yes, I was right; it
was husband and wife. They had to be torn apart by force; the girl had to be
dragged away, and she struggled and fought and shrieked like one gone mad till
a turn of the road hid her from sight; and even after that, we could still make
out the fading plaint of those receding shrieks. And the husband and father,
with his wife and child gone, never to be seen by him again in life?—well, the
look of him one might not bear at all, and so I turned away; but I knew I
should never get his picture out of my mind again, and there it is to this day,
to wring my heartstrings whenever I think of it.
We put up at the
inn in a village just at nightfall, and when I rose next morning and looked
abroad, I was ware where a knight came riding in the golden glory of the new
day, and recognized him for knight of mine—Sir Ozana le Cure Hardy. He was in
the gentlemen's furnishing line, and his missionarying specialty was plug hats.
He was clothed all in steel, in the beautifulest armor of the time—up to where
his helmet ought to have been; but he hadn't any helmet, he wore a shiny
stove-pipe hat, and was ridiculous a spectacle as one might want to see. It was
another of my surreptitious schemes for extinguishing knighthood by making it
grotesque and absurd. Sir Ozana's saddle was hung about with leather hat boxes,
and every time he overcame a wandering knight he swore him into my service and
fitted him with a plug and made him wear it. I dressed and ran down to welcome
Sir Ozana and get his news.
“How is trade?” I
asked.
“Ye will note
that I have but these four left; yet were they sixteen whenas I got me from
Camelot.”
“Why, you have
certainly done nobly, Sir Ozana. Where have you been foraging of late?”
“I am but now
come from the Valley of Holiness, please you sir.”
“I am pointed for
that place myself. Is there anything stirring in the monkery, more than
common?”
“By the mass ye
may not question it!.. Give him good feed, boy, and stint it not, an thou
valuest thy crown; so get ye lightly to the stable and do even as I bid... Sir,
it is parlous news I bring, and—be these pilgrims? Then ye may not do better,
good folk, than gather and hear the tale I have to tell, sith it concerneth
you, forasmuch as ye go to find that ye will not find, and seek that ye will
seek in vain, my life being hostage for my word, and my word and message being
these, namely: That a hap has happened whereof the like has not been seen no
more but once this two hundred years, which was the first and last time that
that said misfortune strake the holy valley in that form by commandment of the
Most High whereto by reasons just and causes thereunto contributing, wherein
the matter—”
“The miraculous
fount hath ceased to flow!” This shout burst from twenty pilgrim mouths at
once.
“Ye say well,
good people. I was verging to it, even when ye spake. “
“Has somebody
been washing again?”
“Nay, it is
suspected, but none believe it. It is thought to be some other sin, but none
wit what.”
“How are they
feeling about the calamity?”
“None may
describe it in words. The fount is these nine days dry. The prayers that did
begin then, and the lamentations in sackcloth and ashes, and the holy
processions, none of these have ceased nor night nor day; and so the monks and
the nuns and the foundlings be all exhausted, and do hang up prayers writ upon
parchment, sith that no strength is left in man to lift up voice. And at last
they sent for thee, Sir Boss, to try magic and enchantment; and if you could
not come, then was the messenger to fetch Merlin, and he is there these three days
now, and saith he will fetch that water though he burst the globe and wreck its
kingdoms to accomplish it; and right bravely doth he work his magic and call
upon his hellions to hie them hither and help, but not a whiff of moisture hath
he started yet, even so much as might qualify as mist upon a copper mirror an
ye count not the barrel of sweat he sweateth betwixt sun and sun over the dire
labors of his task; and if ye—”
Breakfast was
ready. As soon as it was over I showed to Sir Ozana these words which I had
written on the inside of his hat: Chemical Department, Laboratory extension,
Section G. Pxxp. Send two of first size, two of No. 3, and six of No. 4,
together with the proper complementary details—and two of my trained
assistants.” And I said:
“Now get you to
Camelot as fast as you can fly, brave knight, and show the writing to Clarence,
and tell him to have these required matters in the Valley of Holiness with all
possible dispatch.”
“I will well, Sir
Boss,” and he was off.
Chapter XXII.
THE HOLY FOUNTAIN
THE pilgrims were
human beings. Otherwise they would have acted differently. They had come a long
and difficult journey, and now when the journey was nearly finished, and they
learned that the main thing they had come for had ceased to exist, they didn't
do as horses or cats or angle-worms would probably have done—turn back and get
at something profitable—no, anxious as they had before been to see the
miraculous fountain, they were as much as forty times as anxious now to see the
place where it had used to be. There is no accounting for human beings.
We made good
time; and a couple of hours before sunset we stood upon the high confines of
the Valley of Holiness, and our eyes swept it from end to end and noted its
features. That is, its large features. These were the three masses of
buildings. They were distant and isolated temporalities shrunken to toy
constructions in the lonely waste of what seemed a desert—and was. Such a scene
is always mournful, it is so impressively still, and looks so steeped in death.
But there was a sound here which interrupted the stillness only to add to its
mournfulness; this was the faint far sound of tolling bells which floated
fitfully to us on the passing breeze, and so faintly, so softly, that we hardly
knew whether we heard it with our ears or with our spirits.
We reached the
monastery before dark, and there the males were given lodging, but the women
were sent over to the nunnery. The bells were close at hand now, and their
solemn booming smote upon the ear like a message of doom. A superstitious
despair possessed the heart of every monk and published itself in his ghastly
face. Everywhere, these black-robed, soft-sandaled, tallow-visaged specters
appeared, flitted about and disappeared, noiseless as the creatures of a
troubled dream, and as uncanny.
The old abbot's
joy to see me was pathetic. Even to tears; but he did the shedding himself. He
said:
“Delay not, son,
but get to thy saving work. An we bring not the water back again, and soon, we
are ruined, and the good work of two hundred years must end. And see thou do it
with enchantments that be holy, for the Church will not endure that work in her
cause be done by devil's magic.”
“When I work,
Father, be sure there will be no devil's work connected with it. I shall use no
arts that come of the devil, and no elements not created by the hand of God.
But is Merlin working strictly on pious lines?”
“Ah, he said he
would, my son, he said he would, and took oath to make his promise good.”
“Well, in that
case, let him proceed.”
“But surely you
will not sit idle by, but help?”
“It will not
answer to mix methods, Father; neither would it be professional courtesy. Two
of a trade must not underbid each other. We might as well cut rates and be done
with it; it would arrive at that in the end. Merlin has the contract; no other
magician can touch it till he throws it up.”
“But I will take
it from him; it is a terrible emergency and the act is thereby justified. And
if it were not so, who will give law to the Church? The Church giveth law to
all; and what she wills to do, that she may do, hurt whom it may. I will take
it from him; you shall begin upon the moment.”
“It may not be,
Father. No doubt, as you say, where power is supreme, one can do as one likes
and suffer no injury; but we poor magicians are not so situated. Merlin is a
very good magician in a small way, and has quite a neat provincial reputation.
He is struggling along, doing the best he can, and it would not be etiquette
for me to take his job until he himself abandons it.”
The abbot's face
lighted.
“Ah, that is
simple. There are ways to persuade him to abandon it.”
“No-no, Father,
it skills not, as these people say. If he were persuaded against his will, he
would load that well with a malicious enchantment which would balk me until I
found out its secret. It might take a month. I could set up a little
enchantment of mine which I call the telephone, and he could not find out its
secret in a hundred years. Yes, you perceive, he might block me for a month.
Would you like to risk a month in a dry time like this?”
“A month! The mere
thought of it maketh me to shudder. Have it thy way, my son. But my heart is
heavy with this disappointment. Leave me, and let me wear my spirit with
weariness and waiting, even as I have done these ten long days, counterfeiting
thus the thing that is called rest, the prone body making outward sign of
repose where inwardly is none.”
Of course, it
would have been best, all round, for Merlin to waive etiquette and quit and
call it half a day, since he would never be able to start that water, for he
was a true magician of the time; which is to say, the big miracles, the ones
that gave him his reputation, always had the luck to be performed when nobody
but Merlin was present; he couldn't start this well with all this crowd around
to see; a crowd was as bad for a magician's miracle in that day as it was for a
spiritualist's miracle in mine; there was sure to be some skeptic on hand to
turn up the gas at the crucial moment and spoil everything. But I did not want
Merlin to retire from the job until I was ready to take hold of it effectively
myself; and I could not do that until I got my things from Camelot, and that
would take two or three days.
My presence gave
the monks hope, and cheered them up a good deal; insomuch that they ate a
square meal that night for the first time in ten days. As soon as their
stomachs had been properly reinforced with food, their spirits began to rise
fast; when the mead began to go round they rose faster. By the time everybody
was half-seas over, the holy community was in good shape to make a night of it;
so we stayed by the board and put it through on that line. Matters got to be
very jolly. Good old questionable stories were told that made the tears run
down and cavernous mouths stand wide and the round bellies shake with laughter;
and questionable songs were bellowed out in a mighty chorus that drowned the
boom of the tolling bells.
At last I
ventured a story myself; and vast was the success of it. Not right off, of
course, for the native of those islands does not, as a rule, dissolve upon the
early applications of a humorous thing; but the fifth time I told it, they
began to crack in places; the eight time I told it, they began to crumble; at
the twelfth repetition they fell apart in chunks; and at the fifteenth they
disintegrated, and I got a broom and swept them up. This language is
figurative. Those islanders—well, they are slow pay at first, in the matter of
return for your investment of effort, but in the end they make the pay of all
other nations poor and small by contrast.
I was at the well
next day betimes. Merlin was there, enchanting away like a beaver, but not
raising the moisture. He was not in a pleasant humor; and every time I hinted
that perhaps this contract was a shade too hefty for a novice he unlimbered his
tongue and cursed like a bishop—French bishop of the Regency days, I mean.
Matters were
about as I expected to find them. The “fountain” was an ordinary well, it had
been dug in the ordinary way, and stoned up in the ordinary way. There was no
miracle about it. Even the lie that had created its reputation was not
miraculous; I could have told it myself, with one hand tied behind me. The well
was in a dark chamber which stood in the center of a cut-stone chapel, whose
walls were hung with pious pictures of a workmanship that would have made a
chromo feel good; pictures historically commemorative of curative miracles
which had been achieved by the waters when nobody was looking. That is, nobody
but angels; they are always on deck when there is a miracle to the fore—so as
to get put in the picture, perhaps. Angels are as fond of that as a fire
company; look at the old masters.
The well-chamber
was dimly lighted by lamps; the water was drawn with a windlass and chain by
monks, and poured into troughs which delivered it into stone reservoirs outside
in the chapel—when there was water to draw, I mean—and none but monks could
enter the well-chamber. I entered it, for I had temporary authority to do so,
by courtesy of my professional brother and subordinate. But he hadn't entered
it himself. He did everything by incantations; he never worked his intellect.
If he had stepped in there and used his eyes, instead of his disordered mind,
he could have cured the well by natural means, and then turned it into a
miracle in the customary way; but no, he was an old numskull, a magician who
believed in his own magic; and no magician can thrive who is handicapped with a
superstition like that.
I had an idea
that the well had sprung a leak; that some of the wall stones near the bottom
had fallen and exposed fissures that allowed the water to escape. I measured
the chain—98 feet. Then I called in couple of monks, locked the door, took a
candle, and made them lower me in the bucket. When the chain was all paid out,
the candle confirmed my suspicion; a considerable section of the wall was gone,
exposing a good big fissure.
I almost
regretted that my theory about the well's trouble was correct, because I had
another one that had a showy point or two about it for a miracle. I remembered
that in America, many centuries later, when an oil well ceased to flow, they
used to blast it out with a dynamite torpedo. If I should find this well dry
and no explanation of it, I could astonish these people most nobly by having a
person of no especial value drop a dynamite bomb into it. It was my idea to
appoint Merlin. However, it was plain that there was no occasion for the bomb.
One cannot have everything the way he would like it. A man has no business to
be depressed by a disappointment, anyway; he ought to make up his mind to get
even. That is what I did. I said to myself, I am in no hurry, I can wait; that
bomb will come good yet. And it did, too.
When I was above
ground again, I turned out the monks, and let down a fish-line; the well was a
hundred and fifty feet deep, and there was forty-one feet of water in it I I
called in a monk and asked:
“How deep is the
well?”
“That, sir, I wit
not, having never been told.”
“How does the
water usually stand in it?”
“Near to the top,
these two centuries, as the testimony goeth, brought down to us through our
predecessors.”
It was true—as to
recent times at least—for there was witness to it, and better witness than a
monk; only about twenty or thirty feet of the chain showed wear and use, the
rest of it was unworn and rusty. What had happened when the well gave out that
other time? Without doubt some practical person had come along and mended the
leak, and then had come up and told the abbot he had discovered by divination
that if the sinful bath were destroyed the well would flow again. The leak had
befallen again now, and these children would have prayed, and processioned, and
tolled their bells for heavenly succor till they all dried up and blew away,
and no innocent of them all would ever have thought to drop a fish-line into
the well or go down in it and find out what was really the matter. Old habit of
mind is one of the toughest things to get away from in the world. It transmits
itself like physical form and feature; and for a man, in those days, to have
had an idea that his ancestors hadn't had, would have brought him under
suspicion of being illegitimate. I said to the monk:
“It is a
difficult miracle to restore water in a dry well, but we will try, if my
brother Merlin fails. Brother Merlin is a very passable artist, but only in the
parlor-magic line, and he may not succeed; in fact, is not likely to succeed.
But that should be nothing to his discredit; the man that can do THIS kind of
miracle knows enough to keep hotel.”
“Hotel? I mind
not to have heard—”
“Of hotel? It's
what you call hostel. The man that can do this miracle can keep hostel. I can
do this miracle; I shall do this miracle; yet I do not try to conceal from you
that it is a miracle to tax the occult powers to the last strain.”
“None knoweth
that truth better than the brotherhood, indeed; for it is of record that
aforetime it was parlous difficult and took a year. Natheless, God send you
good success, and to that end will we pray.”
As a matter of
business it was a good idea to get the notion around that the thing was
difficult. Many a small thing has been made large by the right kind of
advertising. That monk was filled up with the difficulty of this enterprise; he
would fill up the others. In two days the solicitude would be booming.
On my way home at
noon, I met Sandy. She had been sampling the hermits. I said:
“I would like to
do that myself. This is Wednesday. Is there a matinee?”
“A which, please
you, sir?”
“Matinee. Do they
keep open afternoons?”
“Who?”
“The hermits, of
course.”
“Keep open?”
“Yes, keep open.
Isn't that plain enough? Do they knock off at noon?”
“Knock off?”
“Knock off?—yes,
knock off. What is the matter with knock off? I never saw such a dunderhead;
can't you understand anything at all? In plain terms, do they shut up shop, draw
the game, bank the fires—”
“Shut up shop,
draw—”
“There, never
mind, let it go; you make me tired. You can't seem to understand the simplest
thing.”
I would I might
please thee, sir, and it is to me dole and sorrow that I fail, albeit sith I am
but a simple damsel and taught of none, being from the cradle unbaptized in
those deep waters of learning that do anoint with a sovereignty him that
partaketh of that most noble sacrament, investing him with reverend state to
the mental eye of the humble mortal who, by bar and lack of that great
consecration seeth in his own unlearned estate but a symbol of that other sort
of lack and loss which men do publish to the pitying eye with sackcloth
trappings whereon the ashes of grief do lie bepowdered and bestrewn, and so,
when such shall in the darkness of his mind encounter these golden phrases of
high mystery, these shut-up-shops, and draw-the-game, and bank-the-fires, it is
but by the grace of God that he burst not for envy of the mind that can beget,
and tongue that can deliver so great and mellow-sounding miracles of speech,
and if there do ensue confusion in that humbler mind, and failure to divine the
meanings of these wonders, then if so be this miscomprehension is not vain but
sooth and true, wit ye well it is the very substance of worshipful dear homage
and may not lightly be misprized, nor had been, an ye had noted this complexion
of mood and mind and understood that that I would I could not, and that I could
not I might not, nor yet nor might NOR could, nor might-not nor could-not,
might be by advantage turned to the desired WOULD, and so I pray you mercy of
my fault, and that ye will of your kindness and your charity forgive it, good
my master and most dear lord.”
I couldn't make
it all out—that is, the details—but I got the general idea; and enough of it,
too, to be ashamed. It was not fair to spring those nineteenth century
technicalities upon the untutored infant of the sixth and then rail at her
because she couldn't get their drift; and when she was making the honest best
drive at it she could, too, and no fault of hers that she couldn't fetch the
home plate; and so I apologized. Then we meandered pleasantly away toward the
hermit holes in sociable converse together, and better friends than ever.
I was gradually
coming to have a mysterious and shuddery reverence for this girl; nowadays
whenever she pulled out from the station and got her train fairly started on
one of those horizonless transcontinental sentences of hers, it was borne in
upon me that I was standing in the awful presence of the Mother of the German
Language. I was so impressed with this, that sometimes when she began to empty
one of these sentences on me I unconsciously took the very attitude of
reverence, and stood uncovered; and if words had been water, I had been
drowned, sure. She had exactly the German way; whatever was in her mind to be
delivered, whether a mere remark, or a sermon, or a cyclopedia, or the history
of a war, she would get it into a single sentence or die. Whenever the literary
German dives into a sentence, that is the last you are going to see of him till
he emerges on the other side of his Atlantic with his verb in his mouth.
We drifted from
hermit to hermit all the afternoon. It was a most strange menagerie. The chief
emulation among them seemed to be, to see which could manage to be the
uncleanest and most prosperous with vermin. Their manner and attitudes were the
last expression of complacent self-righteousness. It was one anchorite's pride
to lie naked in the mud and let the insects bite him and blister him
unmolested; it was another's to lean against a rock, all day long, conspicuous
to the admiration of the throng of pilgrims and pray; it was another's to go
naked and crawl around on all fours; it was another's to drag about with him,
year in and year out, eighty pounds of iron; it was another's to never lie down
when he slept, but to stand among the thorn-bushes and snore when there were
pilgrims around to look; a woman, who had the white hair of age, and no other
apparel, was black from crown to heel with forty-seven years of holy abstinence
from water. Groups of gazing pilgrims stood around all and every of these
strange objects, lost in reverent wonder, and envious of the fleckless sanctity
which these pious austerities had won for them from an exacting heaven.
By and by we went
to see one of the supremely great ones. He was a mighty celebrity; his fame had
penetrated all Christendom; the noble and the renowned journeyed from the
remotest lands on the globe to pay him reverence. His stand was in the center
of the widest part of the valley; and it took all that space to hold his
crowds.
His stand was a
pillar sixty feet high, with a broad platform on the top of it. He was now
doing what he had been doing every day for twenty years up there—bowing his
body ceaselessly and rapidly almost to his feet. It was his way of praying. I
timed him with a stop watch, and he made 1,244 revolutions in 24 minutes and 46
seconds. It seemed a pity to have all this power going to waste. It was one of
the most useful motions in mechanics, the pedal movement; so I made a note in
my memorandum book, purposing some day to apply a system of elastic cords to
him and run a sewing machine with it. I afterward carried out that scheme, and
got five years' good service out of him; in which time he turned out upward of
eighteen thousand first-rate tow-linen shirts, which was ten a day. I worked
him Sundays and all; he was going, Sundays, the same as week days, and it was
no use to waste the power. These shirts cost me nothing but just the mere
trifle for the materials—I furnished those myself, it would not have been right
to make him do that—and they sold like smoke to pilgrims at a dollar and a half
apiece, which was the price of fifty cows or a blooded race horse in Arthurdom.
They were regarded as a perfect protection against sin, and advertised as such
by my knights everywhere, with the paint-pot and stencil-plate; insomuch that
there was not a cliff or a bowlder or a dead wall in England but you could read
on it at a mile distance:
“Buy the only
genuine St. Stylite; patronized by the Nobility. Patent applied for.”
There was more
money in the business than one knew what to do with. As it extended, I brought
out a line of goods suitable for kings, and a nobby thing for duchesses and
that sort, with ruffles down the forehatch and the running-gear clewed up with
a featherstitch to leeward and then hauled aft with a back-stay and triced up
with a half-turn in the standing rigging forward of the weather-gaskets. Yes,
it was a daisy.
But about that
time I noticed that the motive power had taken to standing on one leg, and I
found that there was something the matter with the other one; so I stocked the
business and unloaded, taking Sir Bors de Ganis into camp financially along
with certain of his friends; for the works stopped within a year, and the good
saint got him to his rest. But he had earned it. I can say that for him.
When I saw him
that first time—however, his personal condition will not quite bear description
here. You can read it in the Lives of the Saints. *
[* All the
details concerning the hermits, in this chapter, are from Lecky—but greatly
modified. This book not being a history but only a tale, the majority of the
historian's frank details were too strong for reproduction in it.—EDITOR]
Chapter XXIII.
RESTORATION OF
THE FOUNTAIN
SATURDAY noon I
went to the well and looked on a while. Merlin was still burning smoke-powders,
and pawing the air, and muttering gibberish as hard as ever, but looking pretty
down-hearted, for of course he had not started even a perspiration in that well
yet. Finally I said:
“How does the
thing promise by this time, partner?”
“Behold, I am
even now busied with trial of the powerfulest enchantment known to the princes
of the occult arts in the lands of the East; an it fail me, naught can avail.
Peace, until I finish.”
He raised a smoke
this time that darkened all the region, and must have made matters
uncomfortable for the hermits, for the wind was their way, and it rolled down
over their dens in a dense and billowy fog. He poured out volumes of speech to
match, and contorted his body and sawed the air with his hands in a most
extraordinary way. At the end of twenty minutes he dropped down panting, and
about exhausted. Now arrived the abbot and several hundred monks and nuns, and
behind them a multitude of pilgrims and a couple of acres of foundlings, all
drawn by the prodigious smoke, and all in a grand state of excitement. The
abbot inquired anxiously for results. Merlin said:
“If any labor of
mortal might break the spell that binds these waters, this which I have but
just essayed had done it. It has failed; whereby I do now know that that which
I had feared is a truth established; the sign of this failure is, that the most
potent spirit known to the magicians of the East, and whose name none may utter
and live, has laid his spell upon this well. The mortal does not breathe, nor
ever will, who can penetrate the secret of that spell, and without that secret
none can break it. The water will flow no more forever, good Father. I have
done what man could. Suffer me to go.”
Of course this
threw the abbot into a good deal of a consternation. He turned to me with the
signs of it in his face, and said:
“Ye have heard
him. Is it true?”
“Part of it is.”
“Not all, then,
not all! What part is true?”
“That that spirit
with the Russian name has put his spell upon the well.”
“God's wownds,
then are we ruined!”
“Possibly.”
“But not
certainly? Ye mean, not certainly?”
“That is it.”
“Wherefore, ye also
mean that when he saith none can break the spell—”
“Yes, when he
says that, he says what isn't necessarily true. There are conditions under
which an effort to break it may have some chance—that is, some small, some
trifling chance—of success.”
“The conditions—”
“Oh, they are
nothing difficult. Only these: I want the well and the surroundings for the
space of half a mile, entirely to myself from sunset to-day until I remove the
ban—and nobody allowed to cross the ground but by my authority.”
“Are these all?”
“Yes.”
“And you have no
fear to try?”
“Oh, none. One
may fail, of course; and one may also succeed. One can try, and I am ready to
chance it. I have my conditions?”
“These and all
others ye may name. I will issue commandment to that effect.”
“Wait,” said
Merlin, with an evil smile. “Ye wit that he that would break this spell must
know that spirit's name?”
“Yes, I know his
name.”
“And wit you also
that to know it skills not of itself, but ye must likewise pronounce it? Ha-ha!
Knew ye that?”
“Yes, I knew
that, too.”
“You had that
knowledge! Art a fool? Are ye minded to utter that name and die?”
“Utter it? Why
certainly. I would utter it if it was Welsh.”
“Ye are even a
dead man, then; and I go to tell Arthur.”
“That's all
right. Take your gripsack and get along. The thing for YOU to do is to go home
and work the weather, John W. Merlin.”
It was a home
shot, and it made him wince; for he was the worst weather-failure in the
kingdom. Whenever he ordered up the danger-signals along the coast there was a
week's dead calm, sure, and every time he prophesied fair weather it rained
brickbats. But I kept him in the weather bureau right along, to undermine his
reputation. However, that shot raised his bile, and instead of starting home to
report my death, he said he would remain and enjoy it.
My two experts
arrived in the evening, and pretty well fagged, for they had traveled double
tides. They had pack-mules along, and had brought everything I needed—tools,
pump, lead pipe, Greek fire, sheaves of big rockets, roman candles, colored
fire sprays, electric apparatus, and a lot of sundries—everything necessary for
the stateliest kind of a miracle. They got their supper and a nap, and about
midnight we sallied out through a solitude so wholly vacant and complete that
it quite overpassed the required conditions. We took possession of the well and
its surroundings. My boys were experts in all sorts of things, from the stoning
up of a well to the constructing of a mathematical instrument. An hour before
sunrise we had that leak mended in ship-shape fashion, and the water began to
rise. Then we stowed our fireworks in the chapel, locked up the place, and went
home to bed.
Before the noon
mass was over, we were at the well again; for there was a deal to do yet, and I
was determined to spring the miracle before midnight, for business reasons: for
whereas a miracle worked for the Church on a week-day is worth a good deal, it
is worth six times as much if you get it in on a Sunday. In nine hours the
water had risen to its customary level—that is to say, it was within
twenty-three feet of the top. We put in a little iron pump, one of the first
turned out by my works near the capital; we bored into a stone reservoir which
stood against the outer wall of the well-chamber and inserted a section of lead
pipe that was long enough to reach to the door of the chapel and project beyond
the threshold, where the gushing water would be visible to the two hundred and
fifty acres of people I was intending should be present on the flat plain in
front of this little holy hillock at the proper time.
We knocked the
head out of an empty hogshead and hoisted this hogshead to the flat roof of the
chapel, where we clamped it down fast, poured in gunpowder till it lay loosely
an inch deep on the bottom, then we stood up rockets in the hogshead as thick
as they could loosely stand, all the different breeds of rockets there are; and
they made a portly and imposing sheaf, I can tell you. We grounded the wire of
a pocket electrical battery in that powder, we placed a whole magazine of Greek
fire on each corner of the roof—blue on one corner, green on another, red on
another, and purple on the last—and grounded a wire in each.
About two hundred
yards off, in the flat, we built a pen of scantlings, about four feet high, and
laid planks on it, and so made a platform. We covered it with swell tapestries
borrowed for the occasion, and topped it off with the abbot's own throne. When
you are going to do a miracle for an ignorant race, you want to get in every
detail that will count; you want to make all the properties impressive to the
public eye; you want to make matters comfortable for your head guest; then you
can turn yourself loose and play your effects for all they are worth. I know
the value of these things, for I know human nature. You can't throw too much
style into a miracle. It costs trouble, and work, and sometimes money; but it
pays in the end. Well, we brought the wires to the ground at the chapel, and
then brought them under the ground to the platform, and hid the batteries
there. We put a rope fence a hundred feet square around the platform to keep
off the common multitude, and that finished the work. My idea was, doors open
at 10:30, performance to begin at 11:25 sharp. I wished I could charge
admission, but of course that wouldn't answer. I instructed my boys to be in
the chapel as early as 10, before anybody was around, and be ready to man the
pumps at the proper time, and make the fur fly. Then we went home to supper.
The news of the
disaster to the well had traveled far by this time; and now for two or three
days a steady avalanche of people had been pouring into the valley. The lower
end of the valley was become one huge camp; we should have a good house, no
question about that. Criers went the rounds early in the evening and announced
the coming attempt, which put every pulse up to fever heat. They gave notice
that the abbot and his official suite would move in state and occupy the
platform at 10:30, up to which time all the region which was under my ban must
be clear; the bells would then cease from tolling, and this sign should be
permission to the multitudes to close in and take their places.
I was at the
platform and all ready to do the honors when the abbot's solemn procession hove
in sight—which it did not do till it was nearly to the rope fence, because it
was a starless black night and no torches permitted. With it came Merlin, and
took a front seat on the platform; he was as good as his word for once. One
could not see the multitudes banked together beyond the ban, but they were
there, just the same. The moment the bells stopped, those banked masses broke
and poured over the line like a vast black wave, and for as much as a half hour
it continued to flow, and then it solidified itself, and you could have walked
upon a pavement of human heads to—well, miles.
We had a solemn
stage-wait, now, for about twenty minutes—a thing I had counted on for effect;
it is always good to let your audience have a chance to work up its expectancy.
At length, out of the silence a noble Latin chant—men's voices—broke and
swelled up and rolled away into the night, a majestic tide of melody. I had put
that up, too, and it was one of the best effects I ever invented. When it was
finished I stood up on the platform and extended my hands abroad, for two
minutes, with my face uplifted—that always produces a dead hush—and then slowly
pronounced this ghastly word with a kind of awfulness which caused hundreds to
tremble, and many women to faint:
“Constantinopolitanischerdudelsackspfeifenmachersgesellschafft!”
Just as I was
moaning out the closing hunks of that word, I touched off one of my electric
connections and all that murky world of people stood revealed in a hideous blue
glare! It was immense—that effect! Lots of people shrieked, women curled up and
quit in every direction, foundlings collapsed by platoons. The abbot and the
monks crossed themselves nimbly and their lips fluttered with agitated prayers.
Merlin held his grip, but he was astonished clear down to his corns; he had
never seen anything to begin with that, before. Now was the time to pile in the
effects. I lifted my hands and groaned out this word—as it were in agony:
“Nihilistendynamittheaterkaestchenssprengungsattentaetsversuchungen!”
—and turned on
the red fire! You should have heard that Atlantic of people moan and howl when
that crimson hell joined the blue! After sixty seconds I shouted:
“Transvaaltruppentropentransporttrampelthiertreibertrauungsthraenentragoedie!”
—and lit up the
green fire! After waiting only forty seconds this time, I spread my arms abroad
and thundered out the devastating syllables of this word of words:
“Mekkamuselmannenmassenmenchenmoerdermohrenmuttermarmormonumentenmacher!”
—and whirled on
the purple glare! There they were, all going at once, red, blue, green,
purple!—four furious volcanoes pouring vast clouds of radiant smoke aloft, and
spreading a blinding rainbowed noonday to the furthest confines of that valley.
In the distance one could see that fellow on the pillar standing rigid against
the background of sky, his seesaw stopped for the first time in twenty years. I
knew the boys were at the pump now and ready. So I said to the abbot:
“The time is
come, Father. I am about to pronounce the dread name and command the spell to
dissolve. You want to brace up, and take hold of something.” Then I shouted to
the people: “Behold, in another minute the spell will be broken, or no mortal
can break it. If it break, all will know it, for you will see the sacred water
gush from the chapel door!”
I stood a few
moments, to let the hearers have a chance to spread my announcement to those
who couldn't hear, and so convey it to the furthest ranks, then I made a grand
exhibition of extra posturing and gesturing, and shouted:
“Lo, I command
the fell spirit that possesses the holy fountain to now disgorge into the skies
all the infernal fires that still remain in him, and straightway dissolve his
spell and flee hence to the pit, there to lie bound a thousand years. By his
own dread name I command it—BGWJJILLIGKKK!”
Then I touched
off the hogshead of rockets, and a vast fountain of dazzling lances of fire
vomited itself toward the zenith with a hissing rush, and burst in mid-sky into
a storm of flashing jewels! One mighty groan of terror started up from the
massed people—then suddenly broke into a wild hosannah of joy—for there, fair
and plain in the uncanny glare, they saw the freed water leaping forth! The old
abbot could not speak a word, for tears and the chokings in his throat; without
utterance of any sort, he folded me in his arms and mashed me. It was more
eloquent than speech. And harder to get over, too, in a country where there
were really no doctors that were worth a damaged nickel.
You should have
seen those acres of people throw themselves down in that water and kiss it;
kiss it, and pet it, and fondle it, and talk to it as if it were alive, and
welcome it back with the dear names they gave their darlings, just as if it had
been a friend who was long gone away and lost, and was come home again. Yes, it
was pretty to see, and made me think more of them than I had done before.
I sent Merlin
home on a shutter. He had caved in and gone down like a landslide when I
pronounced that fearful name, and had never come to since. He never had heard
that name before,—neither had I—but to him it was the right one. Any jumble
would have been the right one. He admitted, afterward, that that spirit's own
mother could not have pronounced that name better than I did. He never could
understand how I survived it, and I didn't tell him. It is only young magicians
that give away a secret like that. Merlin spent three months working
enchantments to try to find out the deep trick of how to pronounce that name
and outlive it. But he didn't arrive.
When I started to
the chapel, the populace uncovered and fell back reverently to make a wide way
for me, as if I had been some kind of a superior being—and I was. I was aware
of that. I took along a night shift of monks, and taught them the mystery of
the pump, and set them to work, for it was plain that a good part of the people
out there were going to sit up with the water all night, consequently it was
but right that they should have all they wanted of it. To those monks that pump
was a good deal of a miracle itself, and they were full of wonder over it; and
of admiration, too, of the exceeding effectiveness of its performance.
It was a great
night, an immense night. There was reputation in it. I could hardly get to
sleep for glorying over it.
Chapter XXIV.
A RIVAL MAGICIAN
MY influence in
the Valley of Holiness was something prodigious now. It seemed worth while to
try to turn it to some valuable account. The thought came to me the next
morning, and was suggested by my seeing one of my knights who was in the soap
line come riding in. According to history, the monks of this place two
centuries before had been worldly minded enough to want to wash. It might be
that there was a leaven of this unrighteousness still remaining. So I sounded a
Brother:
“Wouldn't you
like a bath?”
He shuddered at
the thought—the thought of the peril of it to the well—but he said with
feeling:
“One needs not to
ask that of a poor body who has not known that blessed refreshment sith that he
was a boy. Would God I might wash me! but it may not be, fair sir, tempt me
not; it is forbidden.”
And then he
sighed in such a sorrowful way that I was resolved he should have at least one
layer of his real estate removed, if it sized up my whole influence and
bankrupted the pile. So I went to the abbot and asked for a permit for this
Brother. He blenched at the idea—I don't mean that you could see him blench,
for of course you couldn't see it without you scraped him, and I didn't care
enough about it to scrape him, but I knew the blench was there, just the same,
and within a book-cover's thickness of the surface, too—blenched, and trembled.
He said:
“Ah, son, ask
aught else thou wilt, and it is thine, and freely granted out of a grateful
heart—but this, oh, this! Would you drive away the blessed water again?”
“No, Father, I
will not drive it away. I have mysterious knowledge which teaches me that there
was an error that other time when it was thought the institution of the bath
banished the fountain.” A large interest began to show up in the old man's
face. “My knowledge informs me that the bath was innocent of that misfortune,
which was caused by quite another sort of sin.”
“These are brave
words—but—but right welcome, if they be true.”
“They are true,
indeed. Let me build the bath again, Father. Let me build it again, and the
fountain shall flow forever.”
“You promise
this?—you promise it? Say the word—say you promise it!”
“I do promise
it.”
“Then will I have
the first bath myself! Go—get ye to your work. Tarry not, tarry not, but go.”
I and my boys
were at work, straight off. The ruins of the old bath were there yet in the
basement of the monastery, not a stone missing. They had been left just so, all
these lifetimes, and avoided with a pious fear, as things accursed. In two days
we had it all done and the water in—a spacious pool of clear pure water that a
body could swim in. It was running water, too. It came in, and went out,
through the ancient pipes. The old abbot kept his word, and was the first to
try it. He went down black and shaky, leaving the whole black community above
troubled and worried and full of bodings; but he came back white and joyful,
and the game was made! another triumph scored.
It was a good
campaign that we made in that Valley of Holiness, and I was very well
satisfied, and ready to move on now, but I struck a disappointment. I caught a
heavy cold, and it started up an old lurking rheumatism of mine. Of course the
rheumatism hunted up my weakest place and located itself there. This was the
place where the abbot put his arms about me and mashed me, what time he was
moved to testify his gratitude to me with an embrace.
When at last I
got out, I was a shadow. But everybody was full of attentions and kindnesses,
and these brought cheer back into my life, and were the right medicine to help
a convalescent swiftly up toward health and strength again; so I gained fast.
Sandy was worn
out with nursing; so I made up my mind to turn out and go a cruise alone,
leaving her at the nunnery to rest up. My idea was to disguise myself as a
freeman of peasant degree and wander through the country a week or two on foot.
This would give me a chance to eat and lodge with the lowliest and poorest
class of free citizens on equal terms. There was no other way to inform myself
perfectly of their everyday life and the operation of the laws upon it. If I
went among them as a gentleman, there would be restraints and conventionalities
which would shut me out from their private joys and troubles, and I should get
no further than the outside shell.
One morning I was
out on a long walk to get up muscle for my trip, and had climbed the ridge
which bordered the northern extremity of the valley, when I came upon an
artificial opening in the face of a low precipice, and recognized it by its
location as a hermitage which had often been pointed out to me from a distance
as the den of a hermit of high renown for dirt and austerity. I knew he had
lately been offered a situation in the Great Sahara, where lions and sandflies
made the hermit-life peculiarly attractive and difficult, and had gone to
Africa to take possession, so I thought I would look in and see how the
atmosphere of this den agreed with its reputation.
My surprise was
great: the place was newly swept and scoured. Then there was another surprise.
Back in the gloom of the cavern I heard the clink of a little bell, and then
this exclamation:
“Hello Central!
Is this you, Camelot?—Behold, thou mayst glad thy heart an thou hast faith to
believe the wonderful when that it cometh in unexpected guise and maketh itself
manifest in impossible places—here standeth in the flesh his mightiness The
Boss, and with thine own ears shall ye hear him speak!”
Now what a
radical reversal of things this was; what a jumbling together of extravagant
incongruities; what a fantastic conjunction of opposites and
irreconcilables—the home of the bogus miracle become the home of a real one,
the den of a mediaeval hermit turned into a telephone office!
The telephone
clerk stepped into the light, and I recognized one of my young fellows. I said:
“How long has
this office been established here, Ulfius?”
“But since
midnight, fair Sir Boss, an it please you. We saw many lights in the valley,
and so judged it well to make a station, for that where so many lights be needs
must they indicate a town of goodly size.”
“Quite right. It
isn't a town in the customary sense, but it's a good stand, anyway. Do you know
where you are?”
“Of that I have
had no time to make inquiry; for whenas my comradeship moved hence upon their
labors, leaving me in charge, I got me to needed rest, purposing to inquire
when I waked, and report the place's name to Camelot for record.”
“Well, this is
the Valley of Holiness.”
It didn't take; I
mean, he didn't start at the name, as I had supposed he would. He merely said:
“I will so report
it.”
“Why, the
surrounding regions are filled with the noise of late wonders that have
happened here! You didn't hear of them?”
“Ah, ye will
remember we move by night, and avoid speech with all. We learn naught but that
we get by the telephone from Camelot.”
“Why THEY know
all about this thing. Haven't they told you anything about the great miracle of
the restoration of a holy fountain?”
“Oh, THAT? Indeed
yes. But the name of THIS valley doth woundily differ from the name of THAT
one; indeed to differ wider were not pos—”
“What was that
name, then?”
“The Valley of
Hellishness.”
“THAT explains
it. Confound a telephone, anyway. It is the very demon for conveying
similarities of sound that are miracles of divergence from similarity of sense.
But no matter, you know the name of the place now. Call up Camelot.”
He did it, and
had Clarence sent for. It was good to hear my boy's voice again. It was like
being home. After some affectionate interchanges, and some account of my late
illness, I said:
“What is new?”
“The king and
queen and many of the court do start even in this hour, to go to your valley to
pay pious homage to the waters ye have restored, and cleanse themselves of sin,
and see the place where the infernal spirit spouted true hell-flames to the
clouds—an ye listen sharply ye may hear me wink and hear me likewise smile a
smile, sith 'twas I that made selection of those flames from out our stock and
sent them by your order.”
“Does the king
know the way to this place?”
“The king?—no,
nor to any other in his realms, mayhap; but the lads that holp you with your
miracle will be his guide and lead the way, and appoint the places for rests at
noons and sleeps at night.”
“This will bring
them here—when?”
“Mid-afternoon,
or later, the third day.”
“Anything else in
the way of news?”
“The king hath
begun the raising of the standing army ye suggested to him; one regiment is
complete and officered.”
“The mischief! I
wanted a main hand in that myself. There is only one body of men in the kingdom
that are fitted to officer a regular army.”
“Yes—and now ye
will marvel to know there's not so much as one West Pointer in that regiment.”
“What are you
talking about? Are you in earnest?”
“It is truly as I
have said.”
“Why, this makes
me uneasy. Who were chosen, and what was the method? Competitive examination?”
“Indeed, I know
naught of the method. I but know this—these officers be all of noble family,
and are born—what is it you call it?—chuckleheads.”
“There's
something wrong, Clarence. “
“Comfort
yourself, then; for two candidates for a lieutenancy do travel hence with the
king—young nobles both—and if you but wait where you are you will hear them
questioned.”
“That is news to
the purpose. I will get one West Pointer in, anyway. Mount a man and send him
to that school with a message; let him kill horses, if necessary, but he must
be there before sunset to-night and say—“
“There is no
need. I have laid a ground wire to the school. Prithee let me connect you with
it.”
It sounded good!
In this atmosphere of telephones and lightning communication with distant
regions, I was breathing the breath of life again after long suffocation. I
realized, then, what a creepy, dull, inanimate horror this land had been to me
all these years, and how I had been in such a stifled condition of mind as to
have grown used to it almost beyond the power to notice it.
I gave my order
to the superintendent of the Academy personally. I also asked him to bring me
some paper and a fountain pen and a box or so of safety matches. I was getting
tired of doing without these conveniences. I could have them now, as I wasn't
going to wear armor any more at present, and therefore could get at my pockets.
When I got back
to the monastery, I found a thing of interest going on. The abbot and his monks
were assembled in the great hall, observing with childish wonder and faith the
performances of a new magician, a fresh arrival. His dress was the extreme of
the fantastic; as showy and foolish as the sort of thing an Indian medicine-man
wears. He was mowing, and mumbling, and gesticulating, and drawing mystical
figures in the air and on the floor,—the regular thing, you know. He was a
celebrity from Asia—so he said, and that was enough. That sort of evidence was
as good as gold, and passed current everywhere.
How easy and
cheap it was to be a great magician on this fellow's terms. His specialty was to
tell you what any individual on the face of the globe was doing at the moment;
and what he had done at any time in the past, and what he would do at any time
in the future. He asked if any would like to know what the Emperor of the East
was doing now? The sparkling eyes and the delighted rubbing of hands made
eloquent answer—this reverend crowd WOULD like to know what that monarch was
at, just as this moment. The fraud went through some more mummery, and then
made grave announcement:
“The high and
mighty Emperor of the East doth at this moment put money in the palm of a holy
begging friar—one, two, three pieces, and they be all of silver.”
A buzz of
admiring exclamations broke out, all around:
“It is
marvelous!” “Wonderful!” “What study, what labor, to have acquired a so amazing
power as this!”
Would they like
to know what the Supreme Lord of Inde was doing? Yes. He told them what the
Supreme Lord of Inde was doing. Then he told them what the Sultan of Egypt was
at; also what the King of the Remote Seas was about. And so on and so on; and
with each new marvel the astonishment at his accuracy rose higher and higher.
They thought he must surely strike an uncertain place some time; but no, he
never had to hesitate, he always knew, and always with unerring precision. I
saw that if this thing went on I should lose my supremacy, this fellow would
capture my following, I should be left out in the cold. I must put a cog in his
wheel, and do it right away, too. I said:
“If I might ask,
I should very greatly like to know what a certain person is doing.”
“Speak, and
freely. I will tell you.”
“It will be
difficult—perhaps impossible.”
“My art knoweth
not that word. The more difficult it is, the more certainly will I reveal it to
you.”
You see, I was
working up the interest. It was getting pretty high, too; you could see that by
the craning necks all around, and the half-suspended breathing. So now I
climaxed it:
“If you make no
mistake—if you tell me truly what I want to know—I will give you two hundred
silver pennies.”
“The fortune is
mine! I will tell you what you would know.”
“Then tell me
what I am doing with my right hand.”
“Ah-h!” There was
a general gasp of surprise. It had not occurred to anybody in the crowd—that
simple trick of inquiring about somebody who wasn't ten thousand miles away.
The magician was hit hard; it was an emergency that had never happened in his
experience before, and it corked him; he didn't know how to meet it. He looked
stunned, confused; he couldn't say a word. “Come,” I said, “what are you
waiting for? Is it possible you can answer up, right off, and tell what anybody
on the other side of the earth is doing, and yet can't tell what a person is
doing who isn't three yards from you? Persons behind me know what I am doing
with my right hand—they will indorse you if you tell correctly.” He was still
dumb. “Very well, I'll tell you why you don't speak up and tell; it is because
you don't know. YOU a magician! Good friends, this tramp is a mere fraud and
liar.”
This distressed
the monks and terrified them. They were not used to hearing these awful beings
called names, and they did not know what might be the consequence. There was a
dead silence now; superstitious bodings were in every mind. The magician began
to pull his wits together, and when he presently smiled an easy, nonchalant
smile, it spread a mighty relief around; for it indicated that his mood was not
destructive. He said:
“It hath struck
me speechless, the frivolity of this person's speech. Let all know, if
perchance there be any who know it not, that enchanters of my degree deign not
to concern themselves with the doings of any but kings, princes, emperors, them
that be born in the purple and them only. Had ye asked me what Arthur the great
king is doing, it were another matter, and I had told ye; but the doings of a
subject interest me not.”
“Oh, I
misunderstood you. I thought you said 'anybody,' and so I supposed 'anybody'
included—well, anybody; that is, everybody.”
“It doth—anybody
that is of lofty birth; and the better if he be royal.”
“That, it
meseemeth, might well be,” said the abbot, who saw his opportunity to smooth
things and avert disaster, “for it were not likely that so wonderful a gift as
this would be conferred for the revelation of the concerns of lesser beings
than such as be born near to the summits of greatness. Our Arthur the king—”
“Would you know
of him?” broke in the enchanter.
“Most gladly,
yea, and gratefully.”
Everybody was
full of awe and interest again right away, the incorrigible idiots. They
watched the incantations absorbingly, and looked at me with a “There, now, what
can you say to that?” air, when the announcement came:
“The king is
weary with the chase, and lieth in his palace these two hours sleeping a
dreamless sleep.”
“God's benison
upon him!” said the abbot, and crossed himself; “may that sleep be to the
refreshment of his body and his soul.”
“And so it might
be, if he were sleeping,” I said, “but the king is not sleeping, the king
rides.”
Here was trouble
again—a conflict of authority. Nobody knew which of us to believe; I still had
some reputation left. The magician's scorn was stirred, and he said:
“Lo, I have seen
many wonderful soothsayers and prophets and magicians in my life days, but none
before that could sit idle and see to the heart of things with never an
incantation to help.”
“You have lived
in the woods, and lost much by it. I use incantations myself, as this good
brotherhood are aware—but only on occasions of moment.”
When it comes to
sarcasming, I reckon I know how to keep my end up. That jab made this fellow
squirm. The abbot inquired after the queen and the court, and got this
information:
“They be all on
sleep, being overcome by fatigue, like as to the king.”
I said:
“That is merely
another lie. Half of them are about their amusements, the queen and the other
half are not sleeping, they ride. Now perhaps you can spread yourself a little,
and tell us where the king and queen and all that are this moment riding with
them are going?”
“They sleep now,
as I said; but on the morrow they will ride, for they go a journey toward the
sea.”
“And where will
they be the day after to-morrow at vespers?”
“Far to the north
of Camelot, and half their journey will be done.”
“That is another
lie, by the space of a hundred and fifty miles. Their journey will not be
merely half done, it will be all done, and they will be HERE, in this valley.”
THAT was a noble
shot! It set the abbot and the monks in a whirl of excitement, and it rocked
the enchanter to his base. I followed the thing right up:
“If the king does
not arrive, I will have myself ridden on a rail: if he does I will ride you on
a rail instead.”
Next day I went
up to the telephone office and found that the king had passed through two towns
that were on the line. I spotted his progress on the succeeding day in the same
way. I kept these matters to myself. The third day's reports showed that if he
kept up his gait he would arrive by four in the afternoon. There was still no
sign anywhere of interest in his coming; there seemed to be no preparations
making to receive him in state; a strange thing, truly. Only one thing could
explain this: that other magician had been cutting under me, sure. This was
true. I asked a friend of mine, a monk, about it, and he said, yes, the
magician had tried some further enchantments and found out that the court had
concluded to make no journey at all, but stay at home. Think of that! Observe
how much a reputation was worth in such a country. These people had seen me do
the very showiest bit of magic in history, and the only one within their memory
that had a positive value, and yet here they were, ready to take up with an
adventurer who could offer no evidence of his powers but his mere unproven word.
However, it was
not good politics to let the king come without any fuss and feathers at all, so
I went down and drummed up a procession of pilgrims and smoked out a batch of
hermits and started them out at two o'clock to meet him. And that was the sort
of state he arrived in. The abbot was helpless with rage and humiliation when I
brought him out on a balcony and showed him the head of the state marching in
and never a monk on hand to offer him welcome, and no stir of life or clang of
joy-bell to glad his spirit. He took one look and then flew to rouse out his
forces. The next minute the bells were dinning furiously, and the various
buildings were vomiting monks and nuns, who went swarming in a rush toward the
coming procession; and with them went that magician—and he was on a rail, too,
by the abbot's order; and his reputation was in the mud, and mine was in the
sky again. Yes, a man can keep his trademark current in such a country, but he
can't sit around and do it; he has got to be on deck and attending to business
right along.
Chapter XXV.
A COMPETITIVE
EXAMINATION
WHEN the king
traveled for change of air, or made a progress, or visited a distant noble whom
he wished to bankrupt with the cost of his keep, part of the administration
moved with him. It was a fashion of the time. The Commission charged with the
examination of candidates for posts in the army came with the king to the
Valley, whereas they could have transacted their business just as well at home.
And although this expedition was strictly a holiday excursion for the king, he
kept some of his business functions going just the same. He touched for the
evil, as usual; he held court in the gate at sunrise and tried cases, for he
was himself Chief Justice of the King's Bench.
He shone very well
in this latter office. He was a wise and humane judge, and he clearly did his
honest best and fairest,—according to his lights. That is a large reservation.
His lights—I mean his rearing—often colored his decisions. Whenever there was a
dispute between a noble or gentleman and a person of lower degree, the king's
leanings and sympathies were for the former class always, whether he suspected
it or not. It was impossible that this should be otherwise. The blunting
effects of slavery upon the slaveholder's moral perceptions are known and
conceded, the world over; and a privileged class, an aristocracy, is but a band
of slaveholders under another name. This has a harsh sound, and yet should not
be offensive to any—even to the noble himself—unless the fact itself be an
offense: for the statement simply formulates a fact. The repulsive feature of
slavery is the THING, not its name. One needs but to hear an aristocrat speak
of the classes that are below him to recognize—and in but indifferently
modified measure—the very air and tone of the actual slaveholder; and behind
these are the slaveholder's spirit, the slaveholder's blunted feeling. They are
the result of the same cause in both cases: the possessor's old and inbred
custom of regarding himself as a superior being. The king's judgments wrought
frequent injustices, but it was merely the fault of his training, his natural
and unalterable sympathies. He was as unfitted for a judgeship as would be the
average mother for the position of milkdistributor to starving children in
famine-time; her own children would fare a shade better than the rest.
One very curious
case came before the king. A young girl, an orphan, who had a considerable
estate, married a fine young fellow who had nothing. The girl's property was
within a seigniory held by the Church. The bishop of the diocese, an arrogant
scion of the great nobility, claimed the girl's estate on the ground that she
had married privately, and thus had cheated the Church out of one of its rights
as lord of the seigniory—the one heretofore referred to as le droit du
seigneur. The penalty of refusal or avoidance was confiscation. The girl's
defense was, that the lordship of the seigniory was vested in the bishop, and
the particular right here involved was not transferable, but must be exercised
by the lord himself or stand vacated; and that an older law, of the Church
itself, strictly barred the bishop from exercising it. It was a very odd case,
indeed.
It reminded me of
something I had read in my youth about the ingenious way in which the aldermen
of London raised the money that built the Mansion House. A person who had not
taken the Sacrament according to the Anglican rite could not stand as a
candidate for sheriff of London. Thus Dissenters were ineligible; they could not
run if asked, they could not serve if elected. The aldermen, who without any
question were Yankees in disguise, hit upon this neat device: they passed a
by-law imposing a fine of L400 upon any one who should refuse to be a candidate
for sheriff, and a fine of L600 upon any person who, after being elected
sheriff, refused to serve. Then they went to work and elected a lot of
Dissenters, one after another, and kept it up until they had collected L15,000
in fines; and there stands the stately Mansion House to this day, to keep the
blushing citizen in mind of a long past and lamented day when a band of Yankees
slipped into London and played games of the sort that has given their race a
unique and shady reputation among all truly good and holy peoples that be in
the earth.
The girl's case
seemed strong to me; the bishop's case was just as strong. I did not see how
the king was going to get out of this hole. But he got out. I append his
decision:
“Truly I find
small difficulty here, the matter being even a child's affair for simpleness.
An the young bride had conveyed notice, as in duty bound, to her feudal lord
and proper master and protector the bishop, she had suffered no loss, for the
said bishop could have got a dispensation making him, for temporary conveniency,
eligible to the exercise of his said right, and thus would she have kept all
she had. Whereas, failing in her first duty, she hath by that failure failed in
all; for whoso, clinging to a rope, severeth it above his hands, must fall; it
being no defense to claim that the rest of the rope is sound, neither any
deliverance from his peril, as he shall find. Pardy, the woman's case is rotten
at the source. It is the decree of the court that she forfeit to the said lord
bishop all her goods, even to the last farthing that she doth possess, and be
thereto mulcted in the costs. Next!”
Here was a tragic
end to a beautiful honeymoon not yet three months old. Poor young creatures!
They had lived these three months lapped to the lips in worldly comforts. These
clothes and trinkets they were wearing were as fine and dainty as the shrewdest
stretch of the sumptuary laws allowed to people of their degree; and in these
pretty clothes, she crying on his shoulder, and he trying to comfort her with
hopeful words set to the music of despair, they went from the judgment seat out
into the world homeless, bedless, breadless; why, the very beggars by the
roadsides were not so poor as they.
Well, the king
was out of the hole; and on terms satisfactory to the Church and the rest of
the aristocracy, no doubt. Men write many fine and plausible arguments in
support of monarchy, but the fact remains that where every man in a State has a
vote, brutal laws are impossible. Arthur's people were of course poor material
for a republic, because they had been debased so long by monarchy; and yet even
they would have been intelligent enough to make short work of that law which
the king had just been administering if it had been submitted to their full and
free vote. There is a phrase which has grown so common in the world's mouth
that it has come to seem to have sense and meaning—the sense and meaning
implied when it is used; that is the phrase which refers to this or that or the
other nation as possibly being “capable of selfgovernment”; and the implied
sense of it is, that there has been a nation somewhere, some time or other
which WASN'T capable of it—wasn't as able to govern itself as some
self-appointed specialists were or would be to govern it. The master minds of
all nations, in all ages, have sprung in affluent multitude from the mass of
the nation, and from the mass of the nation only—not from its privileged
classes; and so, no matter what the nation's intellectual grade was; whether
high or low, the bulk of its ability was in the long ranks of its nameless and
its poor, and so it never saw the day that it had not the material in abundance
whereby to govern itself. Which is to assert an always self-proven fact: that
even the best governed and most free and most enlightened monarchy is still behind
the best condition attainable by its people; and that the same is true of
kindred governments of lower grades, all the way down to the lowest.
King Arthur had
hurried up the army business altogether beyond my calculations. I had not
supposed he would move in the matter while I was away; and so I had not mapped
out a scheme for determining the merits of officers; I had only remarked that
it would be wise to submit every candidate to a sharp and searching
examination; and privately I meant to put together a list of military
qualifications that nobody could answer to but my West Pointers. That ought to
have been attended to before I left; for the king was so taken with the idea of
a standing army that he couldn't wait but must get about it at once, and get up
as good a scheme of examination as he could invent out of his own head.
I was impatient
to see what this was; and to show, too, how much more admirable was the one
which I should display to the Examining Board. I intimated this, gently, to the
king, and it fired his curiosity When the Board was assembled, I followed him
in; and behind us came the candidates. One of these candidates was a bright
young West Pointer of mine, and with him were a couple of my West Point
professors.
When I saw the
Board, I did not know whether to cry or to laugh. The head of it was the
officer known to later centuries as Norroy King-at-Arms! The two other members
were chiefs of bureaus in his department; and all three were priests, of
course; all officials who had to know how to read and write were priests.
My candidate was
called first, out of courtesy to me, and the head of the Board opened on him
with official solemnity:
“Name?”
“Mal-ease.”
“Son of?”
“Webster.”
“Webster—Webster.
H'm—I—my memory faileth to recall the name. Condition?”
“Weaver.”
“Weaver!—God keep
us!”
The king was
staggered, from his summit to his foundations; one clerk fainted, and the
others came near it. The chairman pulled himself together, and said
indignantly:
“It is
sufficient. Get you hence.”
But I appealed to
the king. I begged that my candidate might be examined. The king was willing,
but the Board, who were all well-born folk, implored the king to spare them the
indignity of examining the weaver's son. I knew they didn't know enough to
examine him anyway, so I joined my prayers to theirs and the king turned the
duty over to my professors. I had had a blackboard prepared, and it was put up
now, and the circus began. It was beautiful to hear the lad lay out the science
of war, and wallow in details of battle and siege, of supply, transportation,
mining and countermining, grand tactics, big strategy and little strategy,
signal service, infantry, cavalry, artillery, and all about siege guns, field
guns, gatling guns, rifled guns, smooth bores, musket practice, revolver
practice—and not a solitary word of it all could these catfish make head or
tail of, you understand—and it was handsome to see him chalk off mathematical
nightmares on the blackboard that would stump the angels themselves, and do it
like nothing, too—all about eclipses, and comets, and solstices, and
constellations, and mean time, and sidereal time, and dinner time, and bedtime,
and every other imaginable thing above the clouds or under them that you could
harry or bullyrag an enemy with and make him wish he hadn't come—and when the
boy made his military salute and stood aside at last, I was proud enough to hug
him, and all those other people were so dazed they looked partly petrified,
partly drunk, and wholly caught out and snowed under. I judged that the cake
was ours, and by a large majority.
Education is a
great thing. This was the same youth who had come to West Point so ignorant
that when I asked him, “If a general officer should have a horse shot under him
on the field of battle, what ought he to do?” answered up naively and said:
“Get up and brush
himself.”
One of the young
nobles was called up now. I thought I would question him a little myself. I
said:
“Can your
lordship read?”
His face flushed
indignantly, and he fired this at me:
“Takest me for a
clerk? I trow I am not of a blood that—”
“Answer the
question!”
He crowded his
wrath down and made out to answer “No.”
“Can you write?”
He wanted to
resent this, too, but I said:
“You will confine
yourself to the questions, and make no comments. You are not here to air your
blood or your graces, and nothing of the sort will be permitted. Can you
write?”
“No.”
“Do you know the
multiplication table?”
“I wit not what
ye refer to.”
“How much is 9
times 6?”
“It is a mystery
that is hidden from me by reason that the emergency requiring the fathoming of
it hath not in my life-days occurred, and so, not having no need to know this
thing, I abide barren of the knowledge.”
“If A trade a
barrel of onions to B, worth 2 pence the bushel, in exchange for a sheep worth
4 pence and a dog worth a penny, and C kill the dog before delivery, because
bitten by the same, who mistook him for D, what sum is still due to A from B,
and which party pays for the dog, C or D, and who gets the money? If A, is the
penny sufficient, or may he claim consequential damages in the form of
additional money to represent the possible profit which might have inured from
the dog, and classifiable as earned increment, that is to say, usufruct?”
“Verily, in the
all-wise and unknowable providence of God, who moveth in mysterious ways his
wonders to perform, have I never heard the fellow to this question for
confusion of the mind and congestion of the ducts of thought. Wherefore I
beseech you let the dog and the onions and these people of the strange and
godless names work out their several salvations from their piteous and
wonderful difficulties without help of mine, for indeed their trouble is
sufficient as it is, whereas an I tried to help I should but damage their cause
the more and yet mayhap not live myself to see the desolation wrought.”
“What do you know
of the laws of attraction and gravitation?”
“If there be
such, mayhap his grace the king did promulgate them whilst that I lay sick
about the beginning of the year and thereby failed to hear his proclamation.”
“What do you know
of the science of optics?”
“I know of
governors of places, and seneschals of castles, and sheriffs of counties, and
many like small offices and titles of honor, but him you call the Science of
Optics I have not heard of before; peradventure it is a new dignity.”
“Yes, in this
country.”
Try to conceive
of this mollusk gravely applying for an official position, of any kind under
the sun! Why, he had all the earmarks of a typewriter copyist, if you leave out
the disposition to contribute uninvited emendations of your grammar and
punctuation. It was unaccountable that he didn't attempt a little help of that
sort out of his majestic supply of incapacity for the job. But that didn't
prove that he hadn't material in him for the disposition, it only proved that
he wasn't a typewriter copyist yet. After nagging him a little more, I let the
professors loose on him and they turned him inside out, on the line of
scientific war, and found him empty, of course. He knew somewhat about the
warfare of the time—bushwhacking around for ogres, and bull-fights in the
tournament ring, and such things—but otherwise he was empty and useless. Then
we took the other young noble in hand, and he was the first one's twin, for
ignorance and incapacity. I delivered them into the hands of the chairman of
the Board with the comfortable consciousness that their cake was dough. They
were examined in the previous order of precedence.
“Name, so please
you?”
“Pertipole, son
of Sir Pertipole, Baron of Barley Mash.”
“Grandfather?”
“Also Sir
Pertipole, Baron of Barley Mash.”
“Great-grandfather?”
“The same name
and title.”
“Great-great-grandfather?”
“We had none,
worshipful sir, the line failing before it had reached so far back.”
“It mattereth
not. It is a good four generations, and fulfilleth the requirements of the
rule.”
“Fulfills what
rule?” I asked.
“The rule
requiring four generations of nobility or else the candidate is not eligible.”
“A man not
eligible for a lieutenancy in the army unless he can prove four generations of
noble descent?”
“Even so; neither
lieutenant nor any other officer may be commissioned without that
qualification.”
“Oh, come, this
is an astonishing thing. What good is such a qualification as that?”
“What good? It is
a hardy question, fair sir and Boss, since it doth go far to impugn the wisdom
of even our holy Mother Church herself.”
“As how?”
“For that she
hath established the self-same rule regarding saints. By her law none may be
canonized until he hath lain dead four generations.”
“I see, I see—it
is the same thing. It is wonderful. In the one case a man lies dead-alive four
generations—mummified in ignorance and sloth—and that qualifies him to command
live people, and take their weal and woe into his impotent hands; and in the
other case, a man lies bedded with death and worms four generations, and that
qualifies him for office in the celestial camp. Does the king's grace approve
of this strange law?”
The king said:
“Why, truly I see
naught about it that is strange. All places of honor and of profit do belong,
by natural right, to them that be of noble blood, and so these dignities in the
army are their property and would be so without this or any rule. The rule is
but to mark a limit. Its purpose is to keep out too recent blood, which would
bring into contempt these offices, and men of lofty lineage would turn their
backs and scorn to take them. I were to blame an I permitted this calamity. YOU
can permit it an you are minded so to do, for you have the delegated authority,
but that the king should do it were a most strange madness and not
comprehensible to any.”
“I yield.
Proceed, sir Chief of the Herald's College. “
The chairman
resumed as follows:
“By what
illustrious achievement for the honor of the Throne and State did the founder
of your great line lift himself to the sacred dignity of the British nobility?”
“He built a
brewery.”
“Sire, the Board
finds this candidate perfect in all the requirements and qualifications for
military command, and doth hold his case open for decision after due
examination of his competitor.”
The competitor
came forward and proved exactly four generations of nobility himself. So there
was a tie in military qualifications that far.
He stood aside a
moment, and Sir Pertipole was questioned further:
“Of what
condition was the wife of the founder of your line?”
“She came of the
highest landed gentry, yet she was not noble; she was gracious and pure and
charitable, of a blameless life and character, insomuch that in these regards
was she peer of the best lady in the land.”
“That will do.
Stand down.” He called up the competing lordling again, and asked: “What was
the rank and condition of the great-grandmother who conferred British nobility
upon your great house?”
“She was a king's
leman and did climb to that splendid eminence by her own unholpen merit from
the sewer where she was born.”
“Ah, this,
indeed, is true nobility, this is the right and perfect intermixture. The
lieutenancy is yours, fair lord. Hold it not in contempt; it is the humble step
which will lead to grandeurs more worthy of the splendor of an origin like to
thine.”
I was down in the
bottomless pit of humiliation. I had promised myself an easy and
zenith-scouring triumph, and this was the outcome!
I was almost
ashamed to look my poor disappointed cadet in the face. I told him to go home
and be patient, this wasn't the end.
I had a private
audience with the king, and made a proposition. I said it was quite right to
officer that regiment with nobilities, and he couldn't have done a wiser thing.
It would also be a good idea to add five hundred officers to it; in fact, add
as many officers as there were nobles and relatives of nobles in the country,
even if there should finally be five times as many officers as privates in it;
and thus make it the crack regiment, the envied regiment, the King's Own regiment,
and entitled to fight on its own hook and in its own way, and go whither it
would and come when it pleased, in time of war, and be utterly swell and
independent. This would make that regiment the heart's desire of all the
nobility, and they would all be satisfied and happy. Then we would make up the
rest of the standing army out of commonplace materials, and officer it with
nobodies, as was proper—nobodies selected on a basis of mere efficiency—and we
would make this regiment toe the line, allow it no aristocratic freedom from
restraint, and force it to do all the work and persistent hammering, to the end
that whenever the King's Own was tired and wanted to go off for a change and
rummage around amongst ogres and have a good time, it could go without uneasiness,
knowing that matters were in safe hands behind it, and business going to be
continued at the old stand, same as usual. The king was charmed with the idea.
When I noticed
that, it gave me a valuable notion. I thought I saw my way out of an old and stubborn
difficulty at last. You see, the royalties of the Pendragon stock were a
long-lived race and very fruitful. Whenever a child was born to any of
these—and it was pretty often—there was wild joy in the nation's mouth, and
piteous sorrow in the nation's heart. The joy was questionable, but the grief
was honest. Because the event meant another call for a Royal Grant. Long was
the list of these royalties, and they were a heavy and steadily increasing
burden upon the treasury and a menace to the crown. Yet Arthur could not
believe this latter fact, and he would not listen to any of my various projects
for substituting something in the place of the royal grants. If I could have
persuaded him to now and then provide a support for one of these outlying scions
from his own pocket, I could have made a grand to-do over it, and it would have
had a good effect with the nation; but no, he wouldn't hear of such a thing. He
had something like a religious passion for royal grant; he seemed to look upon
it as a sort of sacred swag, and one could not irritate him in any way so
quickly and so surely as by an attack upon that venerable institution. If I
ventured to cautiously hint that there was not another respectable family in
England that would humble itself to hold out the hat—however, that is as far as
I ever got; he always cut me short there, and peremptorily, too.
But I believed I
saw my chance at last. I would form this crack regiment out of officers
alone—not a single private. Half of it should consist of nobles, who should
fill all the places up to Major-General, and serve gratis and pay their own
expenses; and they would be glad to do this when they should learn that the
rest of the regiment would consist exclusively of princes of the blood. These
princes of the blood should range in rank from Lieutenant-General up to Field
Marshal, and be gorgeously salaried and equipped and fed by the state.
Moreover—and this was the master stroke—it should be decreed that these
princely grandees should be always addressed by a stunningly gaudy and
awe-compelling title (which I would presently invent), and they and they only
in all England should be so addressed. Finally, all princes of the blood should
have free choice; join that regiment, get that great title, and renounce the royal
grant, or stay out and receive a grant. Neatest touch of all: unborn but
imminent princes of the blood could be BORN into the regiment, and start fair,
with good wages and a permanent situation, upon due notice from the parents.
All the boys
would join, I was sure of that; so, all existing grants would be relinquished;
that the newly born would always join was equally certain. Within sixty days
that quaint and bizarre anomaly, the Royal Grant, would cease to be a living
fact, and take its place among the curiosities of the past.
Chapter XXVI.
THE FIRST
NEWSPAPER
WHEN I told the
king I was going out disguised as a petty freeman to scour the country and
familiarize myself with the humbler life of the people, he was all afire with
the novelty of the thing in a minute, and was bound to take a chance in the
adventure himself—nothing should stop him—he would drop everything and go
along—it was the prettiest idea he had run across for many a day. He wanted to
glide out the back way and start at once; but I showed him that that wouldn't
answer. You see, he was billed for the king's-evil—to touch for it, I mean—and
it wouldn't be right to disappoint the house and it wouldn't make a delay worth
considering, anyway, it was only a one-night stand. And I thought he ought to
tell the queen he was going away. He clouded up at that and looked sad. I was
sorry I had spoken, especially when he said mournfully:
“Thou forgettest
that Launcelot is here; and where Launcelot is, she noteth not the going forth
of the king, nor what day he returneth.”
Of course, I
changed the Subject. Yes, Guenever was beautiful, it is true, but take her all
around she was pretty slack. I never meddled in these matters, they weren't my
affair, but I did hate to see the way things were going on, and I don't mind
saying that much. Many's the time she had asked me, “Sir Boss, hast seen Sir
Launcelot about?” but if ever she went fretting around for the king I didn't
happen to be around at the time.
There was a very
good lay-out for the king's-evil business—very tidy and creditable. The king
sat under a canopy of state; about him were clustered a large body of the
clergy in full canonicals. Conspicuous, both for location and personal outfit,
stood Marinel, a hermit of the quack-doctor species, to introduce the sick. All
abroad over the spacious floor, and clear down to the doors, in a thick jumble,
lay or sat the scrofulous, under a strong light. It was as good as a tableau;
in fact, it had all the look of being gotten up for that, though it wasn't. There
were eight hundred sick people present. The work was slow; it lacked the
interest of novelty for me, because I had seen the ceremonies before; the thing
soon became tedious, but the proprieties required me to stick it out. The
doctor was there for the reason that in all such crowds there were many people
who only imagined something was the matter with them, and many who were
consciously sound but wanted the immortal honor of fleshly contact with a king,
and yet others who pretended to illness in order to get the piece of coin that
went with the touch. Up to this time this coin had been a wee little gold piece
worth about a third of a dollar. When you consider how much that amount of
money would buy, in that age and country, and how usual it was to be scrofulous,
when not dead, you would understand that the annual king's-evil appropriation
was just the River and Harbor bill of that government for the grip it took on
the treasury and the chance it afforded for skinning the surplus. So I had
privately concluded to touch the treasury itself for the king's-evil. I covered
sixsevenths of the appropriation into the treasury a week before starting from
Camelot on my adventures, and ordered that the other seventh be inflated into
fivecent nickels and delivered into the hands of the head clerk of the King's
Evil Department; a nickel to take the place of each gold coin, you see, and do
its work for it. It might strain the nickel some, but I judged it could stand
it. As a rule, I do not approve of watering stock, but I considered it square
enough in this case, for it was just a gift, anyway. Of course, you can water a
gift as much as you want to; and I generally do. The old gold and silver coins
of the country were of ancient and unknown origin, as a rule, but some of them
were Roman; they were ill-shapen, and seldom rounder than a moon that is a week
past the full; they were hammered, not minted, and they were so worn with use
that the devices upon them were as illegible as blisters, and looked like them.
I judged that a sharp, bright new nickel, with a first-rate likeness of the
king on one side of it and Guenever on the other, and a blooming pious motto,
would take the tuck out of scrofula as handy as a nobler coin and please the
scrofulous fancy more; and I was right. This batch was the first it was tried
on, and it worked to a charm. The saving in expense was a notable economy. You
will see that by these figures: We touched a trifle over 700 of the 800
patients; at former rates, this would have cost the government about $240; at
the new rate we pulled through for about $35, thus saving upward of $200 at one
swoop. To appreciate the full magnitude of this stroke, consider these other
figures: the annual expenses of a national government amount to the equivalent
of a contribution of three days' average wages of every individual of the
population, counting every individual as if he were a man. If you take a nation
of 60,000,000, where average wages are $2 per day, three days' wages taken from
each individual will provide $360,000,000 and pay the government's expenses. In
my day, in my own country, this money was collected from imposts, and the
citizen imagined that the foreign importer paid it, and it made him comfortable
to think so; whereas, in fact, it was paid by the American people, and was so
equally and exactly distributed among them that the annual cost to the
100-millionaire and the annual cost to the sucking child of the day-laborer was
precisely the same—each paid $6. Nothing could be equaler than that, I reckon.
Well, Scotland and Ireland were tributary to Arthur, and the united populations
of the British Islands amounted to something less than 1,OOO,OOO. A mechanic's
average wage was 3 cents a day, when he paid his own keep. By this rule the
national government's expenses were $90,000 a year, or about $250 a day. Thus,
by the substitution of nickels for gold on a king's-evil day, I not only
injured no one, dissatisfied no one, but pleased all concerned and saved
four-fifths of that day's national expense into the bargain—a saving which
would have been the equivalent of $800,000 in my day in America. In making this
substitution I had drawn upon the wisdom of a very remote source—the wisdom of
my boyhood—for the true statesman does not despise any wisdom, howsoever lowly
may be its origin: in my boyhood I had always saved my pennies and contributed
buttons to the foreign missionary cause. The buttons would answer the ignorant
savage as well as the coin, the coin would answer me better than the buttons;
all hands were happy and nobody hurt.
Marinel took the
patients as they came. He examined the candidate; if he couldn't qualify he was
warned off; if he could he was passed along to the king. A priest pronounced
the words, “They shall lay their hands on the sick, and they shall recover.”
Then the king stroked the ulcers, while the reading continued; finally, the
patient graduated and got his nickel—the king hanging it around his neck
himself—and was dismissed. Would you think that that would cure? It certainly
did. Any mummery will cure if the patient's faith is strong in it. Up by
Astolat there was a chapel where the Virgin had once appeared to a girl who
used to herd geese around there—the girl said so herself—and they built the
chapel upon that spot and hung a picture in it representing the occurrence—a
picture which you would think it dangerous for a sick person to approach;
whereas, on the contrary, thousands of the lame and the sick came and prayed
before it every year and went away whole and sound; and even the well could
look upon it and live. Of course, when I was told these things I did not
believe them; but when I went there and saw them I had to succumb. I saw the
cures effected myself; and they were real cures and not questionable. I saw
cripples whom I had seen around Camelot for years on crutches, arrive and pray
before that picture, and put down their crutches and walk off without a limp.
There were piles of crutches there which had been left by such people as a
testimony.
In other places
people operated on a patient's mind, without saying a word to him, and cured
him. In others, experts assembled patients in a room and prayed over them, and
appealed to their faith, and those patients went away cured. Wherever you find
a king who can't cure the king's-evil you can be sure that the most valuable
superstition that supports his throne—the subject's belief in the divine
appointment of his sovereign—has passed away. In my youth the monarchs of
England had ceased to touch for the evil, but there was no occasion for this
diffidence: they could have cured it forty-nine times in fifty.
Well, when the
priest had been droning for three hours, and the good king polishing the
evidences, and the sick were still pressing forward as plenty as ever, I got to
feeling intolerably bored. I was sitting by an open window not far from the
canopy of state. For the five hundredth time a patient stood forward to have
his repulsivenesses stroked; again those words were being droned out: “they
shall lay their hands on the sick”—when outside there rang clear as a clarion a
note that enchanted my soul and tumbled thirteen worthless centuries about my
ears: “Camelot WEEKLY HOSANNAH AND LITERARY VOLCANO!—latest irruption—only two
cents—all about the big miracle in the Valley of Holiness!” One greater than
kings had arrived—the newsboy. But I was the only person in all that throng who
knew the meaning of this mighty birth, and what this imperial magician was come
into the world to do.
I dropped a
nickel out of the window and got my paper; the Adam-newsboy of the world went
around the corner to get my change; is around the corner yet. It was delicious
to see a newspaper again, yet I was conscious of a secret shock when my eye
fell upon the first batch of display head-lines. I had lived in a clammy atmosphere
of reverence, respect, deference, so long that they sent a quivery little cold
wave through me:
HIGH TIMES IN THE
VALLEY
OF HOLINESS!
——
THE WATER-WORKS
CORKED!
——
BRER MERLIN WORKS
HIS ARTS, BUT GETS
LEFT?
——
But the Boss
scores on his first Innings!
——
The Miraculous
Well Uncorked amid
awful outbursts
of
INFERNAL FIRE AND
SMOKE
ATHUNDER!
——
THE BUZZARD-ROOST
ASTONISHED!
——
UNPARALLELED
REJOIBINGS!
—and so on, and
so on. Yes, it was too loud. Once I could have enjoyed it and seen nothing out
of the way about it, but now its note was discordant. It was good Arkansas
journalism, but this was not Arkansas. Moreover, the next to the last line was
calculated to give offense to the hermits, and perhaps lose us their advertising.
Indeed, there was too lightsome a tone of flippancy all through the paper. It
was plain I had undergone a considerable change without noticing it. I found
myself unpleasantly affected by pert little irreverencies which would have
seemed but proper and airy graces of speech at an earlier period of my life.
There was an abundance of the following breed of items, and they discomforted
me:
LOCAL SMOKE AND
CINDERS.
Sir Launcelot met
up with old King Agrivance of Ireland unexpectedly last weok over on the moor
south of Sir Balmoral le Merveilleuse's hog dasture. The widow has been
notified.
Expedition No. 3
will start adout the first of mext month on a search f8r Sir Sagramour le
Desirous. It is in comand of the renowned Knight of the Red Lawns, assissted by
Sir Persant of Inde, who is compete9t. intelligent, courteous, and in every way
a brick, and furtHer assisted by Sir Palamides the Saracen, who is no
huckleberry hinself. This is no pic-nic, these boys mean busine&s.
The readers of
the Hosannah will regret to learn that the hadndsome and popular Sir Charolais
of Gaul, who during his four weeks' stay at the Bull and Halibut, this city,
has won every heart by his polished manners and elegant cPnversation, will pUll
out to-day for home. Give us another call, Charley!
The bdsiness end
of the funeral of the late Sir Dalliance the duke's son of Cornwall, killed in
an encounter with the Giant of the Knotted Bludgeon last Tuesday on the borders
of the Plain of Enchantment was in the hands of the ever affable and efficient
Mumble, prince of un3ertakers, then whom there exists none by whom it were a
more satisfying pleasure to have the last sad offices performed. Give him a
trial.
The cordial
thanks of the Hosannah office are due, from editor down to devil, to the ever
courteous and thoughtful Lord High Stew d of the Palace's Third Assistant V t
for several sauceTs of ice crEam a quality calculated to make the ey of the
recipients humid with grt ude; and it done it. When this administration wants
to chalk up a desirable name for early promotion, the Hosannah would like a
chance to sudgest.
The Demoiselle
Irene Dewlap, of South Astolat, is visiting her uncle, the popular host of the
Cattlemen's Boarding Ho&se, Liver Lane, this city.
Young Barker the
bellows-mender is hoMe again, and looks much improved by his vacation round-up
among the outlying smithies. See his ad.
Of course it was
good enough journalism for a beginning; I knew that quite well, and yet it was
somehow disappointing. The “Court Circular” pleased me better; indeed, its
simple and dignified respectfulness was a distinct refreshment to me after all
those disgraceful familiarities. But even it could have been improved. Do what
one may, there is no getting an air of variety into a court circular, I acknowledge
that. There is a profound monotonousness about its facts that baffles and
defeats one's sincerest efforts to make them sparkle and enthuse. The best way
to manage—in fact, the only sensible way—is to disguise repetitiousness of fact
under variety of form: skin your fact each time and lay on a new cuticle of
words. It deceives the eye; you think it is a new fact; it gives you the idea
that the court is carrying on like everything; this excites you, and you drain
the whole column, with a good appetite, and perhaps never notice that it's a
barrel of soup made out of a single bean. Clarence's way was good, it was
simple, it was dignified, it was direct and business-like; all I say is, it was
not the best way:
COURT CIRCULAR.
On Monday, the
king rode in the park. “ Tuesday,
“
“
“ “ Wendesday
“
“
“ “ Thursday
“
“
“ “ Friday,
“
“
“ “ Saturday
“
“
“ “ Sunday,
“
“
“
However, take the
paper by and large, I was vastly pleased with it. Little crudities of a
mechanical sort were observable here and there, but there were not enough of
them to amount to anything, and it was good enough Arkansas proof-reading,
anyhow, and better than was needed in Arthur's day and realm. As a rule, the
grammar was leaky and the construction more or less lame; but I did not much
mind these things. They are common defects of my own, and one mustn't criticise
other people on grounds where he can't stand perpendicular himself.
I was hungry
enough for literature to want to take down the whole paper at this one meal,
but I got only a few bites, and then had to postpone, because the monks around
me besieged me so with eager questions: What is this curious thing? What is it
for? Is it a handkerchief?—saddle blanket?—part of a shirt? What is it made of?
How thin it is, and how dainty and frail; and how it rattles. Will it wear, do
you think, and won't the rain injure it? Is it writing that appears on it, or
is it only ornamentation? They suspected it was writing, because those among
them who knew how to read Latin and had a smattering of Greek, recognized some
of the letters, but they could make nothing out of the result as a whole. I put
my information in the simplest form I could: “It is a public journal; I will
explain what that is, another time. It is not cloth, it is made of paper; some
time I will explain what paper is. The lines on it are reading matter; and not
written by hand, but printed; by and by I will explain what printing is. A
thousand of these sheets have been made, all exactly like this, in every minute
detail—they can't be told apart.” Then they all broke out with exclamations of
surprise and admiration:
“A thousand!
Verily a mighty work—a year's work for many men.”
“No—merely a
day's work for a man and a boy.”
They crossed
themselves, and whiffed out a protective prayer or two.
“Ah-h—a miracle,
a wonder! Dark work of enchantment.”
I let it go at
that. Then I read in a low voice, to as many as could crowd their shaven heads
within hearing distance, part of the account of the miracle of the restoration
of the well, and was accompanied by astonished and reverent ejaculations all
through: “Ah-h-h!” “How true!” “Amazing, amazing!” “These be the very haps as
they happened, in marvelous exactness!” And might they take this strange thing
in their hands, and feel of it and examine it?—they would be very careful. Yes.
So they took it, handling it as cautiously and devoutly as if it had been some
holy thing come from some supernatural region; and gently felt of its texture,
caressed its pleasant smooth surface with lingering touch, and scanned the
mysterious characters with fascinated eyes. These grouped bent heads, these
charmed faces, these speaking eyes—how beautiful to me! For was not this my
darling, and was not all this mute wonder and interest and homage a most
eloquent tribute and unforced compliment to it? I knew, then, how a mother
feels when women, whether strangers or friends, take her new baby, and close
themselves about it with one eager impulse, and bend their heads over it in a
tranced adoration that makes all the rest of the universe vanish out of their
consciousness and be as if it were not, for that time. I knew how she feels,
and that there is no other satisfied ambition, whether of king, conqueror, or
poet, that ever reaches half-way to that serene far summit or yields half so
divine a contentment.
During all the
rest of the seance my paper traveled from group to group all up and down and
about that huge hall, and my happy eye was upon it always, and I sat
motionless, steeped in satisfaction, drunk with enjoyment. Yes, this was
heaven; I was tasting it once, if I might never taste it more.
Chapter XXVII.
THE YANKEE AND
THE KING TRAVEL INCOGNITO
ABOUT bedtime I
took the king to my private quarters to cut his hair and help him get the hang
of the lowly raiment he was to wear. The high classes wore their hair banged
across the forehead but hanging to the shoulders the rest of the way around,
whereas the lowest ranks of commoners were banged fore and aft both; the slaves
were bangless, and allowed their hair free growth. So I inverted a bowl over
his head and cut away all the locks that hung below it. I also trimmed his
whiskers and mustache until they were only about a half-inch long; and tried to
do it inartistically, and succeeded. It was a villainous disfigurement. When he
got his lubberly sandals on, and his long robe of coarse brown linen cloth,
which hung straight from his neck to his ankle-bones, he was no longer the
comeliest man in his kingdom, but one of the unhandsomest and most commonplace
and unattractive. We were dressed and barbered alike, and could pass for small
farmers, or farm bailiffs, or shepherds, or carters; yes, or for village
artisans, if we chose, our costume being in effect universal among the poor,
because of its strength and cheapness. I don't mean that it was really cheap to
a very poor person, but I do mean that it was the cheapest material there was
for male attire—manufactured material, you understand.
We slipped away
an hour before dawn, and by broad sun-up had made eight or ten miles, and were
in the midst of a sparsely settled country. I had a pretty heavy knapsack; it
was laden with provisions—provisions for the king to taper down on, till he
could take to the coarse fare of the country without damage.
I found a
comfortable seat for the king by the roadside, and then gave him a morsel or
two to stay his stomach with. Then I said I would find some water for him, and
strolled away. Part of my project was to get out of sight and sit down and rest
a little myself. It had always been my custom to stand when in his presence;
even at the council board, except upon those rare occasions when the sitting
was a very long one, extending over hours; then I had a trifling little
backless thing which was like a reversed culvert and was as comfortable as the
toothache. I didn't want to break him in suddenly, but do it by degrees. We
should have to sit together now when in company, or people would notice; but it
would not be good politics for me to be playing equality with him when there
was no necessity for it.
I found the water
some three hundred yards away, and had been resting about twenty minutes, when
I heard voices. That is all right, I thought—peasants going to work; nobody
else likely to be stirring this early. But the next moment these comers jingled
into sight around a turn of the road—smartly clad people of quality, with
luggage-mules and servants in their train! I was off like a shot, through the
bushes, by the shortest cut. For a while it did seem that these people would
pass the king before I could get to him; but desperation gives you wings, you
know, and I canted my body forward, inflated my breast, and held my breath and
flew. I arrived. And in plenty good enough time, too.
“Pardon, my king,
but it's no time for ceremony—jump! Jump to your feet—some quality are coming!”
“Is that a
marvel? Let them come.”
“But my liege!
You must not be seen sitting. Rise!—and stand in humble posture while they
pass. You are a peasant, you know.”
“True—I had
forgot it, so lost was I in planning of a huge war with Gaul”—he was up by this
time, but a farm could have got up quicker, if there was any kind of a boom in
real estate—“and right-so a thought came randoming overthwart this majestic
dream the which—”
“A humbler
attitude, my lord the king—and quick! Duck your head!—more!—still more!—droop
it!”
He did his honest
best, but lord, it was no great things. He looked as humble as the leaning
tower at Pisa. It is the most you could say of it. Indeed, it was such a
thundering poor success that it raised wondering scowls all along the line, and
a gorgeous flunkey at the tail end of it raised his whip; but I jumped in time
and was under it when it fell; and under cover of the volley of coarse laughter
which followed, I spoke up sharply and warned the king to take no notice. He
mastered himself for the moment, but it was a sore tax; he wanted to eat up the
procession. I said:
“It would end our
adventures at the very start; and we, being without weapons, could do nothing
with that armed gang. If we are going to succeed in our emprise, we must not
only look the peasant but act the peasant.”
“It is wisdom;
none can gainsay it. Let us go on, Sir Boss. I will take note and learn, and do
the best I may.”
He kept his word.
He did the best he could, but I've seen better. If you have ever seen an
active, heedless, enterprising child going diligently out of one mischief and
into another all day long, and an anxious mother at its heels all the while,
and just saving it by a hair from drowning itself or breaking its neck with
each new experiment, you've seen the king and me.
If I could have
foreseen what the thing was going to be like, I should have said, No, if
anybody wants to make his living exhibiting a king as a peasant, let him take
the layout; I can do better with a menagerie, and last longer. And yet, during
the first three days I never allowed him to enter a hut or other dwelling. If
he could pass muster anywhere during his early novitiate it would be in small
inns and on the road; so to these places we confined ourselves. Yes, he certainly
did the best he could, but what of that? He didn't improve a bit that I could
see.
He was always
frightening me, always breaking out with fresh astonishers, in new and
unexpected places. Toward evening on the second day, what does he do but
blandly fetch out a dirk from inside his robe!
“Great guns, my
liege, where did you get that?”
“From a smuggler
at the inn, yester eve.”
“What in the
world possessed you to buy it?”
“We have escaped
divers dangers by wit—thy wit—but I have bethought me that it were but prudence
if I bore a weapon, too. Thine might fail thee in some pinch.”
“But people of
our condition are not allowed to carry arms. What would a lord say—yes, or any
other person of whatever condition—if he caught an upstart peasant with a
dagger on his person?”
It was a lucky
thing for us that nobody came along just then. I persuaded him to throw the
dirk away; and it was as easy as persuading a child to give up some bright
fresh new way of killing itself. We walked along, silent and thinking. Finally
the king said:
“When ye know
that I meditate a thing inconvenient, or that hath a peril in it, why do you
not warn me to cease from that project?”
It was a
startling question, and a puzzler. I didn't quite know how to take hold of it,
or what to say, and so, of course, I ended by saying the natural thing:
“But, sire, how
can I know what your thoughts are?”
The king stopped
dead in his tracks, and stared at me.
“I believed thou
wert greater than Merlin; and truly in magic thou art. But prophecy is greater
than magic. Merlin is a prophet.”
I saw I had made
a blunder. I must get back my lost ground. After a deep reflection and careful
planning, I said:
“Sire, I have
been misunderstood. I will explain. There are two kinds of prophecy. One is the
gift to foretell things that are but a little way off, the other is the gift to
foretell things that are whole ages and centuries away. Which is the mightier
gift, do you think?”
“Oh, the last,
most surely!”
“True. Does
Merlin possess it?”
“Partly, yes. He
foretold mysteries about my birth and future kingship that were twenty years
away.”
“Has he ever gone
beyond that?”
“He would not
claim more, I think.”
“It is probably
his limit. All prophets have their limit. The limit of some of the great
prophets has been a hundred years.”
“These are few, I
ween.”
“There have been
two still greater ones, whose limit was four hundred and six hundred years, and
one whose limit compassed even seven hundred and twenty.”
“Gramercy, it is
marvelous!”
“But what are
these in comparison with me? They are nothing.”
“What? Canst thou
truly look beyond even so vast a stretch of time as—”
“Seven hundred
years? My liege, as clear as the vision of an eagle does my prophetic eye
penetrate and lay bare the future of this world for nearly thirteen centuries
and a half!”
My land, you
should have seen the king's eyes spread slowly open, and lift the earth's
entire atmosphere as much as an inch! That settled Brer Merlin. One never had
any occasion to prove his facts, with these people; all he had to do was to
state them. It never occurred to anybody to doubt the statement.
“Now, then,” I
continued, “I COULD work both kinds of prophecy—the long and the short—if I
chose to take the trouble to keep in practice; but I seldom exercise any but
the long kind, because the other is beneath my dignity. It is properer to
Merlin's sort—stump-tail prophets, as we call them in the profession. Of
course, I whet up now and then and flirt out a minor prophecy, but not
often—hardly ever, in fact. You will remember that there was great talk, when
you reached the Valley of Holiness, about my having prophesied your coming and
the very hour of your arrival, two or three days beforehand.”
“Indeed, yes, I
mind it now.”
“Well, I could
have done it as much as forty times easier, and piled on a thousand times more
detail into the bargain, if it had been five hundred years away instead of two
or three days.”
“How amazing that
it should be so!”
“Yes, a genuine
expert can always foretell a thing that is five hundred years away easier than
he can a thing that's only five hundred seconds off.”
“And yet in
reason it should clearly be the other way; it should be five hundred times as
easy to foretell the last as the first, for, indeed, it is so close by that one
uninspired might almost see it. In truth, the law of prophecy doth contradict
the likelihoods, most strangely making the difficult easy, and the easy
difficult.”
It was a wise
head. A peasant's cap was no safe disguise for it; you could know it for a
king's under a diving-bell, if you could hear it work its intellect.
I had a new trade
now, and plenty of business in it. The king was as hungry to find out
everything that was going to happen during the next thirteen centuries as if he
were expecting to live in them. From that time out, I prophesied myself
bald-headed trying to supply the demand. I have done some indiscreet things in
my day, but this thing of playing myself for a prophet was the worst. Still, it
had its ameliorations. A prophet doesn't have to have any brains. They are good
to have, of course, for the ordinary exigencies of life, but they are no use in
professional work. It is the restfulest vocation there is. When the spirit of
prophecy comes upon you, you merely cake your intellect and lay it off in a
cool place for a rest, and unship your jaw and leave it alone; it will work
itself: the result is prophecy.
Every day a
knight-errant or so came along, and the sight of them fired the king's martial
spirit every time. He would have forgotten himself, sure, and said something to
them in a style a suspicious shade or so above his ostensible degree, and so I
always got him well out of the road in time. Then he would stand and look with
all his eyes; and a proud light would flash from them, and his nostrils would
inflate like a war-horse's, and I knew he was longing for a brush with them.
But about noon of the third day I had stopped in the road to take a precaution
which had been suggested by the whip-stroke that had fallen to my share two
days before; a precaution which I had afterward decided to leave untaken, I was
so loath to institute it; but now I had just had a fresh reminder: while
striding heedlessly along, with jaw spread and intellect at rest, for I was
prophesying, I stubbed my toe and fell sprawling. I was so pale I couldn't
think for a moment; then I got softly and carefully up and unstrapped my
knapsack. I had that dynamite bomb in it, done up in wool in a box. It was a
good thing to have along; the time would come when I could do a valuable
miracle with it, maybe, but it was a nervous thing to have about me, and I
didn't like to ask the king to carry it. Yet I must either throw it away or
think up some safe way to get along with its society. I got it out and slipped
it into my scrip, and just then here came a couple of knights. The king stood,
stately as a statue, gazing toward them—had forgotten himself again, of
course—and before I could get a word of warning out, it was time for him to
skip, and well that he did it, too. He supposed they would turn aside. Turn
aside to avoid trampling peasant dirt under foot? When had he ever turned aside
himself—or ever had the chance to do it, if a peasant saw him or any other
noble knight in time to judiciously save him the trouble? The knights paid no
attention to the king at all; it was his place to look out himself, and if he
hadn't skipped he would have been placidly ridden down, and laughed at besides.
The king was in a
flaming fury, and launched out his challenge and epithets with a most royal
vigor. The knights were some little distance by now. They halted, greatly
surprised, and turned in their saddles and looked back, as if wondering if it
might be worth while to bother with such scum as we. Then they wheeled and
started for us. Not a moment must be lost. I started for THEM. I passed them at
a rattling gait, and as I went by I flung out a hair-lifting soulscorching
thirteen-jointed insult which made the king's effort poor and cheap by
comparison. I got it out of the nineteenth century where they know how. They
had such headway that they were nearly to the king before they could check up;
then, frantic with rage, they stood up their horses on their hind hoofs and whirled
them around, and the next moment here they came, breast to breast. I was
seventy yards off, then, and scrambling up a great bowlder at the roadside.
When they were within thirty yards of me they let their long lances droop to a
level, depressed their mailed heads, and so, with their horse-hair plumes
streaming straight out behind, most gallant to see, this lightning express came
tearing for me! When they were within fifteen yards, I sent that bomb with a
sure aim, and it struck the ground just under the horses' noses.
Yes, it was a
neat thing, very neat and pretty to see. It resembled a steamboat explosion on
the Mississippi; and during the next fifteen minutes we stood under a steady
drizzle of microscopic fragments of knights and hardware and horse-flesh. I say
we, for the king joined the audience, of course, as soon as he had got his
breath again. There was a hole there which would afford steady work for all the
people in that region for some years to come—in trying to explain it, I mean;
as for filling it up, that service would be comparatively prompt, and would
fall to the lot of a select few—peasants of that seignory; and they wouldn't
get anything for it, either.
But I explained
it to the king myself. I said it was done with a dynamite bomb, This
information did him no damage, because it left him as intelligent as he was
before. However, it was a noble miracle, in his eyes, and was another settler
for Merlin. I thought it well enough to explain that this was a miracle of so
rare a sort that it couldn't be done except when the atmospheric conditions
were just right. Otherwise he would be encoring it every time we had a good
subject, and that would be inconvenient, because I hadn't any more bombs along.
Chapter XXVIII.
DRILLING THE KING
ON the morning of
the fourth day, when it was just sunrise, and we had been tramping an hour in
the chill dawn, I came to a resolution: the king MUST be drilled; things could
not go on so, he must be taken in hand and deliberately and conscientiously
drilled, or we couldn't ever venture to enter a dwelling; the very cats would
know this masquerader for a humbug and no peasant. So I called a halt and said:
“Sire, as between
clothes and countenance, you are all right, there is no discrepancy; but as
between your clothes and your bearing, you are all wrong, there is a most
noticeable discrepancy. Your soldierly stride, your lordly port—these will not
do. You stand too straight, your looks are too high, too confident. The cares
of a kingdom do not stoop the shoulders, they do not droop the chin, they do
not depress the high level of the eye-glance, they do not put doubt and fear in
the heart and hang out the signs of them in slouching body and unsure step. It
is the sordid cares of the lowly born that do these things. You must learn the
trick; you must imitate the trademarks of poverty, misery, oppression, insult,
and the other several and common inhumanities that sap the manliness out of a
man and make him a loyal and proper and approved subject and a satisfaction to
his masters, or the very infants will know you for better than your disguise,
and we shall go to pieces at the first hut we stop at. Pray try to walk like
this.”
The king took
careful note, and then tried an imitation.
“Pretty
fair—pretty fair. Chin a little lower, please—there, very good. Eyes too high;
pray don't look at the horizon, look at the ground, ten steps in front of you.
Ah—that is better, that is very good. Wait, please; you betray too much vigor,
too much decision; you want more of a shamble. Look at me, please—this is what
I mean...Now you are getting it; that is the idea—at least, it sort of
approaches it...Yes, that is pretty fair. BUT! There is a great big something
wanting, I don't quite know what it is. Please walk thirty yards, so that I can
get a perspective on the thing...Now, then—your head's right, speed's right,
shoulders right, eyes right, chin right, gait, carriage, general style
right—everything's right! And yet the fact remains, the aggregate's wrong. The
account don't balance. Do it again, please...NOW I think I begin to see what it
is. Yes, I've struck it. You see, the genuine spiritlessness is wanting; that's
what's the trouble. It's all AMATUEUR—mechanical details all right, almost to a
hair; everything about the delusion perfect, except that it don't delude.”
“What, then, must
one do, to prevail?”
“Let me think...I
can't seem to quite get at it. In fact, there isn't anything that can right the
matter but practice. This is a good place for it: roots and stony ground to
break up your stately gait, a region not liable to interruption, only one field
and one hut in sight, and they so far away that nobody could see us from there.
It will be well to move a little off the road and put in the whole day drilling
you, sire.”
After the drill
had gone on a little while, I said:
“Now, sire,
imagine that we are at the door of the hut yonder, and the family are before
us. Proceed, please—accost the head of the house.”
The king
unconsciously straightened up like a monument, and said, with frozen austerity:
“Varlet, bring a
seat; and serve to me what cheer ye have.”
“Ah, your grace,
that is not well done.”
“In what lacketh
it?”
“These people do
not call EACH OTHER varlets.”
“Nay, is that
true?”
“Yes; only those
above them call them so.”
“Then must I try
again. I will call him villein.”
“No-no; for he
may be a freeman.”
“Ah—so. Then
peradventure I should call him goodman.”
“That would
answer, your grace, but it would be still better if you said friend, or brother.”
“Brother!—to dirt
like that?”
“Ah, but WE are
pretending to be dirt like that, too.”
“It is even true.
I will say it. Brother, bring a seat, and thereto what cheer ye have, withal.
Now 'tis right.”
“Not quite, not
wholly right. You have asked for one, not US—for one, not both; food for one, a
seat for one.”
The king looked
puzzled—he wasn't a very heavy weight, intellectually. His head was an
hour-glass; it could stow an idea, but it had to do it a grain at a time, not
the whole idea at once.
“Would YOU have a
seat also—and sit?”
“If I did not
sit, the man would perceive that we were only pretending to be equals—and
playing the deception pretty poorly, too.”
“It is well and
truly said! How wonderful is truth, come it in whatsoever unexpected form it
may! Yes, he must bring out seats and food for both, and in serving us present
not ewer and napkin with more show of respect to the one than to the other.”
“And there is
even yet a detail that needs correcting. He must bring nothing outside; we will
go in—in among the dirt, and possibly other repulsive things,—and take the food
with the household, and after the fashion of the house, and all on equal terms,
except the man be of the serf class; and finally, there will be no ewer and no
napkin, whether he be serf or free. Please walk again, my liege. There—it is
better—it is the best yet; but not perfect. The shoulders have known no
ignobler burden than iron mail, and they will not stoop.”
“Give me, then,
the bag. I will learn the spirit that goeth with burdens that have not honor.
It is the spirit that stoopeth the shoulders, I ween, and not the weight; for
armor is heavy, yet it is a proud burden, and a man standeth straight in
it...Nay, but me no buts, offer me no objections. I will have the thing. Strap
it upon my back.”
He was complete
now with that knapsack on, and looked as little like a king as any man I had
ever seen. But it was an obstinate pair of shoulders; they could not seem to
learn the trick of stooping with any sort of deceptive naturalness. The drill
went on, I prompting and correcting:
“Now, make
believe you are in debt, and eaten up by relentless creditors; you are out of
work—which is horse-shoeing, let us say—and can get none; and your wife is
sick, your children are crying because they are hungry—”
And so on, and so
on. I drilled him as representing in turn all sorts of people out of luck and
suffering dire privations and misfortunes. But lord, it was only just words,
words—they meant nothing in the world to him, I might just as well have
whistled. Words realize nothing, vivify nothing to you, unless you have
suffered in your own person the thing which the words try to describe. There
are wise people who talk ever so knowingly and complacently about “the working
classes,” and satisfy themselves that a day's hard intellectual work is very
much harder than a day's hard manual toil, and is righteously entitled to much
bigger pay. Why, they really think that, you know, because they know all about
the one, but haven't tried the other. But I know all about both; and so far as
I am concerned, there isn't money enough in the universe to hire me to swing a
pickaxe thirty days, but I will do the hardest kind of intellectual work for
just as near nothing as you can cipher it down—and I will be satisfied, too.
Intellectual
“work” is misnamed; it is a pleasure, a dissipation, and is its own highest
reward. The poorest paid architect, engineer, general, author, sculptor,
painter, lecturer, advocate, legislator, actor, preacher, singer is
constructively in heaven when he is at work; and as for the musician with the
fiddle-bow in his hand who sits in the midst of a great orchestra with the
ebbing and flowing tides of divine sound washing over him—why, certainly, he is
at work, if you wish to call it that, but lord, it's a sarcasm just the same.
The law of work does seem utterly unfair—but there it is, and nothing can
change it: the higher the pay in enjoyment the worker gets out of it, the
higher shall be his pay in cash, also. And it's also the very law of those transparent
swindles, transmissible nobility and kingship.
Chapter XXIX.
THE SMALLPOX HUT
WHEN we arrived
at that hut at mid-afternoon, we saw no signs of life about it. The field near
by had been denuded of its crop some time before, and had a skinned look, so
exhaustively had it been harvested and gleaned. Fences, sheds, everything had a
ruined look, and were eloquent of poverty. No animal was around anywhere, no
living thing in sight. The stillness was awful, it was like the stillness of
death. The cabin was a one-story one, whose thatch was black with age, and
ragged from lack of repair.
The door stood a
trifle ajar. We approached it stealthily—on tiptoe and at half-breath—for that
is the way one's feeling makes him do, at such a time. The king knocked. We
waited. No answer. Knocked again. No answer. I pushed the door softly open and
looked in. I made out some dim forms, and a woman started up from the ground
and stared at me, as one does who is wakened from sleep. Presently she found
her voice:
“Have mercy!” she
pleaded. “All is taken, nothing is left.”
“I have not come
to take anything, poor woman.”
“You are not a
priest?”
“No.”
“Nor come not
from the lord of the manor?”
“No, I am a
stranger.”
“Oh, then, for
the fear of God, who visits with misery and death such as be harmless, tarry
not here, but fly! This place is under his curse—and his Church's.”
“Let me come in
and help you—you are sick and in trouble.”
I was better used
to the dim light now. I could see her hollow eyes fixed upon me. I could see
how emaciated she was.
“I tell you the
place is under the Church's ban. Save yourself—and go, before some straggler
see thee here, and report it.”
“Give yourself no
trouble about me; I don't care anything for the Church's curse. Let me help
you.”
“Now all good
spirits—if there be any such—bless thee for that word. Would God I had a sup of
water!—but hold, hold, forget I said it, and fly; for there is that here that
even he that feareth not the Church must fear: this disease whereof we die.
Leave us, thou brave, good stranger, and take with thee such whole and sincere
blessing as them that be accursed can give.”
But before this I
had picked up a wooden bowl and was rushing past the king on my way to the
brook. It was ten yards away. When I got back and entered, the king was within,
and was opening the shutter that closed the window-hole, to let in air and
light. The place was full of a foul stench. I put the bowl to the woman's lips,
and as she gripped it with her eager talons the shutter came open and a strong light
flooded her face. Smallpox!
I sprang to the
king, and said in his ear:
“Out of the door
on the instant, sire! the woman is dying of that disease that wasted the skirts
of Camelot two years ago.”
He did not budge.
“Of a truth I
shall remain—and likewise help.”
I whispered
again:
“King, it must
not be. You must go.”
“Ye mean well,
and ye speak not unwisely. But it were shame that a king should know fear, and
shame that belted knight should withhold his hand where be such as need succor.
Peace, I will not go. It is you who must go. The Church's ban is not upon me,
but it forbiddeth you to be here, and she will deal with you with a heavy hand
an word come to her of your trespass.”
It was a
desperate place for him to be in, and might cost him his life, but it was no
use to argue with him. If he considered his knightly honor at stake here, that
was the end of argument; he would stay, and nothing could prevent it; I was
aware of that. And so I dropped the subject. The woman spoke:
“Fair sir, of
your kindness will ye climb the ladder there, and bring me news of what ye
find? Be not afraid to report, for times can come when even a mother's heart is
past breaking—being already broke.”
“Abide,” said the
king, “and give the woman to eat. I will go.” And he put down the knapsack.
I turned to
start, but the king had already started. He halted, and looked down upon a man
who lay in a dim light, and had not noticed us thus far, or spoken.
“Is it your
husband?” the king asked.
“Yes.”
“Is he asleep?”
“God be thanked
for that one charity, yes—these three hours. Where shall I pay to the full, my
gratitude! for my heart is bursting with it for that sleep he sleepeth now.”
I said:
“We will be
careful. We will not wake him.”
“Ah, no, that ye
will not, for he is dead.”
“Dead?”
“Yes, what
triumph it is to know it! None can harm him, none insult him more. He is in
heaven now, and happy; or if not there, he bides in hell and is content; for in
that place he will find neither abbot nor yet bishop. We were boy and girl
together; we were man and wife these five and twenty years, and never separated
till this day. Think how long that is to love and suffer together. This morning
was he out of his mind, and in his fancy we were boy and girl again and
wandering in the happy fields; and so in that innocent glad converse wandered
he far and farther, still lightly gossiping, and entered into those other
fields we know not of, and was shut away from mortal sight. And so there was no
parting, for in his fancy I went with him; he knew not but I went with him, my
hand in his—my young soft hand, not this withered claw. Ah, yes, to go, and
know it not; to separate and know it not; how could one go peace—fuller than
that? It was his reward for a cruel life patiently borne.”
There was a
slight noise from the direction of the dim corner where the ladder was. It was
the king descending. I could see that he was bearing something in one arm, and
assisting himself with the other. He came forward into the light; upon his
breast lay a slender girl of fifteen. She was but half conscious; she was dying
of smallpox. Here was heroism at its last and loftiest possibility, its utmost
summit; this was challenging death in the open field unarmed, with all the odds
against the challenger, no reward set upon the contest, and no admiring world
in silks and cloth of gold to gaze and applaud; and yet the king's bearing was
as serenely brave as it had always been in those cheaper contests where knight
meets knight in equal fight and clothed in protecting steel. He was great now;
sublimely great. The rude statues of his ancestors in his palace should have an
addition—I would see to that; and it would not be a mailed king killing a giant
or a dragon, like the rest, it would be a king in commoner's garb bearing death
in his arms that a peasant mother might look her last upon her child and be
comforted.
He laid the girl
down by her mother, who poured out endearments and caresses from an overflowing
heart, and one could detect a flickering faint light of response in the child's
eyes, but that was all. The mother hung over her, kissing her, petting her, and
imploring her to speak, but the lips only moved and no sound came. I snatched
my liquor flask from my knapsack, but the woman forbade me, and said:
“No—she does not
suffer; it is better so. It might bring her back to life. None that be so good
and kind as ye are would do her that cruel hurt. For look you—what is left to
live for? Her brothers are gone, her father is gone, her mother goeth, the
Church's curse is upon her, and none may shelter or befriend her even though
she lay perishing in the road. She is desolate. I have not asked you, good
heart, if her sister be still on live, here overhead; I had no need; ye had
gone back, else, and not left the poor thing forsaken—”
“She lieth at
peace,” interrupted the king, in a subdued voice.
“I would not
change it. How rich is this day in happiness! Ah, my Annis, thou shalt join thy
sister soon—thou'rt on thy way, and these be merciful friends that will not
hinder.”
And so she fell
to murmuring and cooing over the girl again, and softly stroking her face and
hair, and kissing her and calling her by endearing names; but there was
scarcely sign of response now in the glazing eyes. I saw tears well from the
king's eyes, and trickle down his face. The woman noticed them, too, and said:
“Ah, I know that
sign: thou'st a wife at home, poor soul, and you and she have gone hungry to
bed, many's the time, that the little ones might have your crust; you know what
poverty is, and the daily insults of your betters, and the heavy hand of the
Church and the king.”
The king winced
under this accidental home-shot, but kept still; he was learning his part; and
he was playing it well, too, for a pretty dull beginner. I struck up a diversion.
I offered the woman food and liquor, but she refused both. She would allow
nothing to come between her and the release of death. Then I slipped away and
brought the dead child from aloft, and laid it by her. This broke her down
again, and there was another scene that was full of heartbreak. By and by I
made another diversion, and beguiled her to sketch her story.
“Ye know it well
yourselves, having suffered it—for truly none of our condition in Britain
escape it. It is the old, weary tale. We fought and struggled and succeeded;
meaning by success, that we lived and did not die; more than that is not to be
claimed. No troubles came that we could not outlive, till this year brought
them; then came they all at once, as one might say, and overwhelmed us. Years
ago the lord of the manor planted certain fruit trees on our farm; in the best
part of it, too—a grievous wrong and shame—”
“But it was his
right,” interrupted the king.
“None denieth
that, indeed; an the law mean anything, what is the lord's is his, and what is
mine is his also. Our farm was ours by lease, therefore 'twas likewise his, to
do with it as he would. Some little time ago, three of those trees were found
hewn down. Our three grown sons ran frightened to report the crime. Well, in
his lordship's dungeon there they lie, who saith there shall they lie and rot
till they confess. They have naught to confess, being innocent, wherefore there
will they remain until they die. Ye know that right well, I ween. Think how
this left us; a man, a woman and two children, to gather a crop that was
planted by so much greater force, yes, and protect it night and day from
pigeons and prowling animals that be sacred and must not be hurt by any of our
sort. When my lord's crop was nearly ready for the harvest, so also was ours;
when his bell rang to call us to his fields to harvest his crop for nothing, he
would not allow that I and my two girls should count for our three captive
sons, but for only two of them; so, for the lacking one were we daily fined.
All this time our own crop was perishing through neglect; and so both the
priest and his lordship fined us because their shares of it were suffering
through damage. In the end the fines ate up our crop—and they took it all; they
took it all and made us harvest it for them, without pay or food, and we
starving. Then the worst came when I, being out of my mind with hunger and loss
of my boys, and grief to see my husband and my little maids in rags and misery
and despair, uttered a deep blasphemy—oh! a thousand of them!—against the
Church and the Church's ways. It was ten days ago. I had fallen sick with this
disease, and it was to the priest I said the words, for he was come to chide me
for lack of due humility under the chastening hand of God. He carried my
trespass to his betters; I was stubborn; wherefore, presently upon my head and
upon all heads that were dear to me, fell the curse of Rome.
“Since that day
we are avoided, shunned with horror. None has come near this hut to know
whether we live or not. The rest of us were taken down. Then I roused me and
got up, as wife and mother will. It was little they could have eaten in any
case; it was less than little they had to eat. But there was water, and I gave
them that. How they craved it! and how they blessed it! But the end came
yesterday; my strength broke down. Yesterday was the last time I ever saw my
husband and this youngest child alive. I have lain here all these hours—these
ages, ye may say—listening, listening for any sound up there that—”
She gave a sharp
quick glance at her eldest daughter, then cried out, “Oh, my darling!” and
feebly gathered the stiffening form to her sheltering arms. She had recognized
the death-rattle.
Chapter XXX.
THE TRAGEDY OF
THE MANOR-HOUSE
AT midnight all
was over, and we sat in the presence of four corpses. We covered them with such
rags as we could find, and started away, fastening the door behind us. Their
home must be these people's grave, for they could not have Christian burial, or
be admitted to consecrated ground. They were as dogs, wild beasts, lepers, and
no soul that valued its hope of eternal life would throw it away by meddling in
any sort with these rebuked and smitten outcasts.
We had not moved
four steps when I caught a sound as of footsteps upon gravel. My heart flew to
my throat. We must not be seen coming from that house. I plucked at the king's
robe and we drew back and took shelter behind the corner of the cabin.
“Now we are
safe,” I said, “but it was a close call—so to speak. If the night had been
lighter he might have seen us, no doubt, he seemed to be so near.”
“Mayhap it is but
a beast and not a man at all.”
“True. But man or
beast, it will be wise to stay here a minute and let it get by and out of the
way.”
“Hark! It cometh
hither.”
True again. The
step was coming toward us—straight toward the hut. It must be a beast, then,
and we might as well have saved our trepidation. I was going to step out, but
the king laid his hand upon my arm. There was a moment of silence, then we
heard a soft knock on the cabin door. It made me shiver. Presently the knock
was repeated, and then we heard these words in a guarded voice:
“Mother! Father!
Open—we have got free, and we bring news to pale your cheeks but glad your
hearts; and we may not tarry, but must fly! And—but they answer not. Mother!
father!—”
I drew the king
toward the other end of the hut and whispered:
“Come—now we can
get to the road.”
The king
hesitated, was going to demur; but just then we heard the door give way, and
knew that those desolate men were in the presence of their dead.
“Come, my liege!
in a moment they will strike a light, and then will follow that which it would
break your heart to hear.”
He did not
hesitate this time. The moment we were in the road I ran; and after a moment he
threw dignity aside and followed. I did not want to think of what was happening
in the hut—I couldn't bear it; I wanted to drive it out of my mind; so I struck
into the first subject that lay under that one in my mind:
“I have had the disease
those people died of, and so have nothing to fear; but if you have not had it
also—”
He broke in upon
me to say he was in trouble, and it was his conscience that was troubling him:
“These young men
have got free, they say—but HOW? It is not likely that their lord hath set them
free.”
“Oh, no, I make
no doubt they escaped.”
“That is my
trouble; I have a fear that this is so, and your suspicion doth confirm it, you
having the same fear.
“I should not
call it by that name though. I do suspect that they escaped, but if they did, I
am not sorry, certainly.”
“I am not sorry,
I THINK—but—”
“What is it? What
is there for one to be troubled about?”
“IF they did
escape, then are we bound in duty to lay hands upon them and deliver them again
to their lord; for it is not seemly that one of his quality should suffer a so
insolent and high-handed outrage from persons of their base degree.”
There it was
again. He could see only one side of it. He was born so, educated so, his veins
were full of ancestral blood that was rotten with this sort of unconscious
brutality, brought down by inheritance from a long procession of hearts that
had each done its share toward poisoning the stream. To imprison these men
without proof, and starve their kindred, was no harm, for they were merely
peasants and subject to the will and pleasure of their lord, no matter what
fearful form it might take; but for these men to break out of unjust captivity
was insult and outrage, and a thing not to be countenanced by any conscientious
person who knew his duty to his sacred caste.
I worked more
than half an hour before I got him to change the subject—and even then an
outside matter did it for me. This was a something which caught our eyes as we
struck the summit of a small hill—a red glow, a good way off.
“That's a fire,”
said I.
Fires interested
me considerably, because I was getting a good deal of an insurance business
started, and was also training some horses and building some steam
fire-engines, with an eye to a paid fire department by and by. The priests
opposed both my fire and life insurance, on the ground that it was an insolent
attempt to hinder the decrees of God; and if you pointed out that they did not
hinder the decrees in the least, but only modified the hard consequences of
them if you took out policies and had luck, they retorted that that was
gambling against the decrees of God, and was just as bad. So they managed to
damage those industries more or less, but I got even on my Accident business.
As a rule, a knight is a lummox, and some times even a labrick, and hence open
to pretty poor arguments when they come glibly from a superstition-monger, but
even HE could see the practical side of a thing once in a while; and so of late
you couldn't clean up a tournament and pile the result without finding one of
my accident-tickets in every helmet.
We stood there
awhile, in the thick darkness and stillness, looking toward the red blur in the
distance, and trying to make out the meaning of a far-away murmur that rose and
fell fitfully on the night. Sometimes it swelled up and for a moment seemed
less remote; but when we were hopefully expecting it to betray its cause and
nature, it dulled and sank again, carrying its mystery with it. We started down
the hill in its direction, and the winding road plunged us at once into almost
solid darkness—darkness that was packed and crammed in between two tall forest
walls. We groped along down for half a mile, perhaps, that murmur growing more
and more distinct all the time. the coming storm threatening more and more,
with now and then a little shiver of wind, a faint show of lightning, and dull
grumblings of distant thunder. I was in the lead. I ran against something—a
soft heavy something which gave, slightly, to the impulse of my weight; at the
same moment the lightning glared out, and within a foot of my face was the
writhing face of a man who was hanging from the limb of a tree! That is, it
seemed to be writhing, but it was not. It was a grewsome sight. Straightway
there was an earsplitting explosion of thunder, and the bottom of heaven fell
out; the rain poured down in a deluge. No matter, we must try to cut this man
down, on the chance that there might be life in him yet, mustn't we? The
lightning came quick and sharp now, and the place was alternately noonday and
midnight. One moment the man would be hanging before me in an intense light,
and the next he was blotted out again in the darkness. I told the king we must
cut him down. The king at once objected.
“If he hanged
himself, he was willing to lose him property to his lord; so let him be. If
others hanged him, belike they had the right—let him hang.”
“But—”
“But me no buts,
but even leave him as he is. And for yet another reason. When the lightning
cometh again—there, look abroad.”
Two others
hanging, within fifty yards of us!
“It is not
weather meet for doing useless courtesies unto dead folk. They are past
thanking you. Come—it is unprofitable to tarry here.”
There was reason
in what he said, so we moved on. Within the next mile we counted six more
hanging forms by the blaze of the lightning, and altogether it was a grisly
excursion. That murmur was a murmur no longer, it was a roar; a roar of men's
voices. A man came flying by now, dimly through the darkness, and other men
chasing him. They disappeared. Presently another case of the kind occurred, and
then another and another. Then a sudden turn of the road brought us in sight of
that fire—it was a large manorhouse, and little or nothing was left of it—and
everywhere men were flying and other men raging after them in pursuit.
I warned the king
that this was not a safe place for strangers. We would better get away from the
light, until matters should improve. We stepped back a little, and hid in the
edge of the wood. From this hiding-place we saw both men and women hunted by
the mob. The fearful work went on until nearly dawn. Then, the fire being out
and the storm spent, the voices and flying footsteps presently ceased, and
darkness and stillness reigned again.
We ventured out,
and hurried cautiously away; and although we were worn out and sleepy, we kept
on until we had put this place some miles behind us. Then we asked hospitality
at the hut of a charcoal burner, and got what was to be had. A woman was up and
about, but the man was still asleep, on a straw shake-down, on the clay floor.
The woman seemed uneasy until I explained that we were travelers and had lost
our way and been wandering in the woods all night. She became talkative, then,
and asked if we had heard of the terrible goings-on at the manor-house of
Abblasoure. Yes, we had heard of them, but what we wanted now was rest and
sleep. The king broke in:
“Sell us the
house and take yourselves away, for we be perilous company, being late come
from people that died of the Spotted Death.”
It was good of
him, but unnecessary. One of the commonest decorations of the nation was the
waffleiron face. I had early noticed that the woman and her husband were both
so decorated. She made us entirely welcome, and had no fears; and plainly she
was immensely impressed by the king's proposition; for, of course, it was a
good deal of an event in her life to run across a person of the king's humble
appearance who was ready to buy a man's house for the sake of a night's
lodging. It gave her a large respect for us, and she strained the lean
possibilities of her hovel to the utmost to make us comfortable.
We slept till far
into the afternoon, and then got up hungry enough to make cotter fare quite
palatable to the king, the more particularly as it was scant in quantity. And
also in variety; it consisted solely of onions, salt, and the national black
bread made out of horsefeed. The woman told us about the affair of the evening
before. At ten or eleven at night, when everybody was in bed, the manor-house
burst into flames. The country-side swarmed to the rescue, and the family were
saved, with one exception, the master. He did not appear. Everybody was frantic
over this loss, and two brave yeomen sacrificed their lives in ransacking the
burning house seeking that valuable personage. But after a while he was
found—what was left of him—which was his corpse. It was in a copse three
hundred yards away, bound, gagged, stabbed in a dozen places.
Who had done
this? Suspicion fell upon a humble family in the neighborhood who had been
lately treated with peculiar harshness by the baron; and from these people the
suspicion easily extended itself to their relatives and familiars. A suspicion
was enough; my lord's liveried retainers proclaimed an instant crusade against
these people, and were promptly joined by the community in general. The woman's
husband had been active with the mob, and had not returned home until nearly
dawn. He was gone now to find out what the general result had been. While we
were still talking he came back from his quest. His report was revolting
enough. Eighteen persons hanged or butchered, and two yeomen and thirteen
prisoners lost in the fire.
“And how many
prisoners were there altogether in the vaults?”
“Thirteen.”
“Then every one
of them was lost?”
“Yes, all.”
“But the people
arrived in time to save the family; how is it they could save none of the
prisoners?”
The man looked
puzzled, and said:
“Would one unlock
the vaults at such a time? Marry, some would have escaped.”
“Then you mean
that nobody DID unlock them?”
“None went near
them, either to lock or unlock. It standeth to reason that the bolts were fast;
wherefore it was only needful to establish a watch, so that if any broke the
bonds he might not escape, but be taken. None were taken.”
“Natheless, three
did escape,” said the king, “and ye will do well to publish it and set justice
upon their track, for these murthered the baron and fired the house.”
I was just
expecting he would come out with that. For a moment the man and his wife showed
an eager interest in this news and an impatience to go out and spread it; then
a sudden something else betrayed itself in their faces, and they began to ask
questions. I answered the questions myself, and narrowly watched the effects
produced. I was soon satisfied that the knowledge of who these three prisoners
were had somehow changed the atmosphere; that our hosts' continued eagerness to
go and spread the news was now only pretended and not real. The king did not
notice the change, and I was glad of that. I worked the conversation around
toward other details of the night's proceedings, and noted that these people
were relieved to have it take that direction.
The painful thing
observable about all this business was the alacrity with which this oppressed
community had turned their cruel hands against their own class in the interest
of the common oppressor. This man and woman seemed to feel that in a quarrel
between a person of their own class and his lord, it was the natural and proper
and rightful thing for that poor devil's whole caste to side with the master
and fight his battle for him, without ever stopping to inquire into the rights
or wrongs of the matter. This man had been out helping to hang his neighbors,
and had done his work with zeal, and yet was aware that there was nothing
against them but a mere suspicion, with nothing back of it describable as
evidence, still neither he nor his wife seemed to see anything horrible about
it.
This was
depressing—to a man with the dream of a republic in his head. It reminded me of
a time thirteen centuries away, when the “poor whites” of our South who were
always despised and frequently insulted by the slave-lords around them, and who
owed their base condition simply to the presence of slavery in their midst, were
yet pusillanimously ready to side with the slave-lords in all political moves
for the upholding and perpetuating of slavery, and did also finally shoulder
their muskets and pour out their lives in an effort to prevent the destruction
of that very institution which degraded them. And there was only one redeeming
feature connected with that pitiful piece of history; and that was, that
secretly the “poor white” did detest the slave-lord, and did feel his own
shame. That feeling was not brought to the surface, but the fact that it was
there and could have been brought out, under favoring circumstances, was
something—in fact, it was enough; for it showed that a man is at bottom a man,
after all, even if it doesn't show on the outside.
Well, as it
turned out, this charcoal burner was just the twin of the Southern “poor white”
of the far future. The king presently showed impatience, and said:
“An ye prattle
here all the day, justice will miscarry. Think ye the criminals will abide in
their father's house? They are fleeing, they are not waiting. You should look
to it that a party of horse be set upon their track.”
The woman paled
slightly, but quite perceptibly, and the man looked flustered and irresolute. I
said:
“Come, friend, I
will walk a little way with you, and explain which direction I think they would
try to take. If they were merely resisters of the gabelle or some kindred
absurdity I would try to protect them from capture; but when men murder a
person of high degree and likewise burn his house, that is another matter.”
The last remark
was for the king—to quiet him. On the road the man pulled his resolution
together, and began the march with a steady gait, but there was no eagerness in
it. By and by I said:
“What relation
were these men to you—cousins?”
He turned as
white as his layer of charcoal would let him, and stopped, trembling.
“Ah, my God, how
know ye that?”
“I didn't know
it; it was a chance guess.”
“Poor lads, they
are lost. And good lads they were, too.”
“Were you
actually going yonder to tell on them?”
He didn't quite
know how to take that; but he said, hesitatingly:
“Ye-s.”
“Then I think you
are a damned scoundrel!”
It made him as
glad as if I had called him an angel.
“Say the good
words again, brother! for surely ye mean that ye would not betray me an I
failed of my duty.”
“Duty? There is
no duty in the matter, except the duty to keep still and let those men get
away. They've done a righteous deed.”
He looked
pleased; pleased, and touched with apprehension at the same time. He looked up
and down the road to see that no one was coming, and then said in a cautious
voice:
“From what land
come you, brother, that you speak such perilous words, and seem not to be
afraid?”
“They are not
perilous words when spoken to one of my own caste, I take it. You would not
tell anybody I said them?”
“I? I would be
drawn asunder by wild horses first.”
“Well, then, let
me say my say. I have no fears of your repeating it. I think devil's work has
been done last night upon those innocent poor people. That old baron got only
what he deserved. If I had my way. all his kind should have the same luck.”
Fear and
depression vanished from the man's manner, and gratefulness and a brave
animation took their place:
“Even though you
be a spy, and your words a trap for my undoing, yet are they such refreshment
that to hear them again and others like to them, I would go to the gallows
happy, as having had one good feast at least in a starved life. And I will say
my say now, and ye may report it if ye be so minded. I helped to hang my
neighbors for that it were peril to my own life to show lack of zeal in the
master's cause; the others helped for none other reason. All rejoice today that
he is dead, but all do go about seemingly sorrowing, and shedding the
hypocrite's tear, for in that lies safety. I have said the words, I have said
the words! the only ones that have ever tasted good in my mouth, and the reward
of that taste is sufficient. Lead on, an ye will, be it even to the scaffold,
for I am ready.”
There it was, you
see. A man is a man, at bottom. Whole ages of abuse and oppression cannot crush
the manhood clear out of him. Whoever thinks it a mistake is himself mistaken.
Yes, there is plenty good enough material for a republic in the most degraded
people that ever existed—even the Russians; plenty of manhood in them—even in
the Germans—if one could but force it out of its timid and suspicious privacy,
to overthrow and trample in the mud any throne that ever was set up and any
nobility that ever supported it. We should see certain things yet, let us hope
and believe. First, a modified monarchy, till Arthur's days were done, then the
destruction of the throne, nobility abolished, every member of it bound out to
some useful trade, universal suffrage instituted, and the whole government
placed in the hands of the men and women of the nation there to remain. Yes,
there was no occasion to give up my dream yet a while.
Chapter XXXI.
MARCO
WE strolled along
in a sufficiently indolent fashion now, and talked. We must dispose of about
the amount of time it ought to take to go to the little hamlet of Abblasoure
and put justice on the track of those murderers and get back home again. And
meantime I had an auxiliary interest which had never paled yet, never lost its
novelty for me since I had been in Arthur's kingdom: the behavior—born of nice
and exact subdivisions of caste—of chance passers-by toward each other. Toward
the shaven monk who trudged along with his cowl tilted back and the sweat
washing down his fat jowls, the coal-burner was deeply reverent; to the
gentleman he was abject; with the small farmer and the free mechanic he was
cordial and gossipy; and when a slave passed by with a countenance respectfully
lowered, this chap's nose was in the air—he couldn't even see him. Well, there are
times when one would like to hang the whole human race and finish the farce.
Presently we
struck an incident. A small mob of half-naked boys and girls came tearing out
of the woods, scared and shrieking. The eldest among them were not more than
twelve or fourteen years old. They implored help, but they were so beside
themselves that we couldn't make out what the matter was. However, we plunged
into the wood, they skurrying in the lead, and the trouble was quickly
revealed: they had hanged a little fellow with a bark rope, and he was kicking
and struggling, in the process of choking to death. We rescued him, and fetched
him around. It was some more human nature; the admiring little folk imitating
their elders; they were playing mob, and had achieved a success which promised
to be a good deal more serious than they had bargained for.
It was not a dull
excursion for me. I managed to put in the time very well. I made various
acquaintanceships, and in my quality of stranger was able to ask as many
questions as I wanted to. A thing which naturally interested me, as a
statesman, was the matter of wages. I picked up what I could under that head
during the afternoon. A man who hasn't had much experience, and doesn't think,
is apt to measure a nation's prosperity or lack of prosperity by the mere size
of the prevailing wages; if the wages be high, the nation is prosperous; if
low, it isn't. Which is an error. It isn't what sum you get, it's how much you
can buy with it, that's the important thing; and it's that that tells whether
your wages are high in fact or only high in name. I could remember how it was
in the time of our great civil war in the nineteenth century. In the North a
carpenter got three dollars a day, gold valuation; in the South he got
fifty—payable in Confederate shinplasters worth a dollar a bushel. In the North
a suit of overalls cost three dollars—a day's wages; in the South it cost
seventyfive—which was two days' wages. Other things were in proportion.
Consequently, wages were twice as high in the North as they were in the South,
because the one wage had that much more purchasing power than the other had.
Yes, I made
various acquaintances in the hamlet and a thing that gratified me a good deal
was to find our new coins in circulation—lots of milrays, lots of mills, lots
of cents, a good many nickels, and some silver; all this among the artisans and
commonalty generally; yes, and even some gold—but that was at the bank, that is
to say, the goldsmith's. I dropped in there while Marco, the son of Marco, was
haggling with a shopkeeper over a quarter of a pound of salt, and asked for
change for a twenty-dollar gold piece. They furnished it—that is, after they
had chewed the piece, and rung it on the counter, and tried acid on it, and
asked me where I got it, and who I was, and where I was from, and where I was
going to, and when I expected to get there, and perhaps a couple of hundred
more questions; and when they got aground, I went right on and furnished them a
lot of information voluntarily; told them I owned a dog, and his name was
Watch, and my first wife was a Free Will Baptist, and her grandfather was a
Prohibitionist, and I used to know a man who had two thumbs on each hand and a
wart on the inside of his upper lip, and died in the hope of a glorious
resurrection, and so on, and so on, and so on, till even that hungry village
questioner began to look satisfied, and also a shade put out; but he had to
respect a man of my financial strength, and so he didn't give me any lip, but I
noticed he took it out of his underlings, which was a perfectly natural thing
to do. Yes, they changed my twenty, but I judged it strained the bank a little,
which was a thing to be expected, for it was the same as walking into a paltry
village store in the nineteenth century and requiring the boss of it to change
a two thousand-dollar bill for you all of a sudden. He could do it, maybe; but
at the same time he would wonder how a small farmer happened to be carrying so
much money around in his pocket; which was probably this goldsmith's thought,
too; for he followed me to the door and stood there gazing after me with
reverent admiration.
Our new money was
not only handsomely circulating, but its language was already glibly in use;
that is to say, people had dropped the names of the former moneys, and spoke of
things as being worth so many dollars or cents or mills or milrays now. It was very
gratifying. We were progressing, that was sure.
I got to know
several master mechanics, but about the most interesting fellow among them was
the blacksmith, Dowley. He was a live man and a brisk talker, and had two
journeymen and three apprentices, and was doing a raging business. In fact, he
was getting rich, hand over fist, and was vastly respected. Marco was very
proud of having such a man for a friend. He had taken me there ostensibly to
let me see the big establishment which bought so much of his charcoal, but
really to let me see what easy and almost familiar terms he was on with this
great man. Dowley and I fraternized at once; I had had just such picked men,
splendid fellows, under me in the Colt Arms Factory. I was bound to see more of
him, so I invited him to come out to Marco's Sunday, and dine with us. Marco
was appalled, and held his breath; and when the grandee accepted, he was so
grateful that he almost forgot to be astonished at the condescension.
Marco's joy was
exuberant—but only for a moment; then he grew thoughtful, then sad; and when he
heard me tell Dowley I should have Dickon, the boss mason, and Smug, the boss
wheelwright, out there, too, the coal-dust on his face turned to chalk, and he
lost his grip. But I knew what was the matter with him; it was the expense. He
saw ruin before him; he judged that his financial days were numbered. However,
on our way to invite the others, I said:
“You must allow
me to have these friends come; and you must also allow me to pay the costs.”
His face cleared,
and he said with spirit:
“But not all of
it, not all of it. Ye cannot well bear a burden like to this alone.”
I stopped him,
and said:
“Now let's
understand each other on the spot, old friend. I am only a farm bailiff, it is
true; but I am not poor, nevertheless. I have been very fortunate this year—you
would be astonished to know how I have thriven. I tell you the honest truth
when I say I could squander away as many as a dozen feasts like this and never
care THAT for the expense!” and I snapped my fingers. I could see myself rise a
foot at a time in Marco's estimation, and when I fetched out those last words I
was become a very tower for style and altitude. “So you see, you must let me
have my way. You can't contribute a cent to this orgy, that's SETTLED.”
“It's grand and
good of you—”
“No, it isn't.
You've opened your house to Jones and me in the most generous way; Jones was
remarking upon it to-day, just before you came back from the village; for
although he wouldn't be likely to say such a thing to you—because Jones isn't a
talker, and is diffident in society—he has a good heart and a grateful, and
knows how to appreciate it when he is well treated; yes, you and your wife have
been very hospitable toward us—”
“Ah, brother,
'tis nothing—SUCH hospitality!”
“But it IS
something; the best a man has, freely given, is always something, and is as
good as a prince can do, and ranks right along beside it—for even a prince can
but do his best. And so we'll shop around and get up this layout now, and don't
you worry about the expense. I'm one of the worst spendthrifts that ever was
born. Why, do you know, sometimes in a single week I spend—but never mind about
that—you'd never believe it anyway.”
And so we went
gadding along, dropping in here and there, pricing things, and gossiping with
the shopkeepers about the riot, and now and then running across pathetic
reminders of it, in the persons of shunned and tearful and houseless remnants
of families whose homes had been taken from them and their parents butchered or
hanged. The raiment of Marco and his wife was of coarse tow-linen and
linsey-woolsey respectively, and resembled township maps, it being made up
pretty exclusively of patches which had been added, township by township, in
the course of five or six years, until hardly a hand's-breadth of the original
garments was surviving and present. Now I wanted to fit these people out with
new suits, on account of that swell company, and I didn't know just how to get
at it—with delicacy, until at last it struck me that as I had already been
liberal in inventing wordy gratitude for the king, it would be just the thing
to back it up with evidence of a substantial sort; so I said:
“And Marco,
there's another thing which you must permit—out of kindness for Jones—because you
wouldn't want to offend him. He was very anxious to testify his appreciation in
some way, but he is so diffident he couldn't venture it himself, and so he
begged me to buy some little things and give them to you and Dame Phyllis and
let him pay for them without your ever knowing they came from him—you know how
a delicate person feels about that sort of thing—and so I said I would, and we
would keep mum. Well, his idea was, a new outfit of clothes for you both—”
“Oh, it is
wastefulness! It may not be, brother, it may not be. Consider the vastness of
the sum—”
“Hang the
vastness of the sum! Try to keep quiet for a moment, and see how it would seem;
a body can't get in a word edgeways, you talk so much. You ought to cure that,
Marco; it isn't good form, you know, and it will grow on you if you don't check
it. Yes, we'll step in here now and price this man's stuff—and don't forget to
remember to not let on to Jones that you know he had anything to do with it.
You can't think how curiously sensitive and proud he is. He's a farmer—pretty
fairly well-to-do farmer—an I'm his bailiff; BUT—the imagination of that man!
Why, sometimes when he forgets himself and gets to blowing off, you'd think he
was one of the swells of the earth; and you might listen to him a hundred years
and never take him for a farmer—especially if he talked agriculture. He THINKS
he's a Sheol of a farmer; thinks he's old Grayback from Wayback; but between
you and me privately he don't know as much about farming as he does about
running a kingdom—still, whatever he talks about, you want to drop your
underjaw and listen, the same as if you had never heard such incredible wisdom
in all your life before, and were afraid you might die before you got enough of
it. That will please Jones.”
It tickled Marco
to the marrow to hear about such an odd character; but it also prepared him for
accidents; and in my experience when you travel with a king who is letting on
to be something else and can't remember it more than about half the time, you
can't take too many precautions.
This was the best
store we had come across yet; it had everything in it, in small quantities,
from anvils and drygoods all the way down to fish and pinchbeck jewelry. I
concluded I would bunch my whole invoice right here, and not go pricing around
any more. So I got rid of Marco, by sending him off to invite the mason and the
wheelwright, which left the field free to me. For I never care to do a thing in
a quiet way; it's got to be theatrical or I don't take any interest in it. I
showed up money enough, in a careless way, to corral the shopkeeper's respect,
and then I wrote down a list of the things I wanted, and handed it to him to
see if he could read it. He could, and was proud to show that he could. He said
he had been educated by a priest, and could both read and write. He ran it
through, and remarked with satisfaction that it was a pretty heavy bill. Well,
and so it was, for a little concern like that. I was not only providing a swell
dinner, but some odds and ends of extras. I ordered that the things be carted
out and delivered at the dwelling of Marco, the son of Marco, by Saturday
evening, and send me the bill at dinner-time Sunday. He said I could depend
upon his promptness and exactitude, it was the rule of the house. He also observed
that he would throw in a couple of miller-guns for the Marcos gratis—that
everybody was using them now. He had a mighty opinion of that clever device. I
said:
“And please fill
them up to the middle mark, too; and add that to the bill.”
He would, with
pleasure. He filled them, and I took them with me. I couldn't venture to tell
him that the miller-gun was a little invention of my own, and that I had
officially ordered that every shopkeeper in the kingdom keep them on hand and
sell them at government price—which was the merest trifle, and the shopkeeper
got that, not the government. We furnished them for nothing.
The king had
hardly missed us when we got back at nightfall. He had early dropped again into
his dream of a grand invasion of Gaul with the whole strength of his kingdom at
his back, and the afternoon had slipped away without his ever coming to himself
again.
Chapter XXXII.
DOWLEY'S
HUMILIATION
WELL, when that
cargo arrived toward sunset, Saturday afternoon, I had my hands full to keep
the Marcos from fainting. They were sure Jones and I were ruined past help, and
they blamed themselves as accessories to this bankruptcy. You see, in addition
to the dinner-materials, which called for a sufficiently round sum, I had
bought a lot of extras for the future comfort of the family: for instance, a
big lot of wheat, a delicacy as rare to the tables of their class as was
ice-cream to a hermit's; also a sizeable deal dinner-table; also two entire
pounds of salt, which was another piece of extravagance in those people's eyes;
also crockery, stools, the clothes, a small cask of beer, and so on. I
instructed the Marcos to keep quiet about this sumptuousness, so as to give me
a chance to surprise the guests and show off a little. Concerning the new
clothes, the simple couple were like children; they were up and down, all
night, to see if it wasn't nearly daylight, so that they could put them on, and
they were into them at last as much as an hour before dawn was due. Then their
pleasure—not to say delirium—was so fresh and novel and inspiring that the
sight of it paid me well for the interruptions which my sleep had suffered. The
king had slept just as usual—like the dead. The Marcos could not thank him for
their clothes, that being forbidden; but they tried every way they could think
of to make him see how grateful they were. Which all went for nothing: he
didn't notice any change.
It turned out to
be one of those rich and rare fall days which is just a June day toned down to
a degree where it is heaven to be out of doors. Toward noon the guests arrived,
and we assembled under a great tree and were soon as sociable as old
acquaintances. Even the king's reserve melted a little, though it was some
little trouble to him to adjust himself to the name of Jones along at first. I
had asked him to try to not forget that he was a farmer; but I had also
considered it prudent to ask him to let the thing stand at that, and not
elaborate it any. Because he was just the kind of person you could depend on to
spoil a little thing like that if you didn't warn him, his tongue was so handy,
and his spirit so willing, and his information so uncertain.
Dowley was in
fine feather, and I early got him started, and then adroitly worked him around
onto his own history for a text and himself for a hero, and then it was good to
sit there and hear him hum. Self-made man, you know. They know how to talk.
They do deserve more credit than any other breed of men, yes, that is true; and
they are among the very first to find it out, too. He told how he had begun
life an orphan lad without money and without friends able to help him; how he
had lived as the slaves of the meanest master lived; how his day's work was
from sixteen to eighteen hours long, and yielded him only enough black bread to
keep him in a half-fed condition; how his faithful endeavors finally attracted
the attention of a good blacksmith, who came near knocking him dead with
kindness by suddenly offering, when he was totally unprepared, to take him as
his bound apprentice for nine years and give him board and clothes and teach
him the trade—or “mystery” as Dowley called it. That was his first great rise,
his first gorgeous stroke of fortune; and you saw that he couldn't yet speak of
it without a sort of eloquent wonder and delight that such a gilded promotion
should have fallen to the lot of a common human being. He got no new clothing
during his apprenticeship, but on his graduation day his master tricked him out
in spang-new tow-linens and made him feel unspeakably rich and fine.
“I remember me of
that day!” the wheelwright sang out, with enthusiasm.
“And I likewise!”
cried the mason. “I would not believe they were thine own; in faith I could
not.”
“Nor other!”
shouted Dowley, with sparkling eyes. “I was like to lose my character, the
neighbors wending I had mayhap been stealing. It was a great day, a great day;
one forgetteth not days like that.”
Yes, and his
master was a fine man, and prosperous, and always had a great feast of meat
twice in the year, and with it white bread, true wheaten bread; in fact, lived
like a lord, so to speak. And in time Dowley succeeded to the business and
married the daughter.
“And now consider
what is come to pass,” said he, impressively. “Two times in every month there
is fresh meat upon my table.” He made a pause here, to let that fact sink home,
then added—“and eight times salt meat.”
“It is even
true,” said the wheelwright, with bated breath.
“I know it of
mine own knowledge,” said the mason, in the same reverent fashion.
“On my table
appeareth white bread every Sunday in the year,” added the master smith, with
solemnity. “I leave it to your own consciences, friends, if this is not also
true?”
“By my head,
yes,” cried the mason.
“I can testify
it—and I do,” said the wheelwright.
“And as to
furniture, ye shall say yourselves what mine equipment is. “ He waved his hand
in fine gesture of granting frank and unhampered freedom of speech, and added:
“Speak as ye are moved; speak as ye would speak; an I were not here.”
“Ye have five
stools, and of the sweetest workmanship at that, albeit your family is but
three,” said the wheelwright, with deep respect.
“And six wooden
goblets, and six platters of wood and two of pewter to cat and drink from
withal,” said the mason, impressively. “And I say it as knowing God is my
judge, and we tarry not here alway, but must answer at the last day for the
things said in the body, be they false or be they sooth.”
“Now ye know what
manner of man I am, brother Jones,” said the smith, with a fine and friendly
condescension, “and doubtless ye would look to find me a man jealous of his due
of respect and but sparing of outgo to strangers till their rating and quality
be assured, but trouble yourself not, as concerning that; wit ye well ye shall
find me a man that regardeth not these matters but is willing to receive any he
as his fellow and equal that carrieth a right heart in his body, be his worldly
estate howsoever modest. And in token of it, here is my hand; and I say with my
own mouth we are equals—equals “—and he smiled around on the company with the
satisfaction of a god who is doing the handsome and gracious thing and is quite
well aware of it.
The king took the
hand with a poorly disguised reluctance, and let go of it as willingly as a
lady lets go of a fish; all of which had a good effect, for it was mistaken for
an embarrassment natural to one who was being called upon by greatness.
The dame brought
out the table now, and set it under the tree. It caused a visible stir of
surprise, it being brand new and a sumptuous article of deal. But the surprise
rose higher still when the dame, with a body oozing easy indifference at every
pore, but eyes that gave it all away by absolutely flaming with vanity, slowly
unfolded an actual simon-pure tablecloth and spread it. That was a notch above
even the blacksmith's domestic grandeurs, and it hit him hard; you could see
it. But Marco was in Paradise; you could see that, too. Then the dame brought
two fine new stools—whew! that was a sensation; it was visible in the eyes of
every guest. Then she brought two more—as calmly as she could. Sensation
again—with awed murmurs. Again she brought two—walking on air, she was so
proud. The guests were petrified, and the mason muttered:
“There is that
about earthly pomps which doth ever move to reverence.”
As the dame
turned away, Marco couldn't help slapping on the climax while the thing was
hot; so he said with what was meant for a languid composure but was a poor
imitation of it:
“These suffice;
leave the rest.”
So there were
more yet! It was a fine effect. I couldn't have played the hand better myself.
From this out,
the madam piled up the surprises with a rush that fired the general
astonishment up to a hundred and fifty in the shade, and at the same time
paralyzed expression of it down to gasped “Oh's” and “Ah's,” and mute
upliftings of hands and eyes. She fetched crockery—new, and plenty of it; new
wooden goblets and other table furniture; and beer, fish, chicken, a goose,
eggs, roast beef, roast mutton, a ham, a small roast pig, and a wealth of genuine
white wheaten bread. Take it by and large, that spread laid everything far and
away in the shade that ever that crowd had seen before. And while they sat
there just simply stupefied with wonder and awe, I sort of waved my hand as if
by accident, and the storekeeper's son emerged from space and said he had come
to collect.
“That's all
right,” I said, indifferently. “What is the amount? give us the items.”
Then he read off
this bill, while those three amazed men listened, and serene waves of
satisfaction rolled over my soul and alternate waves of terror and admiration
surged over Marco's:
2 pounds salt . .
. . . . . . . . . . . . 200 8 dozen pints beer, in the wood . . . . . 800 3
bushels wheat . . . . . . . . . . . . . 2,700 2 pounds fish . . . . . . . . . .
. . . . 100 3 hens . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 400 1 goose . . . . . . .
. . . . . . . . . . 400 3 dozen eggs . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 150 1 roast of
beef . . . . . . . . . . . . . 450 1 roast of mutton . . . . . . . . . . . .
400 1 ham . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 800 1 sucking pig . . . . . . . .
. . . . . . 500 2 crockery dinner sets . . . . . . . . . 6,000 2 men's suits
and underwear . . . . . . . 2,800 1 stuff and 1 linsey-woolsey gown
and underwear . .
. . . . . . . . . . . 1,600 8 wooden goblets . . . . . . . . . . . . 800
Various table furniture . . . . . . . . .10,000 1 deal table . . . . . . . . .
. . . . . 3,000 8 stools . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 4,000 2 miller guns,
loaded . . . . . . . . . . 3,000
He ceased. There
was a pale and awful silence. Not a limb stirred. Not a nostril betrayed the
passage of breath.
“Is that all?” I
asked, in a voice of the most perfect calmness.
“All, fair sir,
save that certain matters of light moment are placed together under a head
hight sundries. If it would like you, I will sepa—”
“It is of no
consequence,” I said, accompanying the words with a gesture of the most utter
indifference; “give me the grand total, please.”
The clerk leaned
against the tree to stay himself, and said:
“Thirty-nine
thousand one hundred and fifty milrays!”
The wheelwright
fell off his stool, the others grabbed the table to save themselves, and there
was a deep and general ejaculation of:
“God be with us
in the day of disaster!”
The clerk
hastened to say:
“My father
chargeth me to say he cannot honorably require you to pay it all at this time,
and therefore only prayeth you—”
I paid no more
heed than if it were the idle breeze, but, with an air of indifference
amounting almost to weariness, got out my money and tossed four dollars on to
the table. Ah, you should have seen them stare!
The clerk was
astonished and charmed. He asked me to retain one of the dollars as security,
until he could go to town and—I interrupted:
“What, and fetch
back nine cents? Nonsense! Take the whole. Keep the change.”
There was an
amazed murmur to this effect:
“Verily this
being is MADE of money! He throweth it away even as if it were dirt.”
The blacksmith
was a crushed man.
The clerk took
his money and reeled away drunk with fortune. I said to Marco and his wife:
“Good folk, here
is a little trifle for you”—handing the miller-guns as if it were a matter of
no consequence, though each of them contained fifteen cents in solid cash; and
while the poor creatures went to pieces with astonishment and gratitude, I
turned to the others and said as calmly as one would ask the time of day:
“Well, if we are
all ready, I judge the dinner is. Come, fall to.”
Ah, well, it was
immense; yes, it was a daisy. I don't know that I ever put a situation together
better, or got happier spectacular effects out of the materials available. The
blacksmith—well, he was simply mashed. Land! I wouldn't have felt what that man
was feeling, for anything in the world. Here he had been blowing and bragging
about his grand meat-feast twice a year, and his fresh meat twice a month, and
his salt meat twice a week, and his white bread every Sunday the year round—all
for a family of three; the entire cost for the year not above 69.2.6
(sixty-nine cents, two mills and six milrays), and all of a sudden here comes
along a man who slashes out nearly four dollars on a single blow-out; and not
only that, but acts as if it made him tired to handle such small sums. Yes,
Dowley was a good deal wilted, and shrunk-up and collapsed; he had the aspect
of a bladder-balloon that's been stepped on by a cow.
Chapter XXXIII.
SIXTH CENTURY
POLITICAL ECONOMY
HOWEVER, I made a
dead set at him, and before the first third of the dinner was reached, I had
him happy again. It was easy to do—in a country of ranks and castes. You see,
in a country where they have ranks and castes, a man isn't ever a man, he is
only part of a man, he can't ever get his full growth. You prove your
superiority over him in station, or rank, or fortune, and that's the end of
it—he knuckles down. You can't insult him after that. No, I don't mean quite
that; of course you CAN insult him, I only mean it's difficult; and so, unless
you've got a lot of useless time on your hands it doesn't pay to try. I had the
smith's reverence now, because I was apparently immensely prosperous and rich;
I could have had his adoration if I had had some little gimcrack title of
nobility. And not only his, but any commoner's in the land, though he were the
mightiest production of all the ages, in intellect, worth, and character, and I
bankrupt in all three. This was to remain so, as long as England should exist
in the earth. With the spirit of prophecy upon me, I could look into the future
and see her erect statues and monuments to her unspeakable Georges and other
royal and noble clothes-horses, and leave unhonored the creators of this
world—after God—Gutenburg, Watt, Arkwright, Whitney, Morse, Stephenson, Bell.
The king got his
cargo aboard, and then, the talk not turning upon battle, conquest, or
iron-clad duel, he dulled down to drowsiness and went off to take a nap. Mrs.
Marco cleared the table, placed the beer keg handy, and went away to eat her
dinner of leavings in humble privacy, and the rest of us soon drifted into
matters near and dear to the hearts of our sort—business and wages, of course.
At a first glance, things appeared to be exceeding prosperous in this little
tributary kingdom—whose lord was King Bagdemagus—as compared with the state of
things in my own region. They had the “protection” system in full force here,
whereas we were working along down toward free-trade, by easy stages, and were
now about half way. Before long, Dowley and I were doing all the talking, the
others hungrily listening. Dowley warmed to his work, snuffed an advantage in
the air, and began to put questions which he considered pretty awkward ones for
me, and they did have something of that look:
“In your country,
brother, what is the wage of a master bailiff, master hind, carter, shepherd,
swineherd?”
“Twenty-five
milrays a day; that is to say, a quarter of a cent.
The smith's face
beamed with joy. He said:
“With us they are
allowed the double of it! And what may a mechanic get—carpenter, dauber, mason,
painter, blacksmith, wheelwright, and the like?”
“On the average,
fifty milrays; half a cent a day.”
“Ho-ho! With us
they are allowed a hundred! With us any good mechanic is allowed a cent a day!
I count out the tailor, but not the others—they are all allowed a cent a day,
and in driving times they get more—yes, up to a hundred and ten and even
fifteen milrays a day. I've paid a hundred and fifteen myself, within the week.
'Rah for protection—to Sheol with free-trade!”
And his face
shone upon the company like a sunburst. But I didn't scare at all. I rigged up
my pile-driver, and allowed myself fifteen minutes to drive him into the
earth—drive him ALL in—drive him in till not even the curve of his skull should
show above ground. Here is the way I started in on him. I asked:
“What do you pay
a pound for salt?”
“A hundred
milrays.”
“We pay forty.
What do you pay for beef and mutton—when you buy it?” That was a neat hit; it
made the color come.
“It varieth
somewhat, but not much; one may say 75 milrays the pound.”
“WE pay 33. What
do you pay for eggs?”
“Fifty milrays
the dozen.”
“We pay 20. What
do you pay for beer?”
“It costeth us 8
1/2 milrays the pint.”
“We get it for 4;
25 bottles for a cent. What do you pay for wheat?”
“At the rate of
900 milrays the bushel.”
“We pay 400. What
do you pay for a man's towlinen suit?”
“Thirteen cents.”
“We pay 6. What
do you pay for a stuff gown for the wife of the laborer or the mechanic?”
“We pay 8.4.0.”
“Well, observe
the difference: you pay eight cents and four mills, we pay only four cents.” I
prepared now to sock it to him. l said: “Look here, dear friend, WHAT'S BECOME
OF YOUR HIGH WAGES YOU WERE BRAGGING SO ABOUT A FEW MINUTES AGO?”—and I looked
around on the company with placid satisfaction, for I had slipped up on him
gradually and tied him hand and foot, you see, without his ever noticing that
he was being tied at all. “What's become of those noble high wages of yours?—I
seem to have knocked the stuffing all out of them, it appears to me.”
But if you will
believe me, he merely looked surprised, that is all! he didn't grasp the
situation at all, didn't know he had walked into a trap, didn't discover that
he was IN a trap. I could have shot him, from sheer vexation. With cloudy eye
and a struggling intellect he fetched this out:
“Marry, I seem
not to understand. It is PROVED that our wages be double thine; how then may it
be that thou'st knocked therefrom the stuffing?—an miscall not the wonderly
word, this being the first time under grace and providence of God it hath been
granted me to hear it.”
Well, I was
stunned; partly with this unlooked-for stupidity on his part, and partly
because his fellows so manifestly sided with him and were of his mind—if you
might call it mind. My position was simple enough, plain enough; how could it
ever be simplified more? However, I must try:
“Why, look here,
brother Dowley, don't you see? Your wages are merely higher than ours in NAME,
not in FACT.”
“Hear him! They
are the DOUBLE—ye have confessed it yourself.”
“Yes-yes, I don't
deny that at all. But that's got nothing to do with it; the AMOUNT of the wages
in mere coins, with meaningless names attached to them to know them by, has got
nothing to do with it. The thing is, how much can you BUY with your wages?—that's
the idea. While it is true that with you a good mechanic is allowed about three
dollars and a half a year, and with us only about a dollar and seventy-five—”
“There—ye're
confessing it again, ye're confessing it again!”
“Confound it,
I've never denied it, I tell you! What I say is this. With us HALF a dollar
buys more than a DOLLAR buys with you—and THEREFORE it stands to reason and the
commonest kind of common-sense, that our wages are HIGHER than yours.”
He looked dazed,
and said, despairingly:
“Verily, I cannot
make it out. Ye've just said ours are the higher, and with the same breath ye
take it back.”
“Oh, great Scott,
isn't it possible to get such a simple thing through your head? Now look
here—let me illustrate. We pay four cents for a woman's stuff gown, you pay
8.4.0, which is four mills more than DOUBLE. What do you allow a laboring woman
who works on a farm?”
“Two mills a
day.”
“Very good; we
allow but half as much; we pay her only a tenth of a cent a day; and—”
“Again ye're
conf—”
“Wait! Now, you
see, the thing is very simple; this time you'll understand it. For instance, it
takes your woman 42 days to earn her gown, at 2 mills a day—7 weeks' work; but
ours earns hers in forty days—two days SHORT of 7 weeks. Your woman has a gown,
and her whole seven weeks wages are gone; ours has a gown, and two days' wages
left, to buy something else with. There—NOW you understand it!”
He looked—well,
he merely looked dubious, it's the most I can say; so did the others. I
waited—to let the thing work. Dowley spoke at last—and betrayed the fact that
he actually hadn't gotten away from his rooted and grounded superstitions yet.
He said, with a trifle of hesitancy:
“But—but—ye
cannot fail to grant that two mills a day is better than one.”
Shucks! Well, of
course, I hated to give it up. So I chanced another flyer:
“Let us suppose a
case. Suppose one of your journeymen goes out and buys the following articles:
“1 pound of salt;
1 dozen eggs; 1 dozen pints of beer; 1 bushel of wheat; 1 tow-linen suit; 5 pounds
of beef; 5 pounds of mutton.
“The lot will
cost him 32 cents. It takes him 32 working days to earn the money—5 weeks and 2
days. Let him come to us and work 32 days at HALF the wages; he can buy all
those things for a shade under 14 1/2 cents; they will cost him a shade under
29 days' work, and he will have about half a week's wages over. Carry it
through the year; he would save nearly a week's wages every two months, YOUR
man nothing; thus saving five or six weeks' wages in a year, your man not a cent.
NOW I reckon you understand that 'high wages' and 'low wages' are phrases that
don't mean anything in the world until you find out which of them will BUY the
most!”
It was a crusher.
But, alas! it
didn't crush. No, I had to give it up. What those people valued was HIGH WAGES;
it didn't seem to be a matter of any consequence to them whether the high wages
would buy anything or not. They stood for “protection,” and swore by it, which
was reasonable enough, because interested parties had gulled them into the
notion that it was protection which had created their high wages. I proved to
them that in a quarter of a century their wages had advanced but 30 per cent.,
while the cost of living had gone up 100; and that with us, in a shorter time,
wages had advanced 40 per cent. while the cost of living had gone steadily
down. But it didn't do any good. Nothing could unseat their strange beliefs.
Well, I was
smarting under a sense of defeat. Undeserved defeat, but what of that? That
didn't soften the smart any. And to think of the circumstances! the first
statesman of the age, the capablest man, the best-informed man in the entire
world, the loftiest uncrowned head that had moved through the clouds of any
political firmament for centuries, sitting here apparently defeated in argument
by an ignorant country blacksmith! And I could see that those others were sorry
for me—which made me blush till I could smell my whiskers scorching. Put
yourself in my place; feel as mean as I did, as ashamed as I felt—wouldn't YOU
have struck below the belt to get even? Yes, you would; it is simply human
nature. Well, that is what I did. I am not trying to justify it; I'm only
saying that I was mad, and ANYBODY would have done it.
Well, when I make
up my mind to hit a man, I don't plan out a love-tap; no, that isn't my way; as
long as I'm going to hit him at all, I'm going to hit him a lifter. And I don't
jump at him all of a sudden, and risk making a blundering half-way business of
it; no, I get away off yonder to one side, and work up on him gradually, so
that he never suspects that I'm going to hit him at all; and by and by, all in
a flash, he's flat on his back, and he can't tell for the life of him how it
all happened. That is the way I went for brother Dowley. I started to talking
lazy and comfortable, as if I was just talking to pass the time; and the oldest
man in the world couldn't have taken the bearings of my starting place and
guessed where I was going to fetch up:
“Boys, there's a
good many curious things about law, and custom, and usage, and all that sort of
thing, when you come to look at it; yes, and about the drift and progress of
human opinion and movement, too. There are written laws—they perish; but there
are also unwritten laws—THEY are eternal. Take the unwritten law of wages: it
says they've got to advance, little by little, straight through the centuries.
And notice how it works. We know what wages are now, here and there and yonder;
we strike an average, and say that's the wages of to-day. We know what the
wages were a hundred years ago, and what they were two hundred years ago;
that's as far back as we can get, but it suffices to give us the law of
progress, the measure and rate of the periodical augmentation; and so, without
a document to help us, we can come pretty close to determining what the wages
were three and four and five hundred years ago. Good, so far. Do we stop there?
No. We stop looking backward; we face around and apply the law to the future.
My friends, I can tell you what people's wages are going to be at any date in
the future you want to know, for hundreds and hundreds of years.”
“What, goodman,
what!”
“Yes. In seven
hundred years wages will have risen to six times what they are now, here in
your region, and farm hands will be allowed 3 cents a day, and mechanics 6.”
“I would't I
might die now and live then!” interrupted Smug, the wheelwright, with a fine
avaricious glow in his eye.
“And that isn't
all; they'll get their board besides—such as it is: it won't bloat them. Two
hundred and fifty years later—pay attention now—a mechanic's wages will be—mind
you, this is law, not guesswork; a mechanic's wages will then be TWENTY cents a
day!”
There was a
general gasp of awed astonishment, Dickon the mason murmured, with raised eyes
and hands:
“More than three
weeks' pay for one day's work!”
“Riches!—of a
truth, yes, riches!” muttered Marco, his breath coming quick and short, with
excitement.
“Wages will keep
on rising, little by little, little by little, as steadily as a tree grows, and
at the end of three hundred and forty years more there'll be at least ONE
country where the mechanic's average wage will be TWO HUNDRED cents a day!”
It knocked them
absolutely dumb! Not a man of them could get his breath for upwards of two
minutes. Then the coal-burner said prayerfully:
“Might I but live
to see it!”
“It is the income
of an earl!” said Smug.
“An earl, say
ye?” said Dowley; “ye could say more than that and speak no lie; there's no
earl in the realm of Bagdemagus that hath an income like to that. Income of an
earl—mf! it's the income of an angel!”
“Now, then, that
is what is going to happen as regards wages. In that remote day, that man will
earn, with ONE week's work, that bill of goods which it takes you upwards of
FIFTY weeks to earn now. Some other pretty surprising things are going to
happen, too. Brother Dowley, who is it that determines, every spring, what the
particular wage of each kind of mechanic, laborer, and servant shall be for
that year?”
“Sometimes the
courts, sometimes the town council; but most of all, the magistrate. Ye may
say, in general terms, it is the magistrate that fixes the wages.”
“Doesn't ask any
of those poor devils to HELP him fix their wages for them, does he?”
“Hm! That WERE an
idea! The master that's to pay him the money is the one that's rightly
concerned in that matter, ye will notice “
“Yes—but I
thought the other man might have some little trifle at stake in it, too; and
even his wife and children, poor creatures. The masters are these: nobles, rich
men, the prosperous generally. These few, who do no work, determine what pay
the vast hive shall have who DO work. You see? They're a 'combine'—a trade
union, to coin a new phrase—who band themselves together to force their lowly
brother to take what they choose to give. Thirteen hundred years hence—so says
the unwritten law—the 'combine' will be the other way, and then how these fine
people's posterity will fume and fret and grit their teeth over the insolent
tyranny of trade unions! Yes, indeed! the magistrate will tranquilly arrange
the wages from now clear away down into the nineteenth century; and then all of
a sudden the wage-earner will consider that a couple of thousand years or so is
enough of this one-sided sort of thing; and he will rise up and take a hand in
fixing his wages himself. Ah, he will have a long and bitter account of wrong
and humiliation to settle.”
“Do ye believe—“
“That he actually
will help to fix his own wages? Yes, indeed. And he will be strong and able,
then.”
“Brave times,
brave times, of a truth!” sneered the prosperous smith.
“Oh,—and there's
another detail. In that day, a master may hire a man for only just one day, or
one week, or one month at a time, if he wants to.”
“What?”
“It's true.
Moreover, a magistrate won't be able to force a man to work for a master a
whole year on a stretch whether the man wants to or not.”
“Will there be NO
law or sense in that day?”
“Both of them,
Dowley. In that day a man will be his own property, not the property of
magistrate and master. And he can leave town whenever he wants to, if the wages
don't suit him!—and they can't put him in the pillory for it.”
“Perdition catch
such an age!” shouted Dowley, in strong indignation. “An age of dogs, an age
barren of reverence for superiors and respect for authority! The pillory—”
“Oh, wait,
brother; say no good word for that institution. I think the pillory ought to be
abolished.”
“A most strange
idea. Why?”
“Well, I'll tell
you why. Is a man ever put in the pillory for a capital crime?”
“No.”
“Is it right to
condemn a man to a slight punishment for a small offense and then kill him?”
There was no
answer. I had scored my first point! For the first time, the smith wasn't up
and ready. The company noticed it. Good effect.
“You don't
answer, brother. You were about to glorify the pillory a while ago, and shed
some pity on a future age that isn't going to use it. I think the pillory ought
to be abolished. What usually happens when a poor fellow is put in the pillory
for some little offense that didn't amount to anything in the world? The mob
try to have some fun with him, don't they?”
“Yes.”
“They begin by
clodding him; and they laugh themselves to pieces to see him try to dodge one
clod and get hit with another?”
“Yes.”
“Then they throw
dead cats at him, don't they?”
“Yes.”
“Well, then,
suppose he has a few personal enemies in that mob and here and there a man or a
woman with a secret grudge against him—and suppose especially that he is
unpopular in the community, for his pride, or his prosperity, or one thing or
another—stones and bricks take the place of clods and cats presently, don't
they?”
“There is no
doubt of it.”
“As a rule he is
crippled for life, isn't he?—jaws broken, teeth smashed out?—or legs mutilated,
gangrened, presently cut off?—or an eye knocked out, maybe both eyes?”
“It is true, God
knoweth it.”
“And if he is
unpopular he can depend on DYING, right there in the stocks, can't he?”
“He surely can!
One may not deny it.”
“I take it none
of YOU are unpopular—by reason of pride or insolence, or conspicuous
prosperity, or any of those things that excite envy and malice among the base
scum of a village? YOU wouldn't think it much of a risk to take a chance in the
stocks?”
Dowley winced,
visibly. I judged he was hit. But he didn't betray it by any spoken word. As
for the others, they spoke out plainly, and with strong feeling. They said they
had seen enough of the stocks to know what a man's chance in them was, and they
would never consent to enter them if they could compromise on a quick death by
hanging.
“Well, to change
the subject—for I think I've established my point that the stocks ought to be
abolished. I think some of our laws are pretty unfair. For instance, if I do a
thing which ought to deliver me to the stocks, and you know I did it and yet
keep still and don't report me, YOU will get the stocks if anybody informs on
you.”
“Ah, but that
would serve you but right,” said Dowley, “for you MUST inform. So saith the law.”
The others
coincided.
“Well, all right,
let it go, since you vote me down. But there's one thing which certainly isn't
fair. The magistrate fixes a mechanic's wage at 1 cent a day, for instance. The
law says that if any master shall venture, even under utmost press of business,
to pay anything OVER that cent a day, even for a single day, he shall be both
fined and pilloried for it; and whoever knows he did it and doesn't inform,
they also shall be fined and pilloried. Now it seems to me unfair, Dowley, and
a deadly peril to all of us, that because you thoughtlessly confessed, a while
ago, that within a week you have paid a cent and fifteen mil—”
Oh, I tell YOU it
was a smasher! You ought to have seen them to go to pieces, the whole gang. I
had just slipped up on poor smiling and complacent Dowley so nice and easy and
softly, that he never suspected anything was going to happen till the blow came
crashing down and knocked him all to rags.
A fine effect. In
fact, as fine as any I ever produced, with so little time to work it up in.
But I saw in a
moment that I had overdone the thing a little. I was expecting to scare them,
but I wasn't expecting to scare them to death. They were mighty near it,
though. You see they had been a whole lifetime learning to appreciate the
pillory; and to have that thing staring them in the face, and every one of them
distinctly at the mercy of me, a stranger, if I chose to go and report—well, it
was awful, and they couldn't seem to recover from the shock, they couldn't seem
to pull themselves together. Pale, shaky, dumb, pitiful? Why, they weren't any
better than so many dead men. It was very uncomfortable. Of course, I thought
they would appeal to me to keep mum, and then we would shake hands, and take a
drink all round, and laugh it off, and there an end. But no; you see I was an
unknown person, among a cruelly oppressed and suspicious people, a people
always accustomed to having advantage taken of their helplessness, and never
expecting just or kind treatment from any but their own families and very
closest intimates. Appeal to ME to be gentle, to be fair, to be generous? Of
course, they wanted to, but they couldn't dare.
Chapter XXXIV.
THE YANKEE AND
THE KING SOLD AS SLAVES
WELL, what had I
better do? Nothing in a hurry, sure. I must get up a diversion; anything to
employ me while I could think, and while these poor fellows could have a chance
to come to life again. There sat Marco, petrified in the act of trying to get
the hang of his miller-gun—turned to stone, just in the attitude he was in when
my pile-driver fell, the toy still gripped in his unconscious fingers. So I
took it from him and proposed to explain its mystery. Mystery! a simple little
thing like that; and yet it was mysterious enough, for that race and that age.
I never saw such
an awkward people, with machinery; you see, they were totally unused to it. The
miller-gun was a little double-barreled tube of toughened glass, with a neat
little trick of a spring to it, which upon pressure would let a shot escape.
But the shot wouldn't hurt anybody, it would only drop into your hand. In the
gun were two sizes—wee mustardseed shot, and another sort that were several
times larger. They were money. The mustard-seed shot represented milrays, the
larger ones mills. So the gun was a purse; and very handy, too; you could pay
out money in the dark with it, with accuracy; and you could carry it in your
mouth; or in your vest pocket, if you had one. I made them of several sizes—one
size so large that it would carry the equivalent of a dollar. Using shot for
money was a good thing for the government; the metal cost nothing, and the
money couldn't be counterfeited, for I was the only person in the kingdom who
knew how to manage a shot tower. “Paying the shot” soon came to be a common phrase.
Yes, and I knew it would still be passing men's lips, away down in the
nineteenth century, yet none would suspect how and when it originated.
The king joined
us, about this time, mightily refreshed by his nap, and feeling good. Anything
could make me nervous now, I was so uneasy—for our lives were in danger; and so
it worried me to detect a complacent something in the king's eye which seemed
to indicate that he had been loading himself up for a performance of some kind
or other; confound it, why must he go and choose such a time as this?
I was right. He
began, straight off, in the most innocently artful, and transparent, and
lubberly way, to lead up to the subject of agriculture. The cold sweat broke
out all over me. I wanted to whisper in his ear, “Man, we are in awful danger!
every moment is worth a principality till we get back these men's confidence;
DON'T waste any of this golden time.” But of course I couldn't do it. Whisper
to him? It would look as if we were conspiring. So I had to sit there and look
calm and pleasant while the king stood over that dynamite mine and mooned along
about his damned onions and things. At first the tumult of my own thoughts,
summoned by the danger-signal and swarming to the rescue from every quarter of
my skull, kept up such a hurrah and confusion and fifing and drumming that I
couldn't take in a word; but presently when my mob of gathering plans began to
crystallize and fall into position and form line of battle, a sort of order and
quiet ensued and I caught the boom of the king's batteries, as if out of remote
distance:
“—were not the
best way, methinks, albeit it is not to be denied that authorities differ as
concerning this point, some contending that the onion is but an unwholesome
berry when stricken early from the tree—”
The audience
showed signs of life, and sought each other's eyes in a surprised and troubled
way.
“—whileas others
do yet maintain, with much show of reason, that this is not of necessity the
case, instancing that plums and other like cereals do be always dug in the
unripe state—”
The audience
exhibited distinct distress; yes, and also fear.
“—yet are they
clearly wholesome, the more especially when one doth assuage the asperities of
their nature by admixture of the tranquilizing juice of the wayward cabbage—”
The wild light of
terror began to glow in these men's eyes, and one of them muttered, “These be
errors, every one—God hath surely smitten the mind of this farmer.” I was in
miserable apprehension; I sat upon thorns.
“—and further
instancing the known truth that in the case of animals, the young, which may be
called the green fruit of the creature, is the better, all confessing that when
a goat is ripe, his fur doth heat and sore engame his flesh, the which defect,
taken in connection with his several rancid habits, and fulsome appetites, and
godless attitudes of mind, and bilious quality of morals—” They rose and went
for him! With a fierce shout, “The one would betray us, the other is mad! Kill
them! Kill them!” they flung themselves upon us. What joy flamed up in the
king's eye! He might be lame in agriculture, but this kind of thing was just in
his line. He had been fasting long, he was hungry for a fight. He hit the
blacksmith a crack under the jaw that lifted him clear off his feet and stretched
him flat on his back. “St. George for Britain!” and he downed the wheelwright.
The mason was big, but I laid him out like nothing. The three gathered
themselves up and came again; went down again; came again; and kept on
repeating this, with native British pluck, until they were battered to jelly,
reeling with exhaustion, and so blind that they couldn't tell us from each
other; and yet they kept right on, hammering away with what might was left in
them. Hammering each other—for we stepped aside and looked on while they
rolled, and struggled, and gouged, and pounded, and bit, with the strict and
wordless attention to business of so many bulldogs. We looked on without
apprehension, for they were fast getting past ability to go for help against
us, and the arena was far enough from the public road to be safe from
intrusion.
Well, while they
were gradually playing out, it suddenly occurred to me to wonder what had
become of Marco. I looked around; he was nowhere to be seen. Oh, but this was
ominous! I pulled the king's sleeve, and we glided away and rushed for the hut.
No Marco there, no Phyllis there! They had gone to the road for help, sure. I
told the king to give his heels wings, and I would explain later. We made good
time across the open ground, and as we darted into the shelter of the wood I
glanced back and saw a mob of excited peasants swarm into view, with Marco and
his wife at their head. They were making a world of noise, but that couldn't
hurt anybody; the wood was dense, and as soon as we were well into its depths
we would take to a tree and let them whistle. Ah, but then came another
sound—dogs! Yes, that was quite another matter. It magnified our contract—we
must find running water.
We tore along at
a good gait, and soon left the sounds far behind and modified to a murmur. We
struck a stream and darted into it. We waded swiftly down it, in the dim forest
light, for as much as three hundred yards, and then came across an oak with a
great bough sticking out over the water. We climbed up on this bough, and began
to work our way along it to the body of the tree; now we began to hear those
sounds more plainly; so the mob had struck our trail. For a while the sounds
approached pretty fast. And then for another while they didn't. No doubt the
dogs had found the place where we had entered the stream, and were now waltzing
up and down the shores trying to pick up the trail again.
When we were
snugly lodged in the tree and curtained with foliage, the king was satisfied,
but I was doubtful. I believed we could crawl along a branch and get into the
next tree, and I judged it worth while to try. We tried it, and made a success
of it, though the king slipped, at the junction, and came near failing to
connect. We got comfortable lodgment and satisfactory concealment among the
foliage, and then we had nothing to do but listen to the hunt.
Presently we
heard it coming—and coming on the jump, too; yes, and down both sides of the
stream. Louder—louder—next minute it swelled swiftly up into a roar of
shoutings, barkings, tramplings, and swept by like a cyclone.
“I was afraid
that the overhanging branch would suggest something to them,” said I, “but I
don't mind the disappointment. Come, my liege, it were well that we make good
use of our time. We've flanked them. Dark is coming on, presently. If we can
cross the stream and get a good start, and borrow a couple of horses from
somebody's pasture to use for a few hours, we shall be safe enough.”
We started down,
and got nearly to the lowest limb, when we seemed to hear the hunt returning.
We stopped to listen.
“Yes,” said I,
“they're baffled, they've given it up, they're on their way home. We will climb
back to our roost again, and let them go by.”
So we climbed
back. The king listened a moment and said:
“They still
search—I wit the sign. We did best to abide.”
He was right. He
knew more about hunting than I did. The noise approached steadily, but not with
a rush. The king said:
“They reason that
we were advantaged by no parlous start of them, and being on foot are as yet no
mighty way from where we took the water.”
“Yes, sire, that
is about it, I am afraid, though I was hoping better things.”
The noise drew
nearer and nearer, and soon the van was drifting under us, on both sides of the
water. A voice called a halt from the other bank, and said:
“An they were so
minded, they could get to yon tree by this branch that overhangs, and yet not
touch ground. Ye will do well to send a man up it.”
“Marry, that we
will do!”
I was obliged to
admire my cuteness in foreseeing this very thing and swapping trees to beat it.
But, don't you know, there are some things that can beat smartness and
foresight? Awkwardness and stupidity can. The best swordsman in the world
doesn't need to fear the second best swordsman in the world; no, the person for
him to be afraid of is some ignorant antagonist who has never had a sword in
his hand before; he doesn't do the thing he ought to do, and so the expert
isn't prepared for him; he does the thing he ought not to do; and often it
catches the expert out and ends him on the spot. Well, how could I, with all my
gifts, make any valuable preparation against a near-sighted, cross-eyed,
pudding-headed clown who would aim himself at the wrong tree and hit the right
one? And that is what he did. He went for the wrong tree, which was, of course,
the right one by mistake, and up he started.
Matters were
serious now. We remained still, and awaited developments. The peasant toiled
his difficult way up. The king raised himself up and stood; he made a leg
ready, and when the comer's head arrived in reach of it there was a dull thud,
and down went the man floundering to the ground. There was a wild outbreak of
anger below, and the mob swarmed in from all around, and there we were treed,
and prisoners. Another man started up; the bridging bough was detected, and a
volunteer started up the tree that furnished the bridge. The king ordered me to
play Horatius and keep the bridge. For a while the enemy came thick and fast;
but no matter, the head man of each procession always got a buffet that
dislodged him as soon as he came in reach. The king's spirits rose, his joy was
limitless. He said that if nothing occurred to mar the prospect we should have
a beautiful night, for on this line of tactics we could hold the tree against
the whole country-side.
However, the mob
soon came to that conclusion themselves; wherefore they called off the assault
and began to debate other plans. They had no weapons, but there were plenty of
stones, and stones might answer. We had no objections. A stone might possibly
penetrate to us once in a while, but it wasn't very likely; we were well
protected by boughs and foliage, and were not visible from any good aiming
point. If they would but waste half an hour in stonethrowing, the dark would
come to our help. We were feeling very well satisfied. We could smile; almost
laugh.
But we didn't;
which was just as well, for we should have been interrupted. Before the stones
had been raging through the leaves and bouncing from the boughs fifteen
minutes, we began to notice a smell. A couple of sniffs of it was enough of an
explanation—it was smoke! Our game was up at last. We recognized that. When
smoke invites you, you have to come. They raised their pile of dry brush and
damp weeds higher and higher, and when they saw the thick cloud begin to roll
up and smother the tree, they broke out in a storm of joy-clamors. I got enough
breath to say:
“Proceed, my
liege; after you is manners.”
The king gasped:
“Follow me down,
and then back thyself against one side of the trunk, and leave me the other.
Then will we fight. Let each pile his dead according to his own fashion and
taste.”
Then he
descended, barking and coughing, and I followed. I struck the ground an instant
after him; we sprang to our appointed places, and began to give and take with
all our might. The powwow and racket were prodigious; it was a tempest of riot
and confusion and thick-falling blows. Suddenly some horsemen tore into the midst
of the crowd, and a voice shouted:
“Hold—or ye are
dead men!”
How good it
sounded! The owner of the voice bore all the marks of a gentleman: picturesque
and costly raiment, the aspect of command, a hard countenance, with complexion
and features marred by dissipation. The mob fell humbly back, like so many
spaniels. The gentleman inspected us critically, then said sharply to the
peasants:
“What are ye
doing to these people?”
“They be madmen,
worshipful sir, that have come wandering we know not whence, and—”
“Ye know not
whence? Do ye pretend ye know them not?”
“Most honored
sir, we speak but the truth. They are strangers and unknown to any in this
region; and they be the most violent and bloodthirsty madmen that ever—”
“Peace! Ye know
not what ye say. They are not mad. Who are ye? And whence are ye? Explain.”
“We are but
peaceful strangers, sir,” I said, “and traveling upon our own concerns. We are
from a far country, and unacquainted here. We have purposed no harm; and yet
but for your brave interference and protection these people would have killed
us. As you have divined, sir, we are not mad; neither are we violent or
bloodthirsty.”
The gentleman
turned to his retinue and said calmly: “Lash me these animals to their
kennels!”
The mob vanished
in an instant; and after them plunged the horsemen, laying about them with
their whips and pitilessly riding down such as were witless enough to keep the
road instead of taking to the bush. The shrieks and supplications presently
died away in the distance, and soon the horsemen began to straggle back.
Meantime the gentleman had been questioning us more closely, but had dug no
particulars out of us. We were lavish of recognition of the service he was
doing us, but we revealed nothing more than that we were friendless strangers
from a far country. When the escort were all returned, the gentleman said to
one of his servants:
“Bring the
led-horses and mount these people.”
“Yes, my lord.”
We were placed
toward the rear, among the servants. We traveled pretty fast, and finally drew
rein some time after dark at a roadside inn some ten or twelve miles from the
scene of our troubles. My lord went immediately to his room, after ordering his
supper, and we saw no more of him. At dawn in the morning we breakfasted and
made ready to start.
My lord's chief
attendant sauntered forward at that moment with indolent grace, and said:
“Ye have said ye
should continue upon this road, which is our direction likewise; wherefore my
lord, the earl Grip, hath given commandment that ye retain the horses and ride,
and that certain of us ride with ye a twenty mile to a fair town that hight
Cambenet, whenso ye shall be out of peril.”
We could do
nothing less than express our thanks and accept the offer. We jogged along, six
in the party, at a moderate and comfortable gait, and in conversation learned
that my lord Grip was a very great personage in his own region, which lay a
day's journey beyond Cambenet. We loitered to such a degree that it was near
the middle of the forenoon when we entered the market square of the town. We
dismounted, and left our thanks once more for my lord, and then approached a
crowd assembled in the center of the square, to see what might be the object of
interest. It was the remnant of that old peregrinating band of slaves! So they
had been dragging their chains about, all this weary time. That poor husband
was gone, and also many others; and some few purchases had been added to the
gang. The king was not interested, and wanted to move along, but I was
absorbed, and full of pity. I could not take my eyes away from these worn and
wasted wrecks of humanity. There they sat, grounded upon the ground, silent,
uncomplaining, with bowed heads, a pathetic sight. And by hideous contrast, a
redundant orator was making a speech to another gathering not thirty steps
away, in fulsome laudation of “our glorious British liberties!”
I was boiling. I
had forgotten I was a plebeian, I was remembering I was a man. Cost what it
might, I would mount that rostrum and—
Click! the king
and I were handcuffed together! Our companions, those servants, had done it; my
lord Grip stood looking on. The king burst out in a fury, and said:
“What meaneth
this ill-mannered jest?”
My lord merely
said to his head miscreant, coolly:
“Put up the
slaves and sell them!”
SLAVES! The word
had a new sound—and how unspeakably awful! The king lifted his manacles and
brought them down with a deadly force; but my lord was out of the way when they
arrived. A dozen of the rascal's servants sprang forward, and in a moment we
were helpless, with our hands bound behind us. We so loudly and so earnestly
proclaimed ourselves freemen, that we got the interested attention of that
liberty-mouthing orator and his patriotic crowd, and they gathered about us and
assumed a very determined attitude. The orator said:
“If, indeed, ye
are freemen, ye have nought to fear—the God-given liberties of Britain are
about ye for your shield and shelter! (Applause.) Ye shall soon see. Bring
forth your proofs.”
“What proofs?”
“Proof that ye
are freemen.”
Ah—I remembered!
I came to myself; I said nothing. But the king stormed out:
“Thou'rt insane,
man. It were better, and more in reason, that this thief and scoundrel here
prove that we are NOT freemen.”
You see, he knew
his own laws just as other people so often know the laws; by words, not by
effects. They take a MEANING, and get to be very vivid, when you come to apply
them to yourself.
All hands shook
their heads and looked disappointed; some turned away, no longer interested.
The orator said—and this time in the tones of business, not of sentiment:
“An ye do not
know your country's laws, it were time ye learned them. Ye are strangers to us;
ye will not deny that. Ye may be freemen, we do not deny that; but also ye may
be slaves. The law is clear: it doth not require the claimant to prove ye are
slaves, it requireth you to prove ye are not.”
I said:
“Dear sir, give
us only time to send to Astolat; or give us only time to send to the Valley of
Holiness—”
“Peace, good man,
these are extraordinary requests, and you may not hope to have them granted. It
would cost much time, and would unwarrantably inconvenience your master—”
“MASTER, idiot!”
stormed the king. “I have no master, I myself am the m—”
“Silence, for
God's sake!”
I got the words
out in time to stop the king. We were in trouble enough already; it could not
help us any to give these people the notion that we were lunatics.
There is no use
in stringing out the details. The earl put us up and sold us at auction. This
same infernal law had existed in our own South in my own time, more than
thirteen hundred years later, and under it hundreds of freemen who could not
prove that they were freemen had been sold into lifelong slavery without the
circumstance making any particular impression upon me; but the minute law and
the auction block came into my personal experience, a thing which had been
merely improper before became suddenly hellish. Well, that's the way we are
made.
Yes, we were sold
at auction, like swine. In a big town and an active market we should have
brought a good price; but this place was utterly stagnant and so we sold at a
figure which makes me ashamed, every time I think of it. The King of England
brought seven dollars, and his prime minister nine; whereas the king was easily
worth twelve dollars and I as easily worth fifteen. But that is the way things
always go; if you force a sale on a dull market, I don't care what the property
is, you are going to make a poor business of it, and you can make up your mind
to it. If the earl had had wit enough to—
However, there is
no occasion for my working my sympathies up on his account. Let him go, for the
present; I took his number, so to speak.
The slave-dealer
bought us both, and hitched us onto that long chain of his, and we constituted
the rear of his procession. We took up our line of march and passed out of
Cambenet at noon; and it seemed to me unaccountably strange and odd that the
King of England and his chief minister, marching manacled and fettered and
yoked, in a slave convoy, could move by all manner of idle men and women, and
under windows where sat the sweet and the lovely, and yet never attract a
curious eye, never provoke a single remark. Dear, dear, it only shows that
there is nothing diviner about a king than there is about a tramp, after all.
He is just a cheap and hollow artificiality when you don't know he is a king.
But reveal his quality, and dear me it takes your very breath away to look at
him. I reckon we are all fools. Born so, no doubt.
Chapter XXXV.
A PITIFUL
INCIDENT
IT'S a world of
surprises. The king brooded; this was natural. What would he brood about,
should you say? Why, about the prodigious nature of his fall, of course—from
the loftiest place in the world to the lowest; from the most illustrious
station in the world to the obscurest; from the grandest vocation among men to
the basest. No, I take my oath that the thing that graveled him most, to start
with, was not this, but the price he had fetched! He couldn't seem to get over
that seven dollars. Well, it stunned me so, when I first found it out, that I
couldn't believe it; it didn't seem natural. But as soon as my mental sight
cleared and I got a right focus on it, I saw I was mistaken; it WAS natural.
For this reason: a king is a mere artificiality, and so a king's feelings, like
the impulses of an automatic doll, are mere artificialities; but as a man, he
is a reality, and his feelings, as a man, are real, not phantoms. It shames the
average man to be valued below his own estimate of his worth, and the king certainly
wasn't anything more than an average man, if he was up that high.
Confound him, he
wearied me with arguments to show that in anything like a fair market he would
have fetched twenty-five dollars, sure—a thing which was plainly nonsense, and
full or the baldest conceit; I wasn't worth it myself. But it was tender ground
for me to argue on. In fact, I had to simply shirk argument and do the
diplomatic instead. I had to throw conscience aside, and brazenly concede that
he ought to have brought twenty-five dollars; whereas I was quite well aware
that in all the ages, the world had never seen a king that was worth half the
money, and during the next thirteen centuries wouldn't see one that was worth
the fourth of it. Yes, he tired me. If he began to talk about the crops; or
about the recent weather; or about the condition of politics; or about dogs, or
cats, or morals, or theology—no matter what—I sighed, for I knew what was
coming; he was going to get out of it a palliation of that tiresome
seven-dollar sale. Wherever we halted where there was a crowd, he would give me
a look which said plainly: “if that thing could be tried over again now, with
this kind of folk, you would see a different result.” Well, when he was first
sold, it secretly tickled me to see him go for seven dollars; but before he was
done with his sweating and worrying I wished he had fetched a hundred. The
thing never got a chance to die, for every day, at one place or another,
possible purchasers looked us over, and, as often as any other way, their
comment on the king was something like this:
“Here's a
two-dollar-and-a-half chump with a thirtydollar style. Pity but style was
marketable.”
At last this sort
of remark produced an evil result. Our owner was a practical person and he
perceived that this defect must be mended if he hoped to find a purchaser for
the king. So he went to work to take the style out of his sacred majesty. I
could have given the man some valuable advice, but I didn't; you mustn't
volunteer advice to a slave-driver unless you want to damage the cause you are
arguing for. I had found it a sufficiently difficult job to reduce the king's
style to a peasant's style, even when he was a willing and anxious pupil; now
then, to undertake to reduce the king's style to a slave's style—and by
force—go to! it was a stately contract. Never mind the details—it will save me
trouble to let you imagine them. I will only remark that at the end of a week
there was plenty of evidence that lash and club and fist had done their work
well; the king's body was a sight to see—and to weep over; but his spirit?—why,
it wasn't even phased. Even that dull clod of a slave-driver was able to see
that there can be such a thing as a slave who will remain a man till he dies;
whose bones you can break, but whose manhood you can't. This man found that
from his first effort down to his latest, he couldn't ever come within reach of
the king, but the king was ready to plunge for him, and did it. So he gave up
at last, and left the king in possession of his style unimpaired. The fact is,
the king was a good deal more than a king, he was a man; and when a man is a
man, you can't knock it out of him.
We had a rough
time for a month, tramping to and fro in the earth, and suffering. And what
Englishman was the most interested in the slavery question by that time? His
grace the king! Yes; from being the most indifferent, he was become the most
interested. He was become the bitterest hater of the institution I had ever
heard talk. And so I ventured to ask once more a question which I had asked
years before and had gotten such a sharp answer that I had not thought it
prudent to meddle in the matter further. Would he abolish slavery?
His answer was as
sharp as before, but it was music this time; I shouldn't ever wish to hear
pleasanter, though the profanity was not good, being awkwardly put together,
and with the crash-word almost in the middle instead of at the end, where, of
course, it ought to have been.
I was ready and
willing to get free now; I hadn't wanted to get free any sooner. No, I cannot
quite say that. I had wanted to, but I had not been willing to take desperate
chances, and had always dissuaded the king from them. But now—ah, it was a new
atmosphere! Liberty would be worth any cost that might be put upon it now. I
set about a plan, and was straightway charmed with it. It would require time,
yes, and patience, too, a great deal of both. One could invent quicker ways,
and fully as sure ones; but none that would be as picturesque as this; none
that could be made so dramatic. And so I was not going to give this one up. It
might delay us months, but no matter, I would carry it out or break something.
Now and then we
had an adventure. One night we were overtaken by a snow-storm while still a
mile from the village we were making for. Almost instantly we were shut up as
in a fog, the driving snow was so thick. You couldn't see a thing, and we were
soon lost. The slave-driver lashed us desperately, for he saw ruin before him,
but his lashings only made matters worse, for they drove us further from the
road and from likelihood of succor. So we had to stop at last and slump down in
the snow where we were. The storm continued until toward midnight, then ceased.
By this time two of our feebler men and three of our women were dead, and
others past moving and threatened with death. Our master was nearly beside
himself. He stirred up the living, and made us stand, jump, slap ourselves, to
restore our circulation, and he helped as well as he could with his whip.
Now came a
diversion. We heard shrieks and yells, and soon a woman came running and
crying; and seeing our group, she flung herself into our midst and begged for
protection. A mob of people came tearing after her, some with torches, and they
said she was a witch who had caused several cows to die by a strange disease,
and practiced her arts by help of a devil in the form of a black cat. This poor
woman had been stoned until she hardly looked human, she was so battered and
bloody. The mob wanted to burn her.
Well, now, what
do you suppose our master did? When we closed around this poor creature to
shelter her, he saw his chance. He said, burn her here, or they shouldn't have
her at all. Imagine that! They were willing. They fastened her to a post; they
brought wood and piled it about her; they applied the torch while she shrieked
and pleaded and strained her two young daughters to her breast; and our brute,
with a heart solely for business, lashed us into position about the stake and
warmed us into life and commercial value by the same fire which took away the
innocent life of that poor harmless mother. That was the sort of master we had.
I took HIS number. That snow-storm cost him nine of his flock; and he was more
brutal to us than ever, after that, for many days together, he was so enraged
over his loss.
We had adventures
all along. One day we ran into a procession. And such a procession! All the
riffraff of the kingdom seemed to be comprehended in it; and all drunk at that.
In the van was a cart with a coffin in it, and on the coffin sat a comely young
girl of about eighteen suckling a baby, which she squeezed to her breast in a
passion of love every little while, and every little while wiped from its face
the tears which her eyes rained down upon it; and always the foolish little
thing smiled up at her, happy and content, kneading her breast with its dimpled
fat hand, which she patted and fondled right over her breaking heart.
Men and women,
boys and girls, trotted along beside or after the cart, hooting, shouting
profane and ribald remarks, singing snatches of foul song, skipping, dancing—a
very holiday of hellions, a sickening sight. We had struck a suburb of London,
outside the walls, and this was a sample of one sort of London society. Our
master secured a good place for us near the gallows. A priest was in
attendance, and he helped the girl climb up, and said comforting words to her,
and made the under-sheriff provide a stool for her. Then he stood there by her
on the gallows, and for a moment looked down upon the mass of upturned faces at
his feet, then out over the solid pavement of heads that stretched away on
every side occupying the vacancies far and near, and then began to tell the
story of the case. And there was pity in his voice—how seldom a sound that was
in that ignorant and savage land! I remember every detail of what he said,
except the words he said it in; and so I change it into my own words:
“Law is intended
to mete out justice. Sometimes it fails. This cannot be helped. We can only
grieve, and be resigned, and pray for the soul of him who falls unfairly by the
arm of the law, and that his fellows may be few. A law sends this poor young
thing to death—and it is right. But another law had placed her where she must
commit her crime or starve with her child—and before God that law is
responsible for both her crime and her ignominious death!
“A little while
ago this young thing, this child of eighteen years, was as happy a wife and
mother as any in England; and her lips were blithe with song, which is the
native speech of glad and innocent hearts. Her young husband was as happy as
she; for he was doing his whole duty, he worked early and late at his
handicraft, his bread was honest bread well and fairly earned, he was
prospering, he was furnishing shelter and sustenance to his family, he was
adding his mite to the wealth of the nation. By consent of a treacherous law,
instant destruction fell upon this holy home and swept it away! That young
husband was waylaid and impressed, and sent to sea. The wife knew nothing of it.
She sought him everywhere, she moved the hardest hearts with the supplications
of her tears, the broken eloquence of her despair. Weeks dragged by, she
watching, waiting, hoping, her mind going slowly to wreck under the burden of
her misery. Little by little all her small possessions went for food. When she
could no longer pay her rent, they turned her out of doors. She begged, while
she had strength; when she was starving at last, and her milk failing, she
stole a piece of linen cloth of the value of a fourth part of a cent, thinking
to sell it and save her child. But she was seen by the owner of the cloth. She
was put in jail and brought to trial. The man testified to the facts. A plea
was made for her, and her sorrowful story was told in her behalf. She spoke,
too, by permission, and said she did steal the cloth, but that her mind was so
disordered of late by trouble that when she was overborne with hunger all acts,
criminal or other, swam meaningless through her brain and she knew nothing
rightly, except that she was so hungry! For a moment all were touched, and
there was disposition to deal mercifully with her, seeing that she was so young
and friendless, and her case so piteous, and the law that robbed her of her
support to blame as being the first and only cause of her transgression; but
the prosecuting officer replied that whereas these things were all true, and
most pitiful as well, still there was much small theft in these days, and
mistimed mercy here would be a danger to property—oh, my God, is there no
property in ruined homes, and orphaned babes, and broken hearts that British
law holds precious!—and so he must require sentence.
“When the judge
put on his black cap, the owner of the stolen linen rose trembling up, his lip
quivering, his face as gray as ashes; and when the awful words came, he cried
out, 'Oh, poor child, poor child, I did not know it was death!' and fell as a
tree falls. When they lifted him up his reason was gone; before the sun was
set, he had taken his own life. A kindly man; a man whose heart was right, at
bottom; add his murder to this that is to be now done here; and charge them
both where they belong—to the rulers and the bitter laws of Britain. The time
is come, my child; let me pray over thee—not FOR thee, dear abused poor heart
and innocent, but for them that be guilty of thy ruin and death, who need it
more.”
After his prayer
they put the noose around the young girl's neck, and they had great trouble to
adjust the knot under her ear, because she was devouring the baby all the time,
wildly kissing it, and snatching it to her face and her breast, and drenching
it with tears, and half moaning, half shrieking all the while, and the baby
crowing, and laughing, and kicking its feet with delight over what it took for
romp and play. Even the hangman couldn't stand it, but turned away. When all
was ready the priest gently pulled and tugged and forced the child out of the
mother's arms, and stepped quickly out of her reach; but she clasped her hands,
and made a wild spring toward him, with a shriek; but the rope—and the
under-sheriff—held her short. Then she went on her knees and stretched out her
hands and cried:
“One more
kiss—oh, my God, one more, one more,—it is the dying that begs it!”
She got it; she
almost smothered the little thing. And when they got it away again, she cried
out:
“Oh, my child, my
darling, it will die! It has no home, it has no father, no friend, no mother—”
“It has them
all!” said that good priest. “All these will I be to it till I die.”
You should have
seen her face then! Gratitude? Lord, what do you want with words to express
that? Words are only painted fire; a look is the fire itself. She gave that
look, and carried it away to the treasury of heaven, where all things that are
divine belong.
Chapter XXXVI.
AN ENCOUNTER IN
THE DARK
LONDON—to a
slave—was a sufficiently interesting place. It was merely a great big village;
and mainly mud and thatch. The streets were muddy, crooked, unpaved. The
populace was an ever flocking and drifting swarm of rags, and splendors, of
nodding plumes and shining armor. The king had a palace there; he saw the
outside of it. It made him sigh; yes, and swear a little, in a poor juvenile
sixth century way. We saw knights and grandees whom we knew, but they didn't
know us in our rags and dirt and raw welts and bruises, and wouldn't have
recognized us if we had hailed them, nor stopped to answer, either, it being
unlawful to speak with slaves on a chain. Sandy passed within ten yards of me
on a mule—hunting for me, I imagined. But the thing which clean broke my heart
was something which happened in front of our old barrack in a square, while we
were enduring the spectacle of a man being boiled to death in oil for
counterfeiting pennies. It was the sight of a newsboy—and I couldn't get at
him! Still, I had one comfort—here was proof that Clarence was still alive and
banging away. I meant to be with him before long; the thought was full of
cheer.
I had one little
glimpse of another thing, one day, which gave me a great uplift. It was a wire
stretching from housetop to housetop. Telegraph or telephone, sure. I did very
much wish I had a little piece of it. It was just what I needed, in order to
carry out my project of escape. My idea was to get loose some night, along with
the king, then gag and bind our master, change clothes with him, batter him
into the aspect of a stranger, hitch him to the slave-chain, assume possession
of the property, march to Camelot, and—
But you get my
idea; you see what a stunning dramatic surprise I would wind up with at the
palace. It was all feasible, if I could only get hold of a slender piece of
iron which I could shape into a lock-pick. I could then undo the lumbering
padlocks with which our chains were fastened, whenever I might choose. But I
never had any luck; no such thing ever happened to fall in my way. However, my
chance came at last. A gentleman who had come twice before to dicker for me,
without result, or indeed any approach to a result, came again. I was far from
expecting ever to belong to him, for the price asked for me from the time I was
first enslaved was exorbitant, and always provoked either anger or derision,
yet my master stuck stubbornly to it—twenty-two dollars. He wouldn't bate a
cent. The king was greatly admired, because of his grand physique, but his
kingly style was against him, and he wasn't salable; nobody wanted that kind of
a slave. I considered myself safe from parting from him because of my
extravagant price. No, I was not expecting to ever belong to this gentleman
whom I have spoken of, but he had something which I expected would belong to me
eventually, if he would but visit us often enough. It was a steel thing with a
long pin to it, with which his long cloth outside garment was fastened together
in front. There were three of them. He had disappointed me twice, because he
did not come quite close enough to me to make my project entirely safe; but
this time I succeeded; I captured the lower clasp of the three, and when he
missed it he thought he had lost it on the way.
I had a chance to
be glad about a minute, then straightway a chance to be sad again. For when the
purchase was about to fail, as usual, the master suddenly spoke up and said
what would be worded thus—in modern English:
“I'll tell you
what I'll do. I'm tired supporting these two for no good. Give me twenty-two
dollars for this one, and I'll throw the other one in.”
The king couldn't
get his breath, he was in such a fury. He began to choke and gag, and meantime
the master and the gentleman moved away discussing.
“An ye will keep
the offer open—”
“'Tis open till
the morrow at this hour.”
“Then I will
answer you at that time,” said the gentleman, and disappeared, the master
following him.
I had a time of
it to cool the king down, but I managed it. I whispered in his ear, to this
effect:
“Your grace WILL
go for nothing, but after another fashion. And so shall I. To-night we shall
both be free.”
“Ah! How is
that?”
“With this thing
which I have stolen, I will unlock these locks and cast off these chains
to-night. When he comes about nine-thirty to inspect us for the night, we will
seize him, gag him, batter him, and early in the morning we will march out of
this town, proprietors of this caravan of slaves.”
That was as far
as I went, but the king was charmed and satisfied. That evening we waited
patiently for our fellow-slaves to get to sleep and signify it by the usual
sign, for you must not take many chances on those poor fellows if you can avoid
it. It is best to keep your own secrets. No doubt they fidgeted only about as usual,
but it didn't seem so to me. It seemed to me that they were going to be forever
getting down to their regular snoring. As the time dragged on I got nervously
afraid we shouldn't have enough of it left for our needs; so I made several
premature attempts, and merely delayed things by it; for I couldn't seem to
touch a padlock, there in the dark, without starting a rattle out of it which
interrupted somebody's sleep and made him turn over and wake some more of the
gang.
But finally I did
get my last iron off, and was a free man once more. I took a good breath of
relief, and reached for the king's irons. Too late! in comes the master, with a
light in one hand and his heavy walkingstaff in the other. I snuggled close
among the wallow of snorers, to conceal as nearly as possible that I was naked
of irons; and I kept a sharp lookout and prepared to spring for my man the
moment he should bend over me.
But he didn't
approach. He stopped, gazed absently toward our dusky mass a minute, evidently
thinking about something else; then set down his light, moved musingly toward
the door, and before a body could imagine what he was going to do, he was out
of the door and had closed it behind him.
“Quick!” said the
king. “Fetch him back!”
Of course, it was
the thing to do, and I was up and out in a moment. But, dear me, there were no
lamps in those days, and it was a dark night. But I glimpsed a dim figure a few
steps away. I darted for it, threw myself upon it, and then there was a state
of things and lively! We fought and scuffled and struggled, and drew a crowd in
no time. They took an immense interest in the fight and encouraged us all they
could, and, in fact, couldn't have been pleasanter or more cordial if it had
been their own fight. Then a tremendous row broke out behind us, and as much as
half of our audience left us, with a rush, to invest some sympathy in that.
Lanterns began to swing in all directions; it was the watch gathering from far
and near. Presently a halberd fell across my back, as a reminder, and I knew what
it meant. I was in custody. So was my adversary. We were marched off toward
prison, one on each side of the watchman. Here was disaster, here was a fine
scheme gone to sudden destruction! I tried to imagine what would happen when
the master should discover that it was I who had been fighting him; and what
would happen if they jailed us together in the general apartment for brawlers
and petty law-breakers, as was the custom; and what might—
Just then my
antagonist turned his face around in my direction, the freckled light from the
watchman's tin lantern fell on it, and, by George, he was the wrong man!
Chapter XXXVII.
AN AWFUL
PREDICAMENT
SLEEP? It was
impossible. It would naturally have been impossible in that noisome cavern of a
jail, with its mangy crowd of drunken, quarrelsome, and song-singing
rapscallions. But the thing that made sleep all the more a thing not to be
dreamed of, was my racking impatience to get out of this place and find out the
whole size of what might have happened yonder in the slave-quarters in
consequence of that intolerable miscarriage of mine.
It was a long
night, but the morning got around at last. I made a full and frank explanation
to the court. I said I was a slave, the property of the great Earl Grip, who
had arrived just after dark at the Tabard inn in the village on the other side
of the water, and had stopped there over night, by compulsion, he being taken
deadly sick with a strange and sudden disorder. I had been ordered to cross to
the city in all haste and bring the best physician; I was doing my best;
naturally I was running with all my might; the night was dark, I ran against
this common person here, who seized me by the throat and began to pummel me,
although I told him my errand, and implored him, for the sake of the great earl
my master's mortal peril—
The common person
interrupted and said it was a lie; and was going to explain how I rushed upon
him and attacked him without a word—
“Silence,
sirrah!” from the court. “Take him hence and give him a few stripes whereby to
teach him how to treat the servant of a nobleman after a different fashion
another time. Go!”
Then the court
begged my pardon, and hoped I would not fail to tell his lordship it was in no
wise the court's fault that this high-handed thing had happened. I said I would
make it all right, and so took my leave. Took it just in time, too; he was
starting to ask me why I didn't fetch out these facts the moment I was arrested.
I said I would if I had thought of it—which was true—but that I was so battered
by that man that all my wit was knocked out of me—and so forth and so on, and
got myself away, still mumbling. I didn't wait for breakfast. No grass grew
under my feet. I was soon at the slave quarters. Empty—everybody gone! That is,
everybody except one body—the slave-master's. It lay there all battered to
pulp; and all about were the evidences of a terrific fight. There was a rude
board coffin on a cart at the door, and workmen, assisted by the police, were
thinning a road through the gaping crowd in order that they might bring it in.
I picked out a
man humble enough in life to condescend to talk with one so shabby as I, and
got his account of the matter.
“There were
sixteen slaves here. They rose against their master in the night, and thou
seest how it ended.”
“Yes. How did it
begin?”
“There was no
witness but the slaves. They said the slave that was most valuable got free of
his bonds and escaped in some strange way—by magic arts 'twas thought, by
reason that he had no key, and the locks were neither broke nor in any wise
injured. When the master discovered his loss, he was mad with despair, and
threw himself upon his people with his heavy stick, who resisted and brake his
back and in other and divers ways did give him hurts that brought him swiftly
to his end.”
“This is
dreadful. It will go hard with the slaves, no doubt, upon the trial.”
“Marry, the trial
is over.”
“Over!”
“Would they be a
week, think you—and the matter so simple? They were not the half of a quarter
of an hour at it.”
“Why, I don't see
how they could determine which were the guilty ones in so short a time.”
“WHICH ones?
Indeed, they considered not particulars like to that. They condemned them in a
body. Wit ye not the law?—which men say the Romans left behind them here when
they went—that if one slave killeth his master all the slaves of that man must
die for it.”
“True. I had
forgotten. And when will these die?”
“Belike within a
four and twenty hours; albeit some say they will wait a pair of days more, if
peradventure they may find the missing one meantime.”
The missing one!
It made me feel uncomfortable.
“Is it likely
they will find him?”
“Before the day
is spent—yes. They seek him everywhere. They stand at the gates of the town,
with certain of the slaves who will discover him to them if he cometh, and none
can pass out but he will be first examined.”
“Might one see
the place where the rest are confined?”
“The outside of
it—yes. The inside of it—but ye will not want to see that.”
I took the
address of that prison for future reference and then sauntered off. At the
first second-hand clothing shop I came to, up a back street, I got a rough rig
suitable for a common seaman who might be going on a cold voyage, and bound up
my face with a liberal bandage, saying I had a toothache. This concealed my
worst bruises. It was a transformation. I no longer resembled my former self.
Then I struck out for that wire, found it and followed it to its den. It was a
little room over a butcher's shop—which meant that business wasn't very brisk
in the telegraphic line. The young chap in charge was drowsing at his table. I
locked the door and put the vast key in my bosom. This alarmed the young
fellow, and he was going to make a noise; but I said:
“Save your wind;
if you open your mouth you are dead, sure. Tackle your instrument. Lively, now!
Call Camelot.”
“This doth amaze
me! How should such as you know aught of such matters as—”
“Call Camelot! I
am a desperate man. Call Camelot, or get away from the instrument and I will do
it myself.”
“What—you?”
“Yes—certainly.
Stop gabbling. Call the palace.”
He made the call.
“Now, then, call
Clarence.”
“Clarence WHO?”
“Never mind
Clarence who. Say you want Clarence; you'll get an answer.”
He did so. We
waited five nerve-straining minutes—ten minutes—how long it did seem!—and then
came a click that was as familiar to me as a human voice; for Clarence had been
my own pupil.
“Now, my lad,
vacate! They would have known MY touch, maybe, and so your call was surest; but
I'm all right now.”
He vacated the
place and cocked his ear to listen—but it didn't win. I used a cipher. I didn't
waste any time in sociabilities with Clarence, but squared away for business,
straight-off—thus:
“The king is here
and in danger. We were captured and brought here as slaves. We should not be
able to prove our identity—and the fact is, I am not in a position to try. Send
a telegram for the palace here which will carry conviction with it.”
His answer came
straight back:
“They don't know
anything about the telegraph; they haven't had any experience yet, the line to
London is so new. Better not venture that. They might hang you. Think up
something else.”
Might hang us!
Little he knew how closely he was crowding the facts. I couldn't think up
anything for the moment. Then an idea struck me, and I started it along:
“Send five
hundred picked knights with Launcelot in the lead; and send them on the jump.
Let them enter by the southwest gate, and look out for the man with a white
cloth around his right arm.”
The answer was
prompt:
“They shall start
in half an hour.”
“All right,
Clarence; now tell this lad here that I'm a friend of yours and a dead-head;
and that he must be discreet and say nothing about this visit of mine.”
The instrument
began to talk to the youth and I hurried away. I fell to ciphering. In half an
hour it would be nine o'clock. Knights and horses in heavy armor couldn't
travel very fast. These would make the best time they could, and now that the
ground was in good condition, and no snow or mud, they would probably make a
seven-mile gait; they would have to change horses a couple of times; they would
arrive about six, or a little after; it would still be plenty light enough;
they would see the white cloth which I should tie around my right arm, and I
would take command. We would surround that prison and have the king out in no
time. It would be showy and picturesque enough, all things considered, though I
would have preferred noonday, on account of the more theatrical aspect the
thing would have.
Now, then, in
order to increase the strings to my bow, I thought I would look up some of
those people whom I had formerly recognized, and make myself known. That would
help us out of our scrape, without the knights. But I must proceed cautiously,
for it was a risky business. I must get into sumptuous raiment, and it wouldn't
do to run and jump into it. No, I must work up to it by degrees, buying suit
after suit of clothes, in shops wide apart, and getting a little finer article
with each change, until I should finally reach silk and velvet, and be ready
for my project. So I started.
But the scheme
fell through like scat! The first corner I turned, I came plump upon one of our
slaves, snooping around with a watchman. I coughed at the moment, and he gave
me a sudden look that bit right into my marrow. I judge he thought he had heard
that cough before. I turned immediately into a shop and worked along down the
counter, pricing things and watching out of the corner of my eye. Those people
had stopped, and were talking together and looking in at the door. I made up my
mind to get out the back way, if there was a back way, and I asked the
shopwoman if I could step out there and look for the escaped slave, who was
believed to be in hiding back there somewhere, and said I was an officer in
disguise, and my pard was yonder at the door with one of the murderers in
charge, and would she be good enough to step there and tell him he needn't
wait, but had better go at once to the further end of the back alley and be
ready to head him off when I rousted him out.
She was blazing
with eagerness to see one of those already celebrated murderers, and she
started on the errand at once. I slipped out the back way, locked the door
behind me, put the key in my pocket and started off, chuckling to myself and
comfortable.
Well, I had gone
and spoiled it again, made another mistake. A double one, in fact. There were
plenty of ways to get rid of that officer by some simple and plausible device,
but no, I must pick out a picturesque one; it is the crying defect of my
character. And then, I had ordered my procedure upon what the officer, being
human, would NATURALLY do; whereas when you are least expecting it, a man will
now and then go and do the very thing which it's NOT natural for him to do. The
natural thing for the officer to do, in this case, was to follow straight on my
heels; he would find a stout oaken door, securely locked, between him and me;
before he could break it down, I should be far away and engaged in slipping
into a succession of baffling disguises which would soon get me into a sort of
raiment which was a surer protection from meddling law-dogs in Britain than any
amount of mere innocence and purity of character. But instead of doing the natural
thing, the officer took me at my word, and followed my instructions. And so, as
I came trotting out of that cul de sac, full of satisfaction with my own
cleverness, he turned the corner and I walked right into his handcuffs. If I
had known it was a cul de sac—however, there isn't any excusing a blunder like
that, let it go. Charge it up to profit and loss.
Of course, I was
indignant, and swore I had just come ashore from a long voyage, and all that
sort of thing—just to see, you know, if it would deceive that slave. But it
didn't. He knew me. Then I reproached him for betraying me. He was more
surprised than hurt. He stretched his eyes wide, and said:
“What, wouldst
have me let thee, of all men, escape and not hang with us, when thou'rt the
very CAUSE of our hanging? Go to!”
“Go to” was their
way of saying “I should smile!” or “I like that!” Queer talkers, those people.
Well, there was a
sort of bastard justice in his view of the case, and so I dropped the matter.
When you can't cure a disaster by argument, what is the use to argue? It isn't
my way. So I only said:
“You're not going
to be hanged. None of us are.”
Both men laughed,
and the slave said:
“Ye have not
ranked as a fool—before. You might better keep your reputation, seeing the
strain would not be for long.”
“It will stand
it, I reckon. Before to-morrow we shall be out of prison, and free to go where
we will, besides.”
The witty officer
lifted at his left ear with his thumb, made a rasping noise in his throat, and
said:
“Out of
prison—yes—ye say true. And free likewise to go where ye will, so ye wander not
out of his grace the Devil's sultry realm.”
I kept my temper,
and said, indifferently:
“Now I suppose
you really think we are going to hang within a day or two.”
“I thought it not
many minutes ago, for so the thing was decided and proclaimed.”
“Ah, then you've
changed your mind, is that it?”
“Even that. I
only THOUGHT, then; I KNOW, now.”
I felt
sarcastical, so I said:
“Oh, sapient
servant of the law, condescend to tell us, then, what you KNOW.”
“That ye will all
be hanged TO-DAY, at mid-afternoon! Oho! that shot hit home! Lean upon me.”
The fact is I did
need to lean upon somebody. My knights couldn't arrive in time. They would be
as much as three hours too late. Nothing in the world could save the King of
England; nor me, which was more important. More important, not merely to me,
but to the nation—the only nation on earth standing ready to blossom into
civilization. I was sick. I said no more, there wasn't anything to say. I knew
what the man meant; that if the missing slave was found, the postponement would
be revoked, the execution take place to-day. Well, the missing slave was found.
Chapter XXXVIII.
SIR LAUNCELOT AND
KNIGHTS TO THE RESCUE
NEARING four in
the afternoon. The scene was just outside the walls of London. A cool,
comfortable, superb day, with a brilliant sun; the kind of day to make one want
to live, not die. The multitude was prodigious and far-reaching; and yet we
fifteen poor devils hadn't a friend in it. There was something painful in that
thought, look at it how you might. There we sat, on our tall scaffold, the butt
of the hate and mockery of all those enemies. We were being made a holiday
spectacle. They had built a sort of grand stand for the nobility and gentry,
and these were there in full force, with their ladies. We recognized a good
many of them.
The crowd got a
brief and unexpected dash of diversion out of the king. The moment we were
freed of our bonds he sprang up, in his fantastic rags, with face bruised out
of all recognition, and proclaimed himself Arthur, King of Britain, and
denounced the awful penalties of treason upon every soul there present if hair
of his sacred head were touched. It startled and surprised him to hear them
break into a vast roar of laughter. It wounded his dignity, and he locked
himself up in silence. then, although the crowd begged him to go on, and tried
to provoke him to it by catcalls, jeers, and shouts of
“Let him speak!
The king! The king! his humble subjects hunger and thirst for words of wisdom
out of the mouth of their master his Serene and Sacred Raggedness!”
But it went for
nothing. He put on all his majesty and sat under this rain of contempt and
insult unmoved. He certainly was great in his way. Absently, I had taken off my
white bandage and wound it about my right arm. When the crowd noticed this,
they began upon me. They said:
“Doubtless this
sailor-man is his minister—observe his costly badge of office!”
I let them go on
until they got tired, and then I said:
“Yes, I am his
minister, The Boss; and to-morrow you will hear that from Camelot which—”
I got no further.
They drowned me out with joyous derision. But presently there was silence; for
the sheriffs of London, in their official robes, with their subordinates, began
to make a stir which indicated that business was about to begin. In the hush
which followed, our crime was recited, the death warrant read, then everybody
uncovered while a priest uttered a prayer.
Then a slave was
blindfolded; the hangman unslung his rope. There lay the smooth road below us,
we upon one side of it, the banked multitude wailing its other side—a good
clear road, and kept free by the police—how good it would be to see my five
hundred horsemen come tearing down it! But no, it was out of the possibilities.
I followed its receding thread out into the distance—not a horseman on it, or
sign of one.
There was a jerk,
and the slave hung dangling; dangling and hideously squirming, for his limbs
were not tied.
A second rope was
unslung, in a moment another slave was dangling.
In a minute a
third slave was struggling in the air. It was dreadful. I turned away my head a
moment, and when I turned back I missed the king! They were blindfolding him! I
was paralyzed; I couldn't move, I was choking, my tongue was petrified. They
finished blindfolding him, they led him under the rope. I couldn't shake off
that clinging impotence. But when I saw them put the noose around his neck,
then everything let go in me and I made a spring to the rescue—and as I made it
I shot one more glance abroad—by George! here they came, a-tilting!—five
hundred mailed and belted knights on bicycles!
The grandest
sight that ever was seen. Lord, how the plumes streamed, how the sun flamed and
flashed from the endless procession of webby wheels!
I waved my right
arm as Launcelot swept in—he recognized my rag—I tore away noose and bandage,
and shouted:
“On your knees,
every rascal of you, and salute the king! Who fails shall sup in hell
to-night!”
I always use that
high style when I'm climaxing an effect. Well, it was noble to see Launcelot
and the boys swarm up onto that scaffold and heave sheriffs and such overboard.
And it was fine to see that astonished multitude go down on their knees and beg
their lives of the king they had just been deriding and insulting. And as he
stood apart there, receiving this homage in rags, I thought to myself, well,
really there is something peculiarly grand about the gait and bearing of a
king, after all.
I was immensely
satisfied. Take the whole situation all around, it was one of the gaudiest
effects I ever instigated.
And presently up
comes Clarence, his own self! and winks, and says, very modernly:
“Good deal of a
surprise, wasn't it? I knew you'd like it. I've had the boys practicing this
long time, privately; and just hungry for a chance to show off.”
Chapter XXXIX.
THE YANKEE'S
FIGHT WITH THE KNIGHTS
HOME again, at
Camelot. A morning or two later I found the paper, damp from the press, by my
plate at the breakfast table. I turned to the advertising columns, knowing I
should find something of personal interest to me there. It was this:
DE PAR LE ROI.
Know that the
great lord and illustrious Knight, SIR SAGRAMOR LE DESIROUS naving condescended
to meet the King's Minister, Hank Morgan, the which is surnamed The Boss, for
satisfgction of offence anciently given, these wilL engage in the lists by
Camelot about the fourth hour of the morning of the sixteenth day of this next
succeeding month. The battle will be a l outrance, sith the said offence was of
a deadly sort, admitting of no comPosition.
DE PAR LE ROI
Clarence's
editorial reference to this affair was to this effect:
It will be
observed, by a gl7nce at our advertising columns, that the community is to be
favored with a treat of unusual interest in the tournament line. The n ames of
the artists are warrant of good enterTemment. The box-office will be open at
noon of the 13th; admission 3 cents, reserved seatsh 5; proceeds to go to the
hospital fund The royal pair and all the Court will be present. With these
exceptions, and the press and the clergy, the free list is strictly susPended.
Parties are hereby warned against buying tickets of speculators; they will not
be good at the door. Everybody knows and likes The Boss, everybody knows and
likes Sir Sag.; come, let us give the lads a good sendoff. ReMember, the
proceeds go to a great and free charity, and one whose broad begevolence
stretches out its helping hand, warm with the blood of a loving heart, to all
that suffer, regardless of race, creed, condition or color—the only charity yet
established in the earth which has no politico-religious stopcock on its
compassion, but says Here flows the stream, let ALL come and drink! Turn out,
all hands! fetch along your dou3hnuts and your gum-drops and have a good time.
Pie for sale on the grounds, and rocks to crack it with; and
ciRcus-lemonade—three drops of lime juice to a barrel of water. N.B. This is the
first tournament under the new law, whidh allow each combatant to use any
weapon he may prefer. You may want to make a note of that.
Up to the day
set, there was no talk in all Britain of anything but this combat. All other
topics sank into insignificance and passed out of men's thoughts and interest.
It was not because a tournament was a great matter, it was not because Sir
Sagramor had found the Holy Grail, for he had not, but had failed; it was not
because the second (official) personage in the kingdom was one of the
duellists; no, all these features were commonplace. Yet there was abundant
reason for the extraordinary interest which this coming fight was creating. It
was born of the fact that all the nation knew that this was not to be a duel
between mere men, so to speak, but a duel between two mighty magicians; a duel
not of muscle but of mind, not of human skill but of superhuman art and craft;
a final struggle for supremacy between the two master enchanters of the age. It
was realized that the most prodigious achievements of the most renowned knights
could not be worthy of comparison with a spectacle like this; they could be but
child's play, contrasted with this mysterious and awful battle of the gods.
Yes, all the world knew it was going to be in reality a duel between Merlin and
me, a measuring of his magic powers against mine. It was known that Merlin had
been busy whole days and nights together, imbuing Sir Sagramor's arms and armor
with supernal powers of offense and defense, and that he had procured for him
from the spirits of the air a fleecy veil which would render the wearer
invisible to his antagonist while still visible to other men. Against Sir
Sagramor, so weaponed and protected, a thousand knights could accomplish
nothing; against him no known enchantments could prevail. These facts were
sure; regarding them there was no doubt, no reason for doubt. There was but one
question: might there be still other enchantments, UNKNOWN to Merlin, which
could render Sir Sagramor's veil transparent to me, and make his enchanted mail
vulnerable to my weapons? This was the one thing to be decided in the lists.
Until then the world must remain in suspense.
So the world
thought there was a vast matter at stake here, and the world was right, but it
was not the one they had in their minds. No, a far vaster one was upon the cast
of this die: THE LIFE OF KNIGHT-ERRANTRY. I was a champion, it was true, but
not the champion of the frivolous black arts, I was the champion of hard
unsentimental common-sense and reason. I was entering the lists to either
destroy knight-errantry or be its victim.
Vast as the
show-grounds were, there were no vacant spaces in them outside of the lists, at
ten o'clock on the morning of the 16th. The mammoth grand-stand was clothed in
flags, streamers, and rich tapestries, and packed with several acres of
small-fry tributary kings, their suites, and the British aristocracy; with our
own royal gang in the chief place, and each and every individual a flashing
prism of gaudy silks and velvets—well, I never saw anything to begin with it
but a fight between an Upper Mississippi sunset and the aurora borealis. The
huge camp of beflagged and gaycolored tents at one end of the lists, with a
stiffstanding sentinel at every door and a shining shield hanging by him for
challenge, was another fine sight. You see, every knight was there who had any
ambition or any caste feeling; for my feeling toward their order was not much
of a secret, and so here was their chance. If I won my fight with Sir Sagramor,
others would have the right to call me out as long as I might be willing to
respond.
Down at our end
there were but two tents; one for me, and another for my servants. At the
appointed hour the king made a sign, and the heralds, in their tabards,
appeared and made proclamation, naming the combatants and stating the cause of
quarrel. There was a pause, then a ringing bugle-blast, which was the signal
for us to come forth. All the multitude caught their breath, and an eager
curiosity flashed into every face.
Out from his tent
rode great Sir Sagramor, an imposing tower of iron, stately and rigid, his huge
spear standing upright in its socket and grasped in his strong hand, his grand
horse's face and breast cased in steel, his body clothed in rich trappings that
almost dragged the ground—oh, a most noble picture. A great shout went up, of
welcome and admiration.
And then out I
came. But I didn't get any shout. There was a wondering and eloquent silence
for a moment, then a great wave of laughter began to sweep along that human
sea, but a warning bugle-blast cut its career short. I was in the simplest and
comfortablest of gymnast costumes—flesh-colored tights from neck to heel, with
blue silk puffings about my loins, and bareheaded. My horse was not above
medium size, but he was alert, slender-limbed, muscled with watchsprings, and
just a greyhound to go. He was a beauty, glossy as silk, and naked as he was
when he was born, except for bridle and ranger-saddle.
The iron tower
and the gorgeous bedquilt came cumbrously but gracefully pirouetting down the
lists, and we tripped lightly up to meet them. We halted; the tower saluted, I
responded; then we wheeled and rode side by side to the grand-stand and faced
our king and queen, to whom we made obeisance. The queen exclaimed:
“Alack, Sir Boss,
wilt fight naked, and without lance or sword or—”
But the king
checked her and made her understand, with a polite phrase or two, that this was
none of her business. The bugles rang again; and we separated and rode to the
ends of the lists, and took position. Now old Merlin stepped into view and cast
a dainty web of gossamer threads over Sir Sagramor which turned him into
Hamlet's ghost; the king made a sign, the bugles blew, Sir Sagramor laid his
great lance in rest, and the next moment here he came thundering down the
course with his veil flying out behind, and I went whistling through the air
like an arrow to meet him—cocking my ear the while, as if noting the invisible
knight's position and progress by hearing, not sight. A chorus of encouraging
shouts burst out for him, and one brave voice flung out a heartening word for
me—said:
“Go it, slim
Jim!”
It was an even
bet that Clarence had procured that favor for me—and furnished the language,
too. When that formidable lance-point was within a yard and a half of my breast
I twitched my horse aside without an effort, and the big knight swept by,
scoring a blank. I got plenty of applause that time. We turned, braced up, and
down we came again. Another blank for the knight, a roar of applause for me.
This same thing was repeated once more; and it fetched such a whirlwind of
applause that Sir Sagramor lost his temper, and at once changed his tactics and
set himself the task of chasing me down. Why, he hadn't any show in the world
at that; it was a game of tag, with all the advantage on my side; I whirled out
of his path with ease whenever I chose, and once I slapped him on the back as I
went to the rear. Finally I took the chase into my own hands; and after that,
turn, or twist, or do what he would, he was never able to get behind me again;
he found himself always in front at the end of his maneuver. So he gave up that
business and retired to his end of the lists. His temper was clear gone now,
and he forgot himself and flung an insult at me which disposed of mine. I
slipped my lasso from the horn of my saddle, and grasped the coil in my right
hand. This time you should have seen him come!—it was a business trip, sure; by
his gait there was blood in his eye. I was sitting my horse at ease, and swinging
the great loop of my lasso in wide circles about my head; the moment he was
under way, I started for him; when the space between us had narrowed to forty
feet, I sent the snaky spirals of the rope a-cleaving through the air, then
darted aside and faced about and brought my trained animal to a halt with all
his feet braced under him for a surge. The next moment the rope sprang taut and
yanked Sir Sagramor out of the saddle! Great Scott, but there was a sensation!
Unquestionably,
the popular thing in this world is novelty. These people had never seen
anything of that cowboy business before, and it carried them clear off their
feet with delight. From all around and everywhere, the shout went up:
“Encore! encore!”
I wondered where
they got the word, but there was no time to cipher on philological matters,
because the whole knight-errantry hive was just humming now, and my prospect
for trade couldn't have been better. The moment my lasso was released and Sir
Sagramor had been assisted to his tent, I hauled in the slack, took my station
and began to swing my loop around my head again. I was sure to have use for it
as soon as they could elect a successor for Sir Sagramor, and that couldn't
take long where there were so many hungry candidates. Indeed, they elected one
straight off—Sir Hervis de Revel.
BZZ! Here he
came, like a house afire; I dodged: he passed like a flash, with my horse-hair
coils settling around his neck; a second or so later, FST! his saddle was
empty.
I got another
encore; and another, and another, and still another. When I had snaked five men
out, things began to look serious to the ironclads, and they stopped and
consulted together. As a result, they decided that it was time to waive
etiquette and send their greatest and best against me. To the astonishment of
that little world, I lassoed Sir Lamorak de Galis, and after him Sir Galahad.
So you see there was simply nothing to be done now, but play their right
bower—bring out the superbest of the superb, the mightiest of the mighty, the
great Sir Launcelot himself!
A proud moment
for me? I should think so. Yonder was Arthur, King of Britain; yonder was
Guenever; yes, and whole tribes of little provincial kings and kinglets; and in
the tented camp yonder, renowned knights from many lands; and likewise the
selectest body known to chivalry, the Knights of the Table Round, the most
illustrious in Christendom; and biggest fact of all, the very sun of their
shining system was yonder couching his lance, the focal point of forty thousand
adoring eyes; and all by myself, here was I laying for him. Across my mind
flitted the dear image of a certain hello-girl of West Hartford, and I wished
she could see me now. In that moment, down came the Invincible, with the rush
of a whirlwind—the courtly world rose to its feet and bent forward—the fateful
coils went circling through the air, and before you could wink I was towing Sir
Launcelot across the field on his back, and kissing my hand to the storm of
waving kerchiefs and the thunder-crash of applause that greeted me!
Said I to myself,
as I coiled my lariat and hung it on my saddle-horn, and sat there drunk with
glory, “The victory is perfect—no other will venture against me—knight-errantry
is dead.” Now imagine my astonishment—and everybody else's, too—to hear the peculiar
bugle-call which announces that another competitor is about to enter the lists!
There was a mystery here; I couldn't account for this thing. Next, I noticed
Merlin gliding away from me; and then I noticed that my lasso was gone! The old
sleight-of-hand expert had stolen it, sure, and slipped it under his robe.
The bugle blew
again. I looked, and down came Sagramor riding again, with his dust brushed off
and is veil nicely re-arranged. I trotted up to meet him, and pretended to find
him by the sound of his horse's hoofs. He said:
“Thou'rt quick of
ear, but it will not save thee from this!” and he touched the hilt of his great
sword . “An ye are not able to see it, because of the influence of the veil,
know that it is no cumbrous lance, but a sword—and I ween ye will not be able
to avoid it.”
His visor was up;
there was death in his smile. I should never be able to dodge his sword, that
was plain. Somebody was going to die this time. If he got the drop on me, I
could name the corpse. We rode forward together, and saluted the royalties.
This time the king was disturbed. He said:
“Where is thy
strange weapon?”
“It is stolen,
sire.”
“Hast another at
hand?”
“No, sire, I
brought only the one.”
Then Merlin mixed
in:
“He brought but
the one because there was but the one to bring. There exists none other but
that one. It belongeth to the king of the Demons of the Sea. This man is a
pretender, and ignorant, else he had known that that weapon can be used in but
eight bouts only, and then it vanisheth away to its home under the sea.”
“Then is he
weaponless,” said the king. “Sir Sagramore, ye will grant him leave to borrow.”
“And I will
lend!” said Sir Launcelot, limping up. “He is as brave a knight of his hands as
any that be on live, and he shall have mine.”
He put his hand
on his sword to draw it, but Sir Sagramor said:
“Stay, it may not
be. He shall fight with his own weapons; it was his privilege to choose them
and bring them. If he has erred, on his head be it.”
“Knight!” said
the king. “Thou'rt overwrought with passion; it disorders thy mind. Wouldst
kill a naked man?”
“An he do it, he
shall answer it to me,” said Sir Launcelot.
“I will answer it
to any he that desireth!” retorted Sir Sagramor hotly.
Merlin broke in,
rubbing his hands and smiling his lowdownest smile of malicious gratification:
“'Tis well said,
right well said! And 'tis enough of parleying, let my lord the king deliver the
battle signal.”
The king had to
yield. The bugle made proclamation, and we turned apart and rode to our
stations. There we stood, a hundred yards apart, facing each other, rigid and
motionless, like horsed statues. And so we remained, in a soundless hush, as
much as a full minute, everybody gazing, nobody stirring. It seemed as if the
king could not take heart to give the signal. But at last he lifted his hand,
the clear note of the bugle followed, Sir Sagramor's long blade described a
flashing curve in the air, and it was superb to see him come. I sat still. On
he came. I did not move. People got so excited that they shouted to me:
“Fly, fly! Save
thyself! This is murther!”
I never budged so
much as an inch till that thunderng apparition had got within fifteen paces of
me; then I snatched a dragoon revolver out of my holster, there was a flash and
a roar, and the revolver was back in the holster before anybody could tell what
had happened.
Here was a
riderless horse plunging by, and yonder lay Sir Sagramor, stone dead.
The people that
ran to him were stricken dumb to find that the life was actually gone out of
the man and no reason for it visible, no hurt upon his body, nothing like a
wound. There was a hole through the breast of his chain-mail, but they attached
no importance to a little thing like that; and as a bullet wound there produces
but little blood, none came in sight because of the clothing and swaddlings
under the armor. The body was dragged over to let the king and the swells look
down upon it. They were stupefied with astonishment naturally. I was requested
to come and explain the miracle. But I remained in my tracks, like a statue,
and said:
“If it is a
command, I will come, but my lord the king knows that I am where the laws of
combat require me to remain while any desire to come against me.”
I waited. Nobody
challenged. Then I said:
“If there are any
who doubt that this field is well and fairly won, I do not wait for them to
challenge me, I challenge them.”
“It is a gallant
offer,” said the king, “and well beseems you. Whom will you name first?”
“I name none, I
challenge all! Here I stand, and dare the chivalry of England to come against
me—not by individuals, but in mass!”
“What!” shouted a
score of knights.
“You have heard
the challenge. Take it, or I proclaim you recreant knights and vanquished,
every one!”
It was a “bluff”
you know. At such a time it is sound judgment to put on a bold face and play
your hand for a hundred times what it is worth; forty-nine times out of fifty
nobody dares to “call,” and you rake in the chips. But just this once—well,
things looked squally! In just no time, five hundred knights were scrambling
into their saddles, and before you could wink a widely scattering drove were
under way and clattering down upon me. I snatched both revolvers from the
holsters and began to measure distances and calculate chances.
Bang! One saddle
empty. Bang! another one. Bang—bang, and I bagged two. Well, it was nip and
tuck with us, and I knew it. If I spent the eleventh shot without convincing
these people, the twelfth man would kill me, sure. And so I never did feel so
happy as I did when my ninth downed its man and I detected the wavering in the
crowd which is premonitory of panic. An instant lost now could knock out my
last chance. But I didn't lose it. I raised both revolvers and pointed them—the
halted host stood their ground just about one good square moment, then broke
and fled.
The day was mine.
Knight-errantry was a doomed institution. The march of civilization was begun.
How did I feel? Ah, you never could imagine it.
And Brer Merlin?
His stock was flat again. Somehow, every time the magic of fol-de-rol tried
conclusions with the magic of science, the magic of fol-de-rol got left.
Chapter XL.
THREE YEARS LATER
WHEN I broke the
back of knight-errantry that time, I no longer felt obliged to work in secret.
So, the very next day I exposed my hidden schools, my mines, and my vast system
of clandestine factories and workshops to an astonished world. That is to say,
I exposed the nineteenth century to the inspection of the sixth.
Well, it is
always a good plan to follow up an advantage promptly. The knights were
temporarily down, but if I would keep them so I must just simply paralyze
them—nothing short of that would answer. You see, I was “bluffing” that last
time in the field; it would be natural for them to work around to that
conclusion, if I gave them a chance. So I must not give them time; and I
didn't.
I renewed my
challenge, engraved it on brass, posted it up where any priest could read it to
them, and also kept it standing in the advertising columns of the paper.
I not only
renewed it, but added to its proportions. I said, name the day, and I would
take fifty assistants and stand up AGAINST THE MASSED CHIVALRY OF THE WHOLE
EARTH AND DESTROY IT.
I was not
bluffing this time. I meant what I said; I could do what I promised. There
wasn't any way to misunderstand the language of that challenge. Even the
dullest of the chivalry perceived that this was a plain case of “put up, or
shut up.” They were wise and did the latter. In all the next three years they
gave me no trouble worth mentioning.
Consider the
three years sped. Now look around on England. A happy and prosperous country,
and strangely altered. Schools everywhere, and several colleges; a number of
pretty good newspapers. Even authorship was taking a start; Sir Dinadan the
Humorist was first in the field, with a volume of gray-headed jokes which I had
been familiar with during thirteen centuries. If he had left out that old
rancid one about the lecturer I wouldn't have said anything; but I couldn't
stand that one. I suppressed the book and hanged the author.
Slavery was dead
and gone; all men were equal before the law; taxation had been equalized. The
telegraph, the telephone, the phonograph, the typewriter, the sewing-machine,
and all the thousand willing and handy servants of steam and electricity were
working their way into favor. We had a steamboat or two on the Thames, we had
steam warships, and the beginnings of a steam commercial marine; I was getting
ready to send out an expedition to discover America.
We were building
several lines of railway, and our line from Camelot to London was already
finished and in operation. I was shrewd enough to make all offices connected
with the passenger service places of high and distinguished honor. My idea was
to attract the chivalry and nobility, and make them useful and keep them out of
mischief. The plan worked very well, the competition for the places was hot.
The conductor of the 4.33 express was a duke; there wasn't a passenger
conductor on the line below the degree of earl. They were good men, every one,
but they had two defects which I couldn't cure, and so had to wink at: they
wouldn't lay aside their armor, and they would “knock down” fare—I mean rob the
company.
There was hardly
a knight in all the land who wasn't in some useful employment. They were going
from end to end of the country in all manner of useful missionary capacities;
their penchant for wandering, and their experience in it, made them altogether
the most effective spreaders of civilization we had. They went clothed in steel
and equipped with sword and lance and battle-axe, and if they couldn't persuade
a person to try a sewing-machine on the installment plan, or a melodeon, or a
barbed-wire fence, or a prohibition journal, or any of the other thousand and
one things they canvassed for, they removed him and passed on.
I was very happy.
Things were working steadily toward a secretly longed-for point. You see, I had
two schemes in my head which were the vastest of all my projects. The one was
to overthrow the Catholic Church and set up the Protestant faith on its
ruins—not as an Established Church, but a go-as-you-please one; and the other
project was to get a decree issued by and by, commanding that upon Arthur's
death unlimited suffrage should be introduced, and given to men and women
alike—at any rate to all men, wise or unwise, and to all mothers who at middle
age should be found to know nearly as much as their sons at twenty-one. Arthur
was good for thirty years yet, he being about my own age—that is to say,
forty—and I believed that in that time I could easily have the active part of
the population of that day ready and eager for an event which should be the
first of its kind in the history of the world—a rounded and complete governmental
revolution without bloodshed. The result to be a republic. Well, I may as well
confess, though I do feel ashamed when I think of it: I was beginning to have a
base hankering to be its first president myself. Yes, there was more or less
human nature in me; I found that out.
Clarence was with
me as concerned the revolution, but in a modified way. His idea was a republic,
without privileged orders, but with a hereditary royal family at the head of it
instead of an elective chief magistrate. He believed that no nation that had
ever known the joy of worshiping a royal family could ever be robbed of it and
not fade away and die of melancholy. I urged that kings were dangerous. He
said, then have cats. He was sure that a royal family of cats would answer every
purpose. They would be as useful as any other royal family, they would know as
much, they would have the same virtues and the same treacheries, the same
disposition to get up shindies with other royal cats, they would be laughably
vain and absurd and never know it, they would be wholly inexpensive; finally,
they would have as sound a divine right as any other royal house, and “Tom
VII., or Tom XI., or Tom XIV. by the grace of God King,” would sound as well as
it would when applied to the ordinary royal tomcat with tights on. “And as a
rule,” said he, in his neat modern English, “the character of these cats would
be considerably above the character of the average king, and this would be an
immense moral advantage to the nation, for the reason that a nation always
models its morals after its monarch's. The worship of royalty being founded in
unreason, these graceful and harmless cats would easily become as sacred as any
other royalties, and indeed more so, because it would presently be noticed that
they hanged nobody, beheaded nobody, imprisoned nobody, inflicted no cruelties
or injustices of any sort, and so must be worthy of a deeper love and reverence
than the customary human king, and would certainly get it. The eyes of the
whole harried world would soon be fixed upon this humane and gentle system, and
royal butchers would presently begin to disappear; their subjects would fill
the vacancies with catlings from our own royal house; we should become a
factory; we should supply the thrones of the world; within forty years all
Europe would be governed by cats, and we should furnish the cats. The reign of
universal peace would begin then, to end no more forever...
Me-e-e-yow-ow-ow-ow—fzt!—wow!”
Hang him, I
supposed he was in earnest, and was beginning to be persuaded by him, until he
exploded that cat-howl and startled me almost out of my clothes. But he never
could be in earnest. He didn't know what it was. He had pictured a distinct and
perfectly rational and feasible improvement upon constitutional monarchy, but
he was too feather-headed to know it, or care anything about it, either. I was
going to give him a scolding, but Sandy came flying in at that moment, wild
with terror, and so choked with sobs that for a minute she could not get her
voice. I ran and took her in my arms, and lavished caresses upon her and said,
beseechingly:
“Speak, darling,
speak! What is it?”
Her head fell
limp upon my bosom, and she gasped, almost inaudibly:
“HELLO-CENTRAL!”
“Quick!” I
shouted to Clarence; “telephone the king's homeopath to come!”
In two minutes I
was kneeling by the child's crib, and Sandy was dispatching servants here,
there, and everywhere, all over the palace. I took in the situation almost at a
glance—membranous croup! I bent down and whispered:
“Wake up,
sweetheart! Hello-Central”
She opened her
soft eyes languidly, and made out to say:
“Papa.”
That was a
comfort. She was far from dead yet. I sent for preparations of sulphur, I
rousted out the croup-kettle myself; for I don't sit down and wait for doctors
when Sandy or the child is sick. I knew how to nurse both of them, and had had
experience. This little chap had lived in my arms a good part of its small
life, and often I could soothe away its troubles and get it to laugh through
the tear-dews on its eyelashes when even its mother couldn't.
Sir Launcelot, in
his richest armor, came striding along the great hall now on his way to the
stockboard; he was president of the stock-board, and occupied the Siege
Perilous, which he had bought of Sir Galahad; for the stock-board consisted of
the Knights of the Round Table, and they used the Round Table for business
purposes now. Seats at it were worth—well, you would never believe the figure,
so it is no use to state it. Sir Launcelot was a bear, and he had put up a
corner in one of the new lines, and was just getting ready to squeeze the
shorts to-day; but what of that? He was the same old Launcelot, and when he
glanced in as he was passing the door and found out that his pet was sick, that
was enough for him; bulls and bears might fight it out their own way for all
him, he would come right in here and stand by little HelloCentral for all he
was worth. And that was what he did. He shied his helmet into the corner, and
in half a minute he had a new wick in the alcohol lamp and was firing up on the
croup-kettle. By this time Sandy had built a blanket canopy over the crib, and
everything was ready.
Sir Launcelot got
up steam, he and I loaded up the kettle with unslaked lime and carbolic acid,
with a touch of lactic acid added thereto, then filled the thing up with water
and inserted the steam-spout under the canopy. Everything was ship-shape now,
and we sat down on either side of the crib to stand our watch. Sandy was so
grateful and so comforted that she charged a couple of church-wardens with
willow-bark and sumach-tobacco for us, and told us to smoke as much as we
pleased, it couldn't get under the canopy, and she was used to smoke, being the
first lady in the land who had ever seen a cloud blown. Well, there couldn't be
a more contented or comfortable sight than Sir Launcelot in his noble armor
sitting in gracious serenity at the end of a yard of snowy church-warden. He
was a beautiful man, a lovely man, and was just intended to make a wife and
children happy. But, of course Guenever—however, it's no use to cry over what's
done and can't be helped.
Well, he stood
watch-and-watch with me, right straight through, for three days and nights,
till the child was out of danger; then he took her up in his great arms and
kissed her, with his plumes falling about her golden head, then laid her softly
in Sandy's lap again and took his stately way down the vast hall, between the
ranks of admiring men-at-arms and menials, and so disappeared. And no instinct
warned me that I should never look upon him again in this world! Lord, what a
world of heart-break it is.
The doctors said
we must take the child away, if we would coax her back to health and strength
again. And she must have sea-air. So we took a man-ofwar, and a suite of two
hundred and sixty persons, and went cruising about, and after a fortnight of
this we stepped ashore on the French coast, and the doctors thought it would be
a good idea to make something of a stay there. The little king of that region
offered us his hospitalities, and we were glad to accept. If he had had as many
conveniences as he lacked, we should have been plenty comfortable enough; even
as it was, we made out very well, in his queer old castle, by the help of
comforts and luxuries from the ship.
At the end of a
month I sent the vessel home for fresh supplies, and for news. We expected her
back in three or four days. She would bring me, along with other news, the
result of a certain experiment which I had been starting. It was a project of
mine to replace the tournament with something which might furnish an escape for
the extra steam of the chivalry, keep those bucks entertained and out of
mischief, and at the same time preserve the best thing in them, which was their
hardy spirit of emulation. I had had a choice band of them in private training
for some time, and the date was now arriving for their first public effort.
This experiment
was baseball. In order to give the thing vogue from the start, and place it out
of the reach of criticism, I chose my nines by rank, not capacity. There wasn't
a knight in either team who wasn't a sceptered sovereign. As for material of
this sort, there was a glut of it always around Arthur. You couldn't throw a
brick in any direction and not cripple a king. Of course, I couldn't get these
people to leave off their armor; they wouldn't do that when they bathed. They
consented to differentiate the armor so that a body could tell one team from
the other, but that was the most they would do. So, one of the teams wore
chain-mail ulsters, and the other wore platearmor made of my new Bessemer
steel. Their practice in the field was the most fantastic thing I ever saw.
Being ball-proof, they never skipped out of the way, but stood still and took
the result; when a Bessemer was at the bat and a ball hit him, it would bound a
hundred and fifty yards sometimes. And when a man was running, and threw
himself on his stomach to slide to his base, it was like an iron-clad coming
into port. At first I appointed men of no rank to act as umpires, but I had to
discontinue that. These people were no easier to please than other nines. The
umpire's first decision was usually his last; they broke him in two with a bat,
and his friends toted him home on a shutter. When it was noticed that no umpire
ever survived a game, umpiring got to be unpopular. So I was obliged to appoint
somebody whose rank and lofty position under the government would protect him.
Here are the
names of the nines:
BESSEMERS
ULSTERS
KING ARTHUR.
EMPEROR LUCIUS.
KING LOT OF LOTHIAN.
KING LOGRIS. KING
OF NORTHGALIS.
KING MARHALT OF
IRELAND. KING MARSIL.
KING MORGANORE.
KING OF LITTLE BRITAIN.
KING MARK OF
CORNWALL. KING LABOR.
KING NENTRES OF
GARLOT. KING PELLAM OF LISTENGESE. KING MELIODAS OF LIONES. KING BAGDEMAGUS.
KING OF THE LAKE.
KING TOLLEME LA FEINTES. THE SOWDAN OF SYRIA.
Umpire—CLARENCE.
The first public
game would certainly draw fifty thousand people; and for solid fun would be
worth going around the world to see. Everything would be favorable; it was
balmy and beautiful spring weather now, and Nature was all tailored out in her
new clothes.
Chapter XLI.
THE INTERDICT
HOWEVER, my
attention was suddenly snatched from such matters; our child began to lose
ground again, and we had to go to sitting up with her, her case became so
serious. We couldn't bear to allow anybody to help in this service, so we two
stood watch-and-watch, day in and day out. Ah, Sandy, what a right heart she
had, how simple, and genuine, and good she was! She was a flawless wife and
mother; and yet I had married her for no other particular reasons, except that
by the customs of chivalry she was my property until some knight should win her
from me in the field. She had hunted Britain over for me; had found me at the
hanging-bout outside of London, and had straightway resumed her old place at my
side in the placidest way and as of right. I was a New Englander, and in my
opinion this sort of partnership would compromise her, sooner or later. She
couldn't see how, but I cut argument short and we had a wedding.
Now I didn't know
I was drawing a prize, yet that was what I did draw. Within the twelvemonth I
became her worshiper; and ours was the dearest and perfectest comradeship that
ever was. People talk about beautiful friendships between two persons of the
same sex. What is the best of that sort, as compared with the friendship of man
and wife, where the best impulses and highest ideals of both are the same?
There is no place for comparison between the two friendships; the one is
earthly, the other divine.
In my dreams,
along at first, I still wandered thirteen centuries away, and my unsatisfied
spirit went calling and harking all up and down the unreplying vacancies of a
vanished world. Many a time Sandy heard that imploring cry come from my lips in
my sleep. With a grand magnanimity she saddled that cry of mine upon our child,
conceiving it to be the name of some lost darling of mine. It touched me to
tears, and it also nearly knocked me off my feet, too, when she smiled up in my
face for an earned reward, and played her quaint and pretty surprise upon me:
“The name of one
who was dear to thee is here preserved, here made holy, and the music of it
will abide alway in our ears. Now thou'lt kiss me, as knowing the name I have
given the child.”
But I didn't know
it, all the same. I hadn't an idea in the world; but it would have been cruel
to confess it and spoil her pretty game; so I never let on, but said:
“Yes, I know,
sweetheart—how dear and good it is of you, too! But I want to hear these lips
of yours, which are also mine, utter it first—then its music will be perfect.”
Pleased to the
marrow, she murmured:
“HELLO-CENTRAL!”
I didn't laugh—I
am always thankful for that—but the strain ruptured every cartilage in me, and
for weeks afterward I could hear my bones clack when I walked. She never found
out her mistake. The first time she heard that form of salute used at the
telephone she was surprised, and not pleased; but I told her I had given order
for it: that henceforth and forever the telephone must always be invoked with
that reverent formality, in perpetual honor and remembrance of my lost friend
and her small namesake. This was not true. But it answered.
Well, during two
weeks and a half we watched by the crib, and in our deep solicitude we were
unconscious of any world outside of that sick-room. Then our reward came: the
center of the universe turned the corner and began to mend. Grateful? It isn't
the term. There ISN'T any term for it. You know that yourself, if you've
watched your child through the Valley of the Shadow and seen it come back to
life and sweep night out of the earth with one all-illuminating smile that you
could cover with your hand.
Why, we were back
in this world in one instant! Then we looked the same startled thought into
each other's eyes at the same moment; more than two weeks gone, and that ship
not back yet!
In another minute
I appeared in the presence of my train. They had been steeped in troubled
bodings all this time—their faces showed it. I called an escort and we galloped
five miles to a hilltop overlooking the sea. Where was my great commerce that
so lately had made these glistening expanses populous and beautiful with its
white-winged flocks? Vanished, every one! Not a sail, from verge to verge, not
a smoke-bank—just a dead and empty solitude, in place of all that brisk and
breezy life.
I went swiftly
back, saying not a word to anybody. I told Sandy this ghastly news. We could
imagine no explanation that would begin to explain. Had there been an invasion?
an earthquake? a pestilence? Had the nation been swept out of existence? But
guessing was profitless. I must go—at once. I borrowed the king's navy—a “ship”
no bigger than a steam launch—and was soon ready.
The parting—ah,
yes, that was hard. As I was devouring the child with last kisses, it brisked
up and jabbered out its vocabulary!—the first time in more than two weeks, and
it made fools of us for joy. The darling mispronunciations of childhood!—dear
me, there's no music that can touch it; and how one grieves when it wastes away
and dissolves into correctness, knowing it will never visit his bereaved ear
again. Well, how good it was to be able to carry that gracious memory away with
me!
I approached
England the next morning, with the wide highway of salt water all to myself.
There were ships in the harbor, at Dover, but they were naked as to sails, and
there was no sign of life about them. It was Sunday; yet at Canterbury the
streets were empty; strangest of all, there was not even a priest in sight, and
no stroke of a bell fell upon my ear. The mournfulness of death was everywhere.
I couldn't understand it. At last, in the further edge of that town I saw a
small funeral procession—just a family and a few friends following a coffin—no
priest; a funeral without bell, book, or candle; there was a church there close
at hand, but they passed it by weeping, and did not enter it; I glanced up at
the belfry, and there hung the bell, shrouded in black, and its tongue tied
back. Now I knew! Now I understood the stupendous calamity that had overtaken
England. Invasion? Invasion is a triviality to it. It was the INTERDICT!
I asked no
questions; I didn't need to ask any. The Church had struck; the thing for me to
do was to get into a disguise, and go warily. One of my servants gave me a suit
of clothes, and when we were safe beyond the town I put them on, and from that
time I traveled alone; I could not risk the embarrassment of company.
A miserable
journey. A desolate silence everywhere. Even in London itself. Traffic had
ceased; men did not talk or laugh, or go in groups, or even in couples; they
moved aimlessly about, each man by himself, with his head down, and woe and
terror at his heart. The Tower showed recent war-scars. Verily, much had been
happening.
Of course, I
meant to take the train for Camelot. Train! Why, the station was as vacant as a
cavern. I moved on. The journey to Camelot was a repetition of what I had
already seen. The Monday and the Tuesday differed in no way from the Sunday. I
arrived far in the night. From being the best electriclighted town in the
kingdom and the most like a recumbent sun of anything you ever saw, it was
become simply a blot—a blot upon darkness—that is to say, it was darker and
solider than the rest of the darkness, and so you could see it a little better;
it made me feel as if maybe it was symbolical—a sort of sign that the Church
was going to KEEP the upper hand now, and snuff out all my beautiful
civilization just like that. I found no life stirring in the somber streets. I
groped my way with a heavy heart. The vast castle loomed black upon the
hilltop, not a spark visible about it. The drawbridge was down, the great gate
stood wide, I entered without challenge, my own heels making the only sound I
heard—and it was sepulchral enough, in those huge vacant courts.
Chapter XLII.
WAR!
I FOUND Clarence
alone in his quarters, drowned in melancholy; and in place of the electric
light, he had reinstituted the ancient rag-lamp, and sat there in a grisly
twilight with all curtains drawn tight. He sprang up and rushed for me eagerly,
saying:
“Oh, it's worth a
billion milrays to look upon a live person again!”
He knew me as
easily as if I hadn't been disguised at all. Which frightened me; one may
easily believe that.
“Quick, now, tell
me the meaning of this fearful disaster,” I said. “How did it come about?”
“Well, if there
hadn't been any Queen Guenever, it wouldn't have come so early; but it would
have come, anyway. It would have come on your own account by and by; by luck,
it happened to come on the queen's.”
“AND Sir
Launcelot's?”
“Just so.”
“Give me the
details.”
“I reckon you
will grant that during some years there has been only one pair of eyes in these
kingdoms that has not been looking steadily askance at the queen and Sir
Launcelot—”
“Yes, King
Arthur's.”
“—and only one
heart that was without suspicion—”
“Yes—the king's;
a heart that isn't capable of thinking evil of a friend.”
“Well, the king
might have gone on, still happy and unsuspecting, to the end of his days, but
for one of your modern improvements—the stock-board. When you left, three miles
of the London, Canterbury and Dover were ready for the rails, and also ready
and ripe for manipulation in the stock-market. It was wildcat, and everybody
knew it. The stock was for sale at a give-away. What does Sir Launcelot do,
but—”
“Yes, I know; he
quietly picked up nearly all of it for a song; then he bought about twice as
much more, deliverable upon call; and he was about to call when I left.”
“Very well, he
did call. The boys couldn't deliver. Oh, he had them—and he just settled his
grip and squeezed them. They were laughing in their sleeves over their
smartness in selling stock to him at 15 and 16 and along there that wasn't
worth 10. Well, when they had laughed long enough on that side of their mouths,
they rested-up that side by shifting the laugh to the other side. That was when
they compromised with the Invincible at 283!”
“Good land!”
“He skinned them
alive, and they deserved it—anyway, the whole kingdom rejoiced. Well, among the
flayed were Sir Agravaine and Sir Mordred, nephews to the king. End of the
first act. Act second, scene first, an apartment in Carlisle castle, where the
court had gone for a few days' hunting. Persons present, the whole tribe of the
king's nephews. Mordred and Agravaine propose to call the guileless Arthur's
attention to Guenever and Sir Launcelot. Sir Gawaine, Sir Gareth, and Sir
Gaheris will have nothing to do with it. A dispute ensues, with loud talk; in
the midst of it enter the king. Mordred and Agravaine spring their devastating
tale upon him. TABLEAU. A trap is laid for Launcelot, by the king's command,
and Sir Launcelot walks into it. He made it sufficiently uncomfortable for the
ambushed witnesses—to wit, Mordred, Agravaine, and twelve knights of lesser
rank, for he killed every one of them but Mordred; but of course that couldn't
straighten matters between Launcelot and the king, and didn't.”
“Oh, dear, only
one thing could result—I see that. War, and the knights of the realm divided
into a king's party and a Sir Launcelot's party.”
“Yes—that was the
way of it. The king sent the queen to the stake, proposing to purify her with
fire. Launcelot and his knights rescued her, and in doing it slew certain good
old friends of yours and mine—in fact, some of the best we ever had; to wit,
Sir Belias le Orgulous, Sir Segwarides, Sir Griflet le Fils de Dieu, Sir
Brandiles, Sir Aglovale—”
“Oh, you tear out
my heartstrings.”
“—wait, I'm not
done yet—Sir Tor, Sir Gauter, Sir Gillimer—”
“The very best
man in my subordinate nine. What a handy right-fielder he was!”
“—Sir Reynold's
three brothers, Sir Damus, Sir Priamus, Sir Kay the Stranger—”
“My peerless
short-stop! I've seen him catch a daisy-cutter in his teeth. Come, I can't
stand this!”
“—Sir Driant, Sir
Lambegus, Sir Herminde, Sir Pertilope, Sir Perimones, and—whom do you think?”
“Rush! Go on.”
“Sir Gaheris, and
Sir Gareth—both!”
“Oh, incredible!
Their love for Launcelot was indestructible.”
“Well, it was an
accident. They were simply onlookers; they were unarmed, and were merely there
to witness the queen's punishment. Sir Launcelot smote down whoever came in the
way of his blind fury, and he killed these without noticing who they were. Here
is an instantaneous photograph one of our boys got of the battle; it's for sale
on every news-stand. There—the figures nearest the queen are Sir Launcelot with
his sword up, and Sir Gareth gasping his latest breath. You can catch the agony
in the queen's face through the curling smoke. It's a rattling battle-picture.”
“Indeed, it is.
We must take good care of it; its historical value is incalculable. Go on.”
“Well, the rest
of the tale is just war, pure and simple. Launcelot retreated to his town and
castle of Joyous Gard, and gathered there a great following of knights. The
king, with a great host, went there, and there was desperate fighting during
several days, and, as a result, all the plain around was paved with corpses and
cast-iron. Then the Church patched up a peace between Arthur and Launcelot and
the queen and everybody—everybody but Sir Gawaine. He was bitter about the
slaying of his brothers, Gareth and Gaheris, and would not be appeased. He
notified Launcelot to get him thence, and make swift preparation, and look to
be soon attacked. So Launcelot sailed to his Duchy of Guienne with his following,
and Gawaine soon followed with an army, and he beguiled Arthur to go with him.
Arthur left the kingdom in Sir Mordred's hands until you should return—”
“Ah—a king's
customary wisdom!”
“Yes. Sir Mordred
set himself at once to work to make his kingship permanent. He was going to
marry Guenever, as a first move; but she fled and shut herself up in the Tower
of London. Mordred attacked; the Bishop of Canterbury dropped down on him with
the Interdict. The king returned; Mordred fought him at Dover, at Canterbury,
and again at Barham Down. Then there was talk of peace and a composition.
Terms, Mordred to have Cornwall and Kent during Arthur's life, and the whole
kingdom afterward.”
“Well, upon my
word! My dream of a republic to BE a dream, and so remain.”
“Yes. The two
armies lay near Salisbury. Gawaine—Gawaine's head is at Dover Castle, he fell
in the fight there—Gawaine appeared to Arthur in a dream, at least his ghost
did, and warned him to refrain from conflict for a month, let the delay cost
what it might. But battle was precipitated by an accident. Arthur had given
order that if a sword was raised during the consultation over the proposed
treaty with Mordred, sound the trumpet and fall on! for he had no confidence in
Mordred. Mordred had given a similar order to HIS people. Well, by and by an
adder bit a knight's heel; the knight forgot all about the order, and made a
slash at the adder with his sword. Inside of half a minute those two prodigious
hosts came together with a crash! They butchered away all day. Then the
king—however, we have started something fresh since you left—our paper has.”
“No? What is
that?”
“War
correspondence!”
“Why, that's
good.”
“Yes, the paper
was booming right along, for the Interdict made no impression, got no grip,
while the war lasted. I had war correspondents with both armies. I will finish
that battle by reading you what one of the boys says:
Then the king
looked about him, and then was he ware of all his host and of all his good
knights were left no more on live but two knights, that was Sir Lucan de
Butlere, and his brother Sir Bedivere: and they were full sore wounded. Jesu
mercy, said the king, where are all my noble knights becomen? Alas that ever I
should see this doleful day. For now, said Arthur, I am come to mine end. But
would to God that I wist where were that traitor Sir Mordred, that hath caused
all this mischief. Then was King Arthur ware where Sir Mordred leaned upon his
sword among a great heap of dead men. Now give me my spear, said Arthur unto
Sir Lucan, for yonder I have espied the traitor that all this woe hath wrought.
Sir, let him be, said Sir Lucan, for he is unhappy; and if ye pass this unhappy
day, ye shall be right well revenged upon him. Good lord, remember ye of your
night's dream, and what the spirit of Sir Gawaine told you this night, yet God
of his great goodness hath preserved you hitherto. Therefore, for God's sake,
my lord, leave off by this. For blessed be God ye have won the field: for here
we be three on live, and with Sir Mordred is none on live. And if ye leave off
now, this wicked day of destiny is past. Tide me death, betide me life, saith
the king, now I see him yonder alone, he shall never escape mine hands, for at
a better avail shall I never have him. God speed you well, said Sir Bedivere.
Then the king gat his spear in both his hands, and ran toward Sir Mordred
crying, Traitor, now is thy death day come. And when Sir Mordred heard Sir
Arthur, he ran until him with his sword drawn in his hand. And then King Arthur
smote Sir Mordred under the shield, with a foin of his spear throughout the
body more than a fathom. And when Sir Mordred felt that he had his death's
wound, he thrust himself, with the might that he had, up to the butt of King
Arthur's spear. And right so he smote his father Arthur with his sword holden
in both his hands, on the side of the head, that the sword pierced the helmet
and the brain-pan, and therewithal Sir Mordred fell stark dead to the earth.
And the noble Arthur fell in a swoon to the earth, and there he swooned
oft-times
“That is a good
piece of war correspondence, Clarence; you are a first-rate newspaper man.
Well—is the king all right?” Did he get well?”
“Poor soul, no.
He is dead.”
I was utterly
stunned; it had not seemed to me that any wound could be mortal to him.
“And the queen,
Clarence?”
“She is a nun, in
Almesbury.”
“What changes!
and in such a short while. It is inconceivable. What next, I wonder?”
“I can tell you
what next.”
“Well?”
“Stake our lives
and stand by them!”
“What do you mean
by that?”
“The Church is
master now. The Interdict included you with Mordred; it is not to be removed
while you remain alive. The clans are gathering. The Church has gathered all
the knights that are left alive, and as soon as you are discovered we shall
have business on our hands.”
“Stuff! With our
deadly scientific war-material; with our hosts of trained—”
“Save your
breath—we haven't sixty faithful left!”
“What are you saying?
Our schools, our colleges, our vast workshops, our—”
“When those
knights come, those establishments will empty themselves and go over to the
enemy. Did you think you had educated the superstition out of those people?”
“I certainly did
think it.”
“Well, then, you
may unthink it. They stood every strain easily—until the Interdict. Since then,
they merely put on a bold outside—at heart they are quaking. Make up your mind
to it—when the armies come, the mask will fall.”
“It's hard news.
We are lost. They will turn our own science against us.”
“No they won't.”
“Why?”
“Because I and a
handful of the faithful have blocked that game. I'll tell you what I've done,
and what moved me to it. Smart as you are, the Church was smarter. It was the
Church that sent you cruising—through her servants, the doctors.”
“Clarence!”
“It is the truth.
I know it. Every officer of your ship was the Church's picked servant, and so
was every man of the crew.”
“Oh, come!”
“It is just as I
tell you. I did not find out these things at once, but I found them out
finally. Did you send me verbal information, by the commander of the ship, to
the effect that upon his return to you, with supplies, you were going to leave
Cadiz—”
“Cadiz! I haven't
been at Cadiz at all!”
“—going to leave
Cadiz and cruise in distant seas indefinitely, for the health of your family?
Did you send me that word?”
“Of course not. I
would have written, wouldn't I?”
“Naturally. I was
troubled and suspicious. When the commander sailed again I managed to ship a
spy with him. I have never heard of vessel or spy since. I gave myself two
weeks to hear from you in. Then I resolved to send a ship to Cadiz. There was a
reason why I didn't.”
“What was that?”
“Our navy had
suddenly and mysteriously disappeared! Also, as suddenly and as mysteriously,
the railway and telegraph and telephone service ceased, the men all deserted,
poles were cut down, the Church laid a ban upon the electric light! I had to be
up and doing—and straight off. Your life was safe—nobody in these kingdoms but
Merlin would venture to touch such a magician as you without ten thousand men
at his back—I had nothing to think of but how to put preparations in the best
trim against your coming. I felt safe myself—nobody would be anxious to touch a
pet of yours. So this is what I did. From our various works I selected all the
men—boys I mean—whose faithfulness under whatsoever pressure I could swear to,
and I called them together secretly and gave them their instructions. There are
fifty-two of them; none younger than fourteen, and none above seventeen years
old.”
“Why did you
select boys?”
“Because all the
others were born in an atmosphere of superstition and reared in it. It is in
their blood and bones. We imagined we had educated it out of them; they thought
so, too; the Interdict woke them up like a thunderclap! It revealed them to
themselves, and it revealed them to me, too. With boys it was different. Such
as have been under our training from seven to ten years have had no
acquaintance with the Church's terrors, and it was among these that I found my
fifty-two. As a next move, I paid a private visit to that old cave of
Merlin's—not the small one—the big one—”
“Yes, the one
where we secretly established our first great electric plant when I was
projecting a miracle.”
“Just so. And as
that miracle hadn't become necessary then, I thought it might be a good idea to
utilize the plant now. I've provisioned the cave for a siege—”
“A good idea, a
first-rate idea.”
“I think so. I
placed four of my boys there as a guard—inside, and out of sight. Nobody was to
be hurt—while outside; but any attempt to enter—well, we said just let anybody
try it! Then I went out into the hills and uncovered and cut the secret wires
which connected your bedroom with the wires that go to the dynamite deposits
under all our vast factories, mills, workshops, magazines, etc., and about
midnight I and my boys turned out and connected that wire with the cave, and
nobody but you and I suspects where the other end of it goes to. We laid it
under ground, of course, and it was all finished in a couple of hours or so. We
sha'n't have to leave our fortress now when we want to blow up our
civilization.”
“It was the right
move—and the natural one; military necessity, in the changed condition of
things. Well, what changes HAVE come! We expected to be besieged in the palace
some time or other, but—however, go on.”
“Next, we built a
wire fence.”
“Wire fence?”
“Yes. You dropped
the hint of it yourself, two or three years ago.”
“Oh, I
remember—the time the Church tried her strength against us the first time, and
presently thought it wise to wait for a hopefuler season. Well, how have you
arranged the fence?”
“I start twelve
immensely strong wires—naked, not insulated—from a big dynamo in the cave—dynamo
with no brushes except a positive and a negative one—”
“Yes, that's
right.”
“The wires go out
from the cave and fence in a circle of level ground a hundred yards in
diameter; they make twelve independent fences, ten feet apart—that is to say,
twelve circles within circles—and their ends come into the cave again.”
“Right; go on.”
“The fences are
fastened to heavy oaken posts only three feet apart, and these posts are sunk
five feet in the ground.”
“That is good and
strong.”
“Yes. The wires
have no ground-connection outside of the cave. They go out from the positive
brush of the dynamo; there is a ground-connection through the negative brush;
the other ends of the wire return to the cave, and each is grounded
independently.”
“Nono, that won't
do!”
“Why?”
“It's too
expensive—uses up force for nothing. You don't want any ground-connection
except the one through the negative brush. The other end of every wire must be
brought back into the cave and fastened independently, and WITHOUT any
ground-connection. Now, then, observe the economy of it. A cavalry charge hurls
itself against the fence; you are using no power, you are spending no money,
for there is only one ground-connection till those horses come against the
wire; the moment they touch it they form a connection with the negative brush
THROUGH THE GROUND, and drop dead. Don't you see?—you are using no energy until
it is needed; your lightning is there, and ready, like the load in a gun; but
it isn't costing you a cent till you touch it off. Oh, yes, the single
ground-connection—”
“Of course! I
don't know how I overlooked that. It's not only cheaper, but it's more
effectual than the other way, for if wires break or get tangled, no harm is
done.
“No, especially
if we have a tell-tale in the cave and disconnect the broken wire. Well, go on.
The gatlings?”
“Yes—that's
arranged. In the center of the inner circle, on a spacious platform six feet
high, I've grouped a battery of thirteen gatling guns, and provided plenty of
ammunition.”
“That's it. They
command every approach, and when the Church's knights arrive, there's going to
be music. The brow of the precipice over the cave—”
“I've got a wire
fence there, and a gatling. They won't drop any rocks down on us.”
“Well, and the
glass-cylinder dynamite torpedoes?”
“That's attended
to. It's the prettiest garden that was ever planted. It's a belt forty feet
wide, and goes around the outer fence—distance between it and the fence one
hundred yards—kind of neutral ground that space is. There isn't a single square
yard of that whole belt but is equipped with a torpedo. We laid them on the
surface of the ground, and sprinkled a layer of sand over them. It's an
innocent looking garden, but you let a man start in to hoe it once, and you'll
see.”
“You tested the
torpedoes?”
“Well, I was
going to, but—”
“But what? Why,
it's an immense oversight not to apply a—”
“Test? Yes, I
know; but they're all right; I laid a few in the public road beyond our lines
and they've been tested.”
“Oh, that alters
the case. Who did it?”
“A Church
committee.”
“How kind!”
“Yes. They came
to command us to make submission . You see they didn't really come to test the
torpedoes; that was merely an incident.”
“Did the
committee make a report?”
“Yes, they made
one. You could have heard it a mile.”
“Unanimous?”
“That was the
nature of it. After that I put up some signs, for the protection of future
committees, and we have had no intruders since.”
“Clarence, you've
done a world of work, and done it perfectly.”
“We had plenty of
time for it; there wasn't any occasion for hurry.”
We sat silent
awhile, thinking. Then my mind was made up, and I said:
“Yes, everything
is ready; everything is shipshape, no detail is wanting. I know what to do
now.”
“So do I; sit
down and wait.”
“No, SIR! rise up
and STRIKE!”
“Do you mean it?”
“Yes, indeed! The
DEfensive isn't in my line, and the OFfensive is. That is, when I hold a fair
hand—two-thirds as good a hand as the enemy. Oh, yes, we'll rise up and strike;
that's our game.”
“ A hundred to
one you are right. When does the performance begin?”
“NOW! We'll
proclaim the Republic.”
“Well, that WILL
precipitate things, sure enough!”
“It will make
them buzz, I tell you! England will be a hornets' nest before noon to-morrow,
if the Church's hand hasn't lost its cunning—and we know it hasn't. Now you
write and I'll dictate thus:
“PROCLAMATION
—-
“BE IT KNOWN UNTO
ALL. Whereas the king having died and left no heir, it becomes my duty to
continue the executive authority vested in me, until a government shall have
been created and set in motion. The monarchy has lapsed, it no longer exists.
By consequence, all political power has reverted to its original source, the
people of the nation. With the monarchy, its several adjuncts died also;
wherefore there is no longer a nobility, no longer a privileged class, no
longer an Established Church; all men are become exactly equal; they are upon
one common level, and religion is free. A REPUBLIC IS HEREBY PROCLAIMED, as
being the natural estate of a nation when other authority has ceased. It is the
duty of the British people to meet together immediately, and by their votes
elect representatives and deliver into their hands the government.”
I signed it “The
Boss,” and dated it from Merlin's Cave. Clarence said—
“Why, that tells
where we are, and invites them to call right away.”
“That is the
idea. We STRIKE—by the Proclamation—then it's their innings. Now have the thing
set up and printed and posted, right off; that is, give the order; then, if
you've got a couple of bicycles handy at the foot of the hill, ho for Merlin's
Cave!”
“I shall be ready
in ten minutes. What a cyclone there is going to be to-morrow when this piece
of paper gets to work!.. It's a pleasant old palace, this is; I wonder if we
shall ever again—but never mind about that.”
Chapter XLIII.
THE BATTLE OF THE
SAND BELT
IN Merlin's
Cave—Clarence and I and fifty-two fresh, bright, well-educated, clean-minded
young British boys. At dawn I sent an order to the factories and to all our
great works to stop operations and remove all life to a safe distance, as
everything was going to be blown up by secret mines, “AND NO TELLING AT WHAT
MOMENT—THEREFORE, VACATE AT ONCE.” These people knew me, and had confidence in
my word. They would clear out without waiting to part their hair, and I could
take my own time about dating the explosion. You couldn't hire one of them to
go back during the century, if the explosion was still impending.
We had a week of
waiting. It was not dull for me, because I was writing all the time. During the
first three days, I finished turning my old diary into this narrative form; it
only required a chapter or so to bring it down to date. The rest of the week I
took up in writing letters to my wife. It was always my habit to write to Sandy
every day, whenever we were separate, and now I kept up the habit for love of
it, and of her, though I couldn't do anything with the letters, of course,
after I had written them. But it put in the time, you see, and was almost like
talking; it was almost as if I was saying, “Sandy, if you and Hello-Central
were here in the cave, instead of only your photographs, what good times we
could have!” And then, you know, I could imagine the baby googooing something
out in reply, with its fists in its mouth and itself stretched across its
mother's lap on its back, and she a-laughing and admiring and worshiping, and
now and then tickling under the baby's chin to set it cackling, and then maybe
throwing in a word of answer to me herself—and so on and so on—well, don't you
know, I could sit there in the cave with my pen, and keep it up, that way, by
the hour with them. Why, it was almost like having us all together again.
I had spies out
every night, of course, to get news. Every report made things look more and
more impressive. The hosts were gathering, gathering; down all the roads and
paths of England the knights were riding, and priests rode with them, to
hearten these original Crusaders, this being the Church's war. All the
nobilities, big and little, were on their way, and all the gentry. This was all
as was expected. We should thin out this sort of folk to such a degree that the
people would have nothing to do but just step to the front with their republic
and—
Ah, what a donkey
I was! Toward the end of the week I began to get this large and disenchanting
fact through my head: that the mass of the nation had swung their caps and
shouted for the republic for about one day, and there an end! The Church, the
nobles, and the gentry then turned one grand, alldisapproving frown upon them
and shriveled them into sheep! From that moment the sheep had begun to gather
to the fold—that is to say, the camps—and offer their valueless lives and their
valuable wool to the “righteous cause.” Why, even the very men who had lately
been slaves were in the “righteous cause,” and glorifying it, praying for it,
sentimentally slabbering over it, just like all the other commoners. Imagine
such human muck as this; conceive of this folly!
Yes, it was now
“Death to the Republic!” everywhere—not a dissenting voice. All England was
marching against us! Truly, this was more than I had bargained for.
I watched my
fifty-two boys narrowly; watched their faces, their walk, their unconscious
attitudes: for all these are a language—a language given us purposely that it
may betray us in times of emergency, when we have secrets which we want to
keep. I knew that that thought would keep saying itself over and over again in
their minds and hearts, ALL ENGLAND IS MARCHING AGAINST US! and ever more
strenuously imploring attention with each repetition, ever more sharply
realizing itself to their imaginations, until even in their sleep they would
find no rest from it, but hear the vague and flitting creatures of the dreams
say, ALL ENGLAND—ALL ENGLAND!—IS MARCHING AGAINST YOU! I knew all this would
happen; I knew that ultimately the pressure would become so great that it would
compel utterance; therefore, I must be ready with an answer at that time—an
answer well chosen and tranquilizing.
I was right. The
time came. They HAD to speak. Poor lads, it was pitiful to see, they were so
pale, so worn, so troubled. At first their spokesman could hardly find voice or
words; but he presently got both. This is what he said—and he put it in the
neat modern English taught him in my schools:
“We have tried to
forget what we are—English boys! We have tried to put reason before sentiment,
duty before love; our minds approve, but our hearts reproach us. While
apparently it was only the nobility, only the gentry, only the twenty-five or
thirty thousand knights left alive out of the late wars, we were of one mind,
and undisturbed by any troubling doubt; each and every one of these fifty-two
lads who stand here before you, said, 'They have chosen—it is their affair.'
But think!—the matter is altered—ALL ENGLAND IS MARCHING AGAINST US! Oh, sir,
consider!—reflect!—these people are our people, they are bone of our bone,
flesh of our flesh, we love them—do not ask us to destroy our nation!”
Well, it shows
the value of looking ahead, and being ready for a thing when it happens. If I
hadn't foreseen this thing and been fixed, that boy would have had me!—I
couldn't have said a word. But I was fixed. I said:
“My boys, your
hearts are in the right place, you have thought the worthy thought, you have
done the worthy thing. You are English boys, you will remain English boys, and
you will keep that name unsmirched. Give yourselves no further concern, let
your minds be at peace. Consider this: while all England is marching against
us, who is in the van? Who, by the commonest rules of war, will march in the
front? Answer me.”
“The mounted host
of mailed knights.”
“True. They are
30,000 strong. Acres deep they will march. Now, observe: none but THEY will
ever strike the sand-belt! Then there will be an episode! Immediately after,
the civilian multitude in the rear will retire, to meet business engagements
elsewhere. None but nobles and gentry are knights, and NONE BUT THESE will
remain to dance to our music after that episode. It is absolutely true that we
shall have to fight nobody but these thirty thousand knights. Now speak, and it
shall be as you decide. Shall we avoid the battle, retire from the field?”
“NO!!!”
The shout was
unanimous and hearty.
“Are you—are
you—well, afraid of these thirty thousand knights?”
That joke brought
out a good laugh, the boys' troubles vanished away, and they went gaily to
their posts. Ah, they were a darling fifty-two! As pretty as girls, too.
I was ready for
the enemy now. Let the approaching big day come along—it would find us on deck.
The big day
arrived on time. At dawn the sentry on watch in the corral came into the cave
and reported a moving black mass under the horizon, and a faint sound which he
thought to be military music. Breakfast was just ready; we sat down and ate it.
This over, I made
the boys a little speech, and then sent out a detail to man the battery, with
Clarence in command of it.
The sun rose
presently and sent its unobstructed splendors over the land, and we saw a
prodigious host moving slowly toward us, with the steady drift and aligned
front of a wave of the sea. Nearer and nearer it came, and more and more
sublimely imposing became its aspect; yes, all England was there, apparently.
Soon we could see the innumerable banners fluttering, and then the sun struck
the sea of armor and set it all aflash. Yes, it was a fine sight; I hadn't ever
seen anything to beat it.
At last we could
make out details. All the front ranks, no telling how many acres deep, were
horsemen—plumed knights in armor. Suddenly we heard the blare of trumpets; the
slow walk burst into a gallop, and then—well, it was wonderful to see! Down
swept that vast horse-shoe wave—it approached the sand-belt—my breath stood
still; nearer, nearer—the strip of green turf beyond the yellow belt grew narrow—narrower
still—became a mere ribbon in front of the horses—then disappeared under their
hoofs. Great Scott! Why, the whole front of that host shot into the sky with a
thunder-crash, and became a whirling tempest of rags and fragments; and along
the ground lay a thick wall of smoke that hid what was left of the multitude
from our sight.
Time for the
second step in the plan of campaign! I touched a button, and shook the bones of
England loose from her spine!
In that explosion
all our noble civilization-factories went up in the air and disappeared from
the earth. It was a pity, but it was necessary. We could not afford to let the
enemy turn our own weapons against us.
Now ensued one of
the dullest quarter-hours I had ever endured. We waited in a silent solitude
enclosed by our circles of wire, and by a circle of heavy smoke outside of
these. We couldn't see over the wall of smoke, and we couldn't see through it.
But at last it began to shred away lazily, and by the end of another
quarter-hour the land was clear and our curiosity was enabled to satisfy
itself. No living creature was in sight! We now perceived that additions had
been made to our defenses. The dynamite had dug a ditch more than a hundred
feet wide, all around us, and cast up an embankment some twenty-five feet high
on both borders of it. As to destruction of life, it was amazing. Moreover, it
was beyond estimate. Of course, we could not COUNT the dead, because they did
not exist as individuals, but merely as homogeneous protoplasm, with alloys of iron
and buttons.
No life was in
sight, but necessarily there must have been some wounded in the rear ranks, who
were carried off the field under cover of the wall of smoke; there would be
sickness among the others—there always is, after an episode like that. But
there would be no reinforcements; this was the last stand of the chivalry of
England; it was all that was left of the order, after the recent annihilating
wars. So I felt quite safe in believing that the utmost force that could for
the future be brought against us would be but small; that is, of knights. I
therefore issued a congratulatory proclamation to my army in these words:
SOLDIERS,
CHAMPIONS OF HUMAN LIBERTY AND EQUALITY: Your General congratulates you! In the
pride of his strength and the vanity of his renown, an arrogant enemy came
against you. You were ready. The conflict was brief; on your side, glorious.
This mighty victory, having been achieved utterly without loss, stands without
example in history. So long as the planets shall continue to move in their
orbits, the BATTLE OF THE SAND-BELT will not perish out of the memories of men.
THE BOSS.
I read it well,
and the applause I got was very gratifying to me. I then wound up with these
remarks:
“The war with the
English nation, as a nation, is at an end. The nation has retired from the
field and the war. Before it can be persuaded to return, war will have ceased.
This campaign is the only one that is going to be fought. It will be brief—the
briefest in history. Also the most destructive to life, considered from the
standpoint of proportion of casualties to numbers engaged. We are done with the
nation; henceforth we deal only with the knights. English knights can be
killed, but they cannot be conquered. We know what is before us. While one of these
men remains alive, our task is not finished, the war is not ended. We will kill
them all.” [Loud and long continued applause.]
I picketed the
great embankments thrown up around our lines by the dynamite explosion—merely a
lookout of a couple of boys to announce the enemy when he should appear again.
Next, I sent an
engineer and forty men to a point just beyond our lines on the south, to turn a
mountain brook that was there, and bring it within our lines and under our
command, arranging it in such a way that I could make instant use of it in an
emergency. The forty men were divided into two shifts of twenty each, and were
to relieve each other every two hours. In ten hours the work was accomplished.
It was nightfall
now, and I withdrew my pickets. The one who had had the northern outlook
reported a camp in sight, but visible with the glass only. He also reported
that a few knights had been feeling their way toward us, and had driven some
cattle across our lines, but that the knights themselves had not come very
near. That was what I had been expecting. They were feeling us, you see; they
wanted to know if we were going to play that red terror on them again. They
would grow bolder in the night, perhaps. I believed I knew what project they
would attempt, because it was plainly the thing I would attempt myself if I
were in their places and as ignorant as they were. I mentioned it to Clarence.
“I think you are
right,” said he; “it is the obvious thing for them to try.”
“Well, then,” I
said, “if they do it they are doomed.
“Certainly.”
They won't have
the slightest show in the world.”
“Of course they
won't.”
“It's dreadful,
Clarence. It seems an awful pity.”
The thing
disturbed me so that I couldn't get any peace of mind.for thinking of it and
worrying over it. So, at last, to quiet my conscience, I framed this message to
the knights:
TO THE HONORABLE
THE COMMANDER OF THE INSURGENT CHIVALRY OF ENGLAND: YOU fight in vain. We know
your strength—if one may call it by that name. We know that at the utmost you
cannot bring against us above five and twenty thousand knights. Therefore, you
have no chance—none whatever. Reflect: we are well equipped, well fortified, we
number 54. Fifty-four what? Men? No, MINDS—the capablest in the world; a force
against which mere animal might may no more hope to prevail than may the idle
waves of the sea hope to prevail against the granite barriers of England. Be
advised. We offer you your lives; for the sake of your families, do not reject
the gift. We offer you this chance, and it is the last: throw down your arms;
surrender unconditionally to the Republic, and all will be forgiven.
(Signed) THE
BOSS.
I read it to
Clarence, and said I proposed to send it by a flag of truce. He laughed the
sarcastic laugh he was born with, and said:
“Somehow it seems
impossible for you to ever fully realize what these nobilities are. Now let us
save a little time and trouble. Consider me the commander of the knights
yonder. Now, then, you are the flag of truce; approach and deliver me your
message, and I will give you your answer.”
I humored the
idea. I came forward under an imaginary guard of the enemy's soldiers, produced
my paper, and read it through. For answer, Clarence struck the paper out of my
hand, pursed up a scornful lip and said with lofty disdain:
“Dismember me
this animal, and return him in a basket to the base-born knave who sent him;
other answer have I none!”
How empty is
theory in presence of fact! And this was just fact, and nothing else. It was
the thing that would have happened, there was no getting around that. I tore up
the paper and granted my mistimed sentimentalities a permanent rest.
Then, to
business. I tested the electric signals from the gatling platform to the cave,
and made sure that they were all right; I tested and retested those which
commanded the fences—these were signals whereby I could break and renew the
electric current in each fence independently of the others at will. I placed
the brook-connection under the guard and authority of three of my best boys,
who would alternate in twohour watches all night and promptly obey my signal,
if I should have occasion to give it—three revolvershots in quick succession.
Sentry-duty was discarded for the night, and the corral left empty of life; I
ordered that quiet be maintained in the cave, and the electric lights turned
down to a glimmer.
As soon as it was
good and dark, I shut off the current from all the fences, and then groped my
way out to the embankment bordering our side of the great dynamite ditch. I
crept to the top of it and lay there on the slant of the muck to watch. But it
was too dark to see anything. As for sounds, there were none. The stillness was
deathlike. True, there were the usual night-sounds of the country—the whir of
nightbirds, the buzzing of insects, the barking of distant dogs, the mellow
lowing of far-off kine—but these didn't seem to break the stillness, they only
intensified it, and added a grewsome melancholy to it into the bargain.
I presently gave
up looking, the night shut down so black, but I kept my ears strained to catch
the least suspicious sound, for I judged I had only to wait, and I shouldn't be
disappointed. However, I had to wait a long time. At last I caught what you may
call in distinct glimpses of sound dulled metallic sound. I pricked up my ears,
then, and held my breath, for this was the sort of thing I had been waiting
for. This sound thickened, and approached—from toward the north. Presently, I
heard it at my own level—the ridge-top of the opposite embankment, a hundred
feet or more away. Then I seemed to see a row of black dots appear along that
ridge—human heads? I couldn't tell; it mightn't be anything at all; you can't
depend on your eyes when your imagination is out of focus. However, the
question was soon settled. I heard that metallic noise descending into the
great ditch. It augmented fast, it spread all along, and it unmistakably
furnished me this fact: an armed host was taking up its quarters in the ditch.
Yes, these people were arranging a little surprise party for us. We could
expect entertainment about dawn, possibly earlier.
I groped my way
back to the corral now; I had seen enough. I went to the platform and signaled
to turn the current on to the two inner fences. Then I went into the cave, and
found everything satisfactory there—nobody awake but the working-watch. I woke
Clarence and told him the great ditch was filling up with men, and that I
believed all the knights were coming for us in a body. It was my notion that as
soon as dawn approached we could expect the ditch's ambuscaded thousands to
swarm up over the embankment and make an assault, and be followed immediately
by the rest of their army.
Clarence said:
“They will be
wanting to send a scout or two in the dark to make preliminary observations.
Why not take the lightning off the outer fences, and give them a chance?”
“I've already
done it, Clarence. Did you ever know me to be inhospitable?”
“No, you are a
good heart. I want to go and—”
“Be a reception
committee? I will go, too.”
We crossed the
corral and lay down together between the two inside fences. Even the dim light
of the cave had disordered our eyesight somewhat, but the focus straightway
began to regulate itself and soon it was adjusted for present circumstances. We
had had to feel our way before, but we could make out to see the fence posts
now. We started a whispered conversation, but suddenly Clarence broke off and
said:
“What is that?”
“What is what?”
“That thing
yonder.”
“What
thing—where?”
“There beyond you
a little piece—dark something—a dull shape of some kind—against the second
fence.”
I gazed and he
gazed. I said:
“Could it be a
man, Clarence?”
“No, I think not.
If you notice, it looks a lit—why, it IS a man!—leaning on the fence.”
“I certainly
believe it is; let us go and see.”
We crept along on
our hands and knees until we were pretty close, and then looked up. Yes, it was
a man—a dim great figure in armor, standing erect, with both hands on the upper
wire—and, of course, there was a smell of burning flesh. Poor fellow, dead as a
door-nail, and never knew what hurt him. He stood there like a statue—no motion
about him, except that his plumes swished about a little in the night wind. We
rose up and looked in through the bars of his visor, but couldn't make out
whether we knew him or not—features too dim and shadowed.
We heard muffled
sounds approaching, and we sank down to the ground where we were. We made out
another knight vaguely; he was coming very stealthily, and feeling his way. He
was near enough now for us to see him put out a hand, find an upper wire, then
bend and step under it and over the lower one. Now he arrived at the first
knight—and started slightly when he discovered him. He stood a moment—no doubt
wondering why the other one didn't move on; then he said, in a low voice, “Why
dreamest thou here, good Sir Mar—” then he laid his hand on the corpse's shoulder—and
just uttered a little soft moan and sunk down dead. Killed by a dead man, you
see—killed by a dead friend, in fact. There was something awful about it.
These early birds
came scattering along after each other, about one every five minutes in our
vicinity, during half an hour. They brought no armor of offense but their
swords; as a rule, they carried the sword ready in the hand, and put it forward
and found the wires with it. We would now and then see a blue spark when the
knight that caused it was so far away as to be invisible to us; but we knew
what had happened, all the same; poor fellow, he had touched a charged wire
with his sword and been elected. We had brief intervals of grim stillness,
interrupted with piteous regularity by the clash made by the falling of an
iron-clad; and this sort of thing was going on, right along, and was very
creepy there in the dark and lonesomeness.
We concluded to
make a tour between the inner fences. We elected to walk upright, for
convenience's sake; we argued that if discerned, we should be taken for friends
rather than enemies, and in any case we should be out of reach of swords, and
these gentry did not seem to have any spears along. Well, it was a curious
trip. Everywhere dead men were lying outside the second fence—not plainly
visible, but still visible; and we counted fifteen of those pathetic
statues—dead knights standing with their hands on the upper wire.
One thing seemed
to be sufficiently demonstrated: our current was so tremendous that it killed
before the victim could cry out. Pretty soon we detected a muffled and heavy
sound, and next moment we guessed what it was. It was a surprise in force
coming! whispered Clarence to go and wake the army, and notify it to wait in
silence in the cave for further orders. He was soon back, and we stood by the
inner fence and watched the silent lightning do its awful work upon that
swarming host. One could make out but little of detail; but he could note that
a black mass was piling itself up beyond the second fence. That swelling bulk
was dead men! Our camp was enclosed with a solid wall of the dead—a bulwark, a
breastwork, of corpses, you may say. One terrible thing about this thing was
the absence of human voices; there were no cheers, no war cries; being intent upon
a surprise, these men moved as noiselessly as they could; and always when the
front rank was near enough to their goal to make it proper for them to begin to
get a shout ready, of course they struck the fatal line and went down without
testifying.
I sent a current
through the third fence now; and almost immediately through the fourth and
fifth, so quickly were the gaps filled up. I believed the time was come now for
my climax; I believed that that whole army was in our trap. Anyway, it was high
time to find out. So I touched a button and set fifty electric suns aflame on
the top of our precipice.
Land, what a
sight! We were enclosed in three walls of dead men! All the other fences were
pretty nearly filled with the living, who were stealthily working their way
forward through the wires. The sudden glare paralyzed this host, petrified
them, you may say, with astonishment; there was just one instant for me to
utilize their immobility in, and I didn't lose the chance. You see, in another
instant they would have recovered their faculties, then they'd have burst into
a cheer and made a rush, and my wires would have gone down before it; but that
lost instant lost them their opportunity forever; while even that slight
fragment of time was still unspent, I shot the current through all the fences
and struck the whole host dead in their tracks! THERE was a groan you could
HEAR! It voiced the death-pang of eleven thousand men. It swelled out on the
night with awful pathos.
A glance showed
that the rest of the enemy—perhaps ten thousand strong—were between us and the
encircling ditch, and pressing forward to the assault. Consequently we had them
ALL! and had them past help. Time for the last act of the tragedy. I fired the
three appointed revolver shots—which meant:
“Turn on the
water!”
There was a
sudden rush and roar, and in a minute the mountain brook was raging through the
big ditch and creating a river a hundred feet wide and twentyfive deep.
“Stand to your
guns, men! Open fire!”
The thirteen
gatlings began to vomit death into the fated ten thousand. They halted, they
stood their ground a moment against that withering deluge of fire, then they
broke, faced about and swept toward the ditch like chaff before a gale. A full
fourth part of their force never reached the top of the lofty embankment; the
three-fourths reached it and plunged over—to death by drowning.
Within ten short
minutes after we had opened fire, armed resistance was totally annihilated, the
campaign was ended, we fifty-four were masters of England. Twenty-five thousand
men lay dead around us.
But how
treacherous is fortune! In a little while—say an hour—happened a thing, by my
own fault, which—but I have no heart to write that. Let the record end here.
Chapter XLIV.
A POSTSCRIPT BY
CLARENCE
I, CLARENCE, must
write it for him. He proposed that we two go out and see if any help could be
accorded the wounded. I was strenuous against the project. I said that if there
were many, we could do but little for them; and it would not be wise for us to
trust ourselves among them, anyway. But he could seldom be turned from a
purpose once formed; so we shut off the electric current from the fences, took
an escort along, climbed over the enclosing ramparts of dead knights, and moved
out upon the field. The first wounded mall who appealed for help was sitting
with his back against a dead comrade. When The Boss bent over him and spoke to
him, the man recognized him and stabbed him. That knight was Sir Meliagraunce,
as I found out by tearing off his helmet. He will not ask for help any more.
We carried The
Boss to the cave and gave his wound, which was not very serious, the best care
we could. In this service we had the help of Merlin, though we did not know it.
He was disguised as a woman, and appeared to be a simple old peasant goodwife.
In this disguise, with brown-stained face and smooth shaven, he had appeared a
few days after The Boss was hurt and offered to cook for us, saying her people
had gone off to join certain new camps which the enemy were forming, and that
she was starving. The Boss had been getting along very well, and had amused
himself with finishing up his record.
We were glad to
have this woman, for we were short handed. We were in a trap, you see—a trap of
our own making. If we stayed where we were, our dead would kill us; if we moved
out of our defenses, we should no longer be invincible. We had conquered; in
turn we were conquered. The Boss recognized this; we all recognized it. If we
could go to one of those new camps and patch up some kind of terms with the
enemy—yes, but The Boss could not go, and neither could I, for I was among the
first that were made sick by the poisonous air bred by those dead thousands.
Others were taken down, and still others. To-morrow—
TO-MORROW. It is
here. And with it the end. About midnight I awoke, and saw that hag making
curious passes in the air about The Boss's head and face, and wondered what it
meant. Everybody but the dynamo-watch lay steeped in sleep; there was no sound.
The woman ceased from her mysterious foolery, and started tip-toeing toward the
door. I called out:
“Stop! What have
you been doing?”
She halted, and
said with an accent of malicious satisfaction:
“Ye were
conquerors; ye are conquered! These others are perishing—you also. Ye shall all
die in this place—every one—except HIM. He sleepeth now—and shall sleep
thirteen centuries. I am Merlin!”
Then such a
delirium of silly laughter overtook him that he reeled about like a drunken
man, and presently fetched up against one of our wires. His mouth is spread
open yet; apparently he is still laughing. I suppose the face will retain that
petrified laugh until the corpse turns to dust.
The Boss has
never stirred—sleeps like a stone. If he does not wake to-day we shall
understand what kind of a sleep it is, and his body will then be borne to a
place in one of the remote recesses of the cave where none will ever find it to
desecrate it. As for the rest of us—well, it is agreed that if any one of us
ever escapes alive from this place, he will write the fact here, and loyally
hide this Manuscript with The Boss, our dear good chief, whose property it is,
be he alive or dead.
The End of the
Manuscript
FINAL P. S. BY M.
T.
THE dawn was come
when I laid the Manuscript aside. The rain had almost ceased, the world was
gray and sad, the exhausted storm was sighing and sobbing itself to rest. I
went to the stranger's room, and listened at his door, which was slightly ajar.
I could hear his voice, and so I knocked. There was no answer, but I still
heard the voice. I peeped in. The man lay on his back in bed, talking brokenly
but with spirit, and punctuating with his arms, which he thrashed about,
restlessly, as sick people do in delirium. I slipped in softly and bent over
him. His mutterings and ejaculations went on. I spoke—merely a word, to call
his attention. His glassy eyes and his ashy face were alight in an instant with
pleasure, gratitude, gladness, welcome:
“Oh, Sandy, you are come at last—how I have longed for you! Sit
by me—do not leave me—never leave me again, Sandy, never again. Where is your
hand?—give it me, dear, let me hold it—there—now all is well, all is peace, and
I am happy again—WE are happy again, isn't it so, Sandy? You are so dim,
so vague, you are but a mist, a cloud, but you are HERE, and that is
blessedness sufficient; and I have your hand; don't take it away—it is for only
a little while, I shall not require it long... Was that the child?..
Hello-Central!.. she doesn't answer. Asleep, perhaps? Bring her when she wakes,
and let me touch her hands, her face, her hair, and tell her good-bye... Sandy!
Yes, you are there. I lost myself a moment, and I thought you were gone... Have
I been sick long? It must be so; it seems months to me. And such dreams! such
strange and awful dreams, Sandy! Dreams that were as real as reality—delirium,
of course, but SO real! Why, I thought the king was dead, I thought you were in
Gaul and couldn't get home, I thought there was a revolution; in the fantastic
frenzy of these dreams, I thought that Clarence and I and a handful of my
cadets fought and exterminated the whole chivalry of England! But even that was
not the strangest. I seemed to be a creature out of a remote unborn age,
centuries hence, and even THAT was as real as the rest! Yes, I seemed to have
flown back out of that age into this of ours, and then forward to it again, and
was set down, a stranger and forlorn in that strange England, with an abyss of
thirteen centuries yawning between me and you! between me and my home and my
friends! between me and all that is dear to me, all that could make life worth
the living! It was awful—awfuler than you can ever imagine, Sandy. Ah, watch by
me, Sandy—stay by me every moment—DON'T let me go out of my mind again; death
is nothing, let it come, but not with those dreams, not with the torture of
those hideous dreams—I cannot endure THAT again... Sandy?..”
He lay muttering
incoherently some little time; then for a time he lay silent, and apparently
sinking away toward death. Presently his fingers began to pick busily at the
coverlet, and by that sign I knew that his end was at hand with the first
suggestion of the death-rattle in his throat he started up slightly, and seemed
to listen: then he said:
“A bugle?.. It is
the king! The drawbridge, there! Man the battlements!—turn out the—”
He was getting up
his last “effect”; but he never finished it.
END